======================================================================== WRITINGS OF JOHN CLOWES by John Clowes ======================================================================== A collection of theological writings, sermons, and essays by John Clowes, compiled for study and devotional reading. Chapters: 83 ------------------------------------------------------------------------ TABLE OF CONTENTS ------------------------------------------------------------------------ 1. 01.00. Miracles OF JESUS CHRIST 2. 01.01. Introductory Remarks on Miracles 3. 01.02. The Leper Cleansed 4. 01.03. The Centurion's Servant Healed 5. 01.04. Peter's Wife's Mother Healed 6. 01.05. The Devils Cast Out 7. 01.06. The Wind and Waves Rebuked 8. 01.07. The Possessed With Devils Coming Out of the Tombs 9. 01.08. The Sick of the Palsy Healed 10. 01.09. The Ruler's Daughter Raised 11. 01.10. The Bloody Issue Cured 12. 01.11. The Two Blind Men Restored to Sight 13. 01.12. The Devil Cast Out From the Dumb Man 14. 01.13. The Withered Hand Restored 15. 01.14. The Devil Cast Out From the Blind and Dumb 16. 01.15. Miracle of the Five Loaves and Two Fishes 17. 01.16. Jesus Walking on the Sea 18. 01.17. The Sick Healed in the Land of Gennesareth 19. 01.18. The Devil Cast Out From the Daughter of the Woman of Canaan 20. 01.19. The Lame, Blind, Dumb, Maimed, and Many Others Healed 21. 01.20. The Miracle of the Seven Loaves and Fishes 22. 01.21. The Transfiguration 23. 01.22. The Lunatic Healed 24. 01.23. The Piece of Mone Found in the Fish's Mouth 25. 01.24. Sight Restored a Second Timme to Two Blind Men 26. 01.25. The Barren Fig-Tree Cursed 27. 01.26. The Miraculous Draught of Fishes 28. 01.27. The Widow's Son Raised 29. 01.28. The Woman Who Had A Spirit of Infirmity 30. 01.29. The Dropsy Cured 31. 01.30. The Ten Lepers Cleansed 32. 01.31. The Water Turned Into Wine 33. 01.32. The Impotent Man at the Pool of Bethesda 34. 01.33. Sight Restored to the Man Blind from His Birth 35. 01.34. Lazarus Raised from the Dead 36. 01.35. The Resurrection and Ascension of Jesus Christ 37. 01.36. The Miracle of Pentecost 38. 01.37. Conclusion 39. 01.38. Prayer 40. 01.39. Translations from Original Text 41. 02.00. THE PARABLES of JESUS CHRIST EXPLAINED. 42. 02.000. Preface to the eSword Edition 43. 02.01. Mat_7:24-28 -- The Wise and the Foolish Builder 44. 02.02. Mat_9:16-18 -- The Parable of a Piece of New Cloth 45. 02.03. Mat_11:16-17 -- Children Sitting in the Markets 46. 02.04. Mat_13:3-10 -- The Sower 47. 02.05. Mat_13:24-31 -- The Weeds in the Field 48. 02.06. Mat_13:31-32 -- Grain of Mustard Seed 49. 02.07. Mat_13:33 -- Leaven 50. 02.08. Mat_13:44 -- Treasure Hid in a Field 51. 02.09. Mat_13:45-46 -- Merchant Seeking Pearls 52. 02.10. Mat_13:47-50 -- Net Cast into Sea 53. 02.11. Mat_13:52 -- Instructed Scribe 54. 02.12. Mat_13:52 -- Summary of the Above 55. 02.13. Mat_15:10-11 - What Defiles a Man 56. 02.14. Mat_18:23-35 -- King accounts Servants 57. 02.15. Mat_20:1-16 -- Hired Labourers 58. 02.16. Mat_21:28-32 -- Man with Two Sons 59. 02.17. Mat_21:33-41 -- Planting a Vineyard 60. 02.18. Mat_22:1-15 -- King's Son 61. 02.19. Mat_24:32-34 -- The Fig Tree 62. 02.20. Mat_25:1-13 -- Ten Virgins 63. 02.21. Mat_25:14-30 -- Talents: Far Travelling Man 64. 02.22. Mar_4:26-29 -- Casting Seed 65. 02.23. Luk_6:39-42 -- Blind Leading Blind 66. 02.24. Luk_7:41-43 -- Creditor with Two Debtors 67. 02.25. Luk_10:30-36 -- Good Samaritan 68. 02.26. Luk_11:5-9 -- Midnight Visit 69. 02.27. Luk_12:16-22 -- Man With Fertile Ground 70. 02.28. Luk_12:35-50 -- Loins Girded, Light Burning 71. 02.29. Luk_13:6-9 -- Fig Tree in Vineyard 72. 02.30. Luk_14:7-12 -- Man Invited to Wedding 73. 02.31. Luk_14:28-35 -- Building a Tower 74. 02.32. Luk_15:3-7 -- Lost Sheep 75. 02.33. Luk_15:8-10 -- Lost Piece of Silver 76. 02.34. Luk_15:11-32 -- Prodigal Son 77. 02.35. Luk_16:1-12 -- Unjust Steward 78. 02.36. Luk_16:19-31 -- Rich Man and Lazarus 79. 02.37. Luk_17:7-10 -- Servant Feeding Cattle 80. 02.38. Luk_18:1-8 -- Unjust Judge 81. 02.39. Luk_18:9-14 -- Pharisee and Tax Collector 82. 02.40. Joh_10:1-5 -- Good Shepherd 83. 02.41. Joh_15:1-7 -- Vine and Branches ======================================================================== CHAPTER 1: 01.00. MIRACLES OF JESUS CHRIST ======================================================================== Miracles OF JESUS CHRIST, EXPLAINED ACCORDING TO THEIR SPIRITUAL MEANING, in the way of QUESTION and ANSWER. BY THE REV. J. CLOWES, M.A MANCHESTER: Printed for a Society of Gentlemen, by J. Gleave, 196 Deansgate. 1816 and 1817. CONTENTS 01. Introductory Remarks on Miracles. 02. The Leper Cleansed 03. The Centurion’s Servant Healed 04. Peter’s Wife’s Mother Healed 05. The Devils Cast Out 06. The Wind and Waves Rebuked 07. The Possessed With Devils Coming Out of the Tombs 08. The Sick Of The Palsy Healed 09. The Ruler’s Daughter Raised 10. The Bloody Issue Cured 11. The Two Blind Men Restored To Sight 12. The Devil Cast Out From the Dumb Man 13. The Withered Hand Restored 14. The Devil Cast Out From the Blind and Dumb. 15. Miracle of the Five Loaves and Two Fishes 16. Jesus Walking on the Sea. 17. The Sick Healed in the Land Of Gennesareth. 18. The Devil Cast Out From the Daughter of the Woman of Canaan 19. The Lame, Blind, Dumb, Maimed, and Many Others Healed. 20. The Miracle Of The Seven Loaves And Fishes. 21. The Transfiguration. 22. The Lunatic Healed 23. The Piece of Money Found in the Fish’s Mouth 24. Sight Restored a Second Time to Two Blind Men. 25. The Barren Fig-Tree Cursed 26. The Miraculous Draught Of Fishes. 27. The Widow’s Son Raised. 28. The Woman Who Had A Spirit Of Infirmity 29. The Dropsy Cured 30. The Ten Lepers Cleansed 31. The Water Turned Into Wine 32. The Impotent Man at The Pool of Bethesda. 33. Sight Restored To The Man Blind From His Birth. 34. Lazarus Raised from the Dead 35. The Resurrection And Ascension Of Jesus Christ. 36. The Miracle of Pentecost 37. Conclusion. Prayer Translations from Original Text ======================================================================== CHAPTER 2: 01.01. INTRODUCTORY REMARKS ON MIRACLES ======================================================================== Introductory Remarks on Miracles. Q. What do you mean by a Miracle? A. A Miracle is the manifestation of a supernatural Power controlling, in some degree, the Common or established laws of nature. Q. How many kinds of Miracles are there? A. Miracles in general may be referred to two classes, Divine Miracles, and what may be called magical or infernal Miracles. Q. What do you mean by a Divine Miracle? A. A Divine Miracle is the exertion and effect of a supernatural agency, exercised by the almighty himself for the benefit of Mankind. Q. And what do you mean by a magical or infernal Miracle? A. A magical or infernal Miracle is the exercise and effect of magical and infernal agency, separated from Divine Agency, and in opposition to it. Q. Can you tell me any instances of this latter agency, as recorded in the word of God? A. It is written in the book of Exodus, that when Moses lifted up the rod, and smote the waters that were in the river, in the sight of Pharaoh, and in the sight of his servants, all the waters that were in the river were turned to blood; and the fish that were in the river died, and the river stunk, etc. And it is then added, that the Magicians of Egypt did so with their enchantments, (Exo 7:20, Exo 7:21-22). Again, it is declared by Jesus Christ, that in the latter days there shall arise false Christs and false Prophets, and shall show great signs and wonders, insomuch that) if it were possible, they shall deceive even the very elect, (Mat 24:24). The beast also in the Revelation is described as doing great wonders, so as to make fire come down from heaven on the earth in the sight of men, and deceives them that dwell on the earth by those Miracles which he had power to do in the sight of the Beast, (Mat 13:13-14) Q. Can you see any reason why the almighty should permit his enemies to exercise a miraculous power in opposition to himself and to his kingdom? A. Yes: there is every good reason to suppose that the almighty grants this permission for the sake of His own children, or with a view to the trial of their faith, and to its further confirmation in consequence of such trial. For the necessary effect of an infernal or magical Miracle on the mind of a well-disposed person must be to induce doubt respecting the truth of a Divine Miracle, and the result of that doubt would be a clearer discrimination between the two classes of Miracles, and thus finally a rejection of the infernal or magical Miracle, and an establishment of the power and validity of the Divine Miracle. Q. And what do you conceive to be the discrimination between these two kinds of Miracles? A. The discrimination is grounded, not so much in the external aspect or form of the two kinds of Miracles, as in their internal characters and qualities. For the internal quality and character, which distinguishes the Divine Miracle is, that it is representative and expressive of the Divine and Spiritual Principles which give it birth. Thus, when Jesus Christ raised the dead to life, this Miracle contained in its inward bosom a Divine and living Principle, and was thus expressive of the operation of that Principle, not only in imparting new life to a dead body, but also in imparting new and spiritual life to a dead soul, by raising it from the death of sin to the life of righteousness. This was the case too with all the other Miracles worked by that incarnate god, every one of which was thus figurative of a divine operation exercised, not on matter only, but on spirit also, producing in the latter an effect corresponding to that which was produced in the former. But in the case of magical or infernal Miracles, no such internal principle was operative, and of course no such principle could be expressed, and therefore the Miracle was a mere outward and dead form, without animation from any spiritual principle of life whatever. Q. What then would you suppose was the immediate design of the lord’s Miracles? A. In the first place, his Miracles were incontestable proofs to all his followers of a divine supernatural agency, and not only so, but of a divine mercy and loving-kindness. Thus they produced a double effect on all his penitent disciples, convincing their understandings, in the first place, of the divinity of their lord and master; and, in the next place, operating on their wills, by making them sensible of His divine tenderness and compassion towards the children of men. It is therefore well to be understood, that it was not the intention of His Miracles, to make converts to his doctrine, since there is every reason to believe that no one cart be converted to the Truth by any miraculous testimony whatsoever, agreeable to what is intimated in the Parable of the Rich Man and Lazarus, where it is written, If they hear not Moses and the Prophets, neither will they be persuaded though one rose from the dead. Accordingly Jesus Christ testifies in another place, If any man will do his will, he shall know of the doctrine whether it be of god ; instructing us by these words, that the qualification to admit the evidence of divine doctrine does not arise so much from miraculous testimony, as from a sincere desire to do the will of god, thus from a well-disposed heart and life. Accordingly the unbelieving Jews were not convinced by our lord’s Miracles, nor does it appear to have been his intention to promote their conviction in that way, and therefore he says in another place, An evil and adulterous generation seeketh for a sign, but there shall no sign be given. The conclusion therefore is, that the lord’s Miracles were intended for the confirmation of the faith of his pious followers; but not for the conviction and conversion of those who had no previous disposition or inclination to become his followers. Q. But in the Scriptures of the New Testament, mention is made of Signs as well as of Miracles,—how do you distinguish between a Sign and a Miracle? A. By a Sign is to be understood a divine supernatural agency operative on the understandings of men, and thereby producing conviction respecting religious Truth, which conviction, so far as it relates to the understanding, may at any time be worked by the almighty, and would at all times be wrought, if it was agreeable to the order of his providence, and conducive to the regeneration and consequent salvation of mankind. But inasmuch as such conviction of the understanding, separate from the conversion of the will, would be of no avail, or rather would be injurious to man, by rendering him the subject of a more severe condemnation, supposing him to be unfaithful to it, therefore such signs are not given, and to seek them is declared by Jesus Christ to be the proper mark and character of an evil and adulterous generation. Miracles, on the other hand, do not produce conviction of the understanding only, but are intended to affect the will, as was above observed, and therefore Miracles are vouchsafed of the divine mercy for the reasons above mentioned, because Divine Miracles have a representative signification, by virtue of which they become instructive and edifying to all those who are in a state of mind capable of being benefited by them, in other words, who are in a state of mind sincerely desirous both to know and to do the whole will of their heavenly father. Q. How ought you then to be affected by a sense of the lord’s Miracles? A. With unfeigned adoration both of His divine power and divine goodness, manifested in every Miracle which He performed. I ought also to be rightly affected with the significative sense of every Miracle, and with this view to explore attentively what their distinct signification is, that so I may gain a clearer insight into the nature of the divine operation. Lastly, I ought to consider, and to consider seriously, that Jesus Christ, in his adorable mercy, is ever disposed to work all his Miracles in my own mind and life, and since this cannot be done, only so far as I co-operate freely with him in the working of such Miracles, therefore I ought to consider further, that I am appointed, under him, to perform the same Miracles, agreeable to His own declaration, where He says concerning every one of His true followers, The works that I do shall he do also, and greater works than these shall he do, because I go to the Father, (John 14:12), I am resolved therefore now on to pay due attention to the meaning and import of every Divine Miracle, and to take heed to my own conduct and conversation, that I may always be in a fit state to be a subject of the Miraculous Operation of my god and saviour, and may thus co-operate with Him in the removal of all my natural infirmities, ignorances and disorders, until I be finally restored, through his Divine Agency, to the full and complete order of that heavenly life, which He is ever willing to re-establish in every principle and degree both of my soul and body. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 3: 01.02. THE LEPER CLEANSED ======================================================================== The Leper Cleansed Mat 8:1-5 When He was come down from the mountain, great multitudes followed Him, and behold, there came a Leper and worshiped Him, etc. Q. WHAT do you conceive to be here figured by the Leper, who is the subject of this Miracle ? A. The Leprosy, like all other bodily diseases prevalent at the time, was a representative figure of spiritual disease, and the spiritual disease which it represented, was the profanation of Good and of Truth, which then prevailed in the Jewish Church. Q. And what do you understand by the profanation of Good and Truth? A. Man is guilty of profanation, and is thus a spiritual Leper, whenever he has been initiated into the knowledge of what is true, and into the love of what is good, and afterwards acts contrary to such knowledge and love. This evil of profanation is represented by what Jesus Christ says concerning the unclean Spirit, that when he is cast out, he says, I will return to my house from whence I came out. Then he goes and takes to himself seven other spirits more wicked than himself, and they enter in and dwell there: and the last state of that man, is worse than the first) (Mat 12:43-46). The lord therefore, in his merciful providence, exercises a peculiar care over mankind, to prevent, as far as possible, their receiving more knowledge, and being affected with more love of what is right and good, than they can be supported in to the end of life, because the profanation of what is good and true exposes man to a more grievous condemnation than he can be exposed to by mere ignorance of, and insensibility to what is good and true, agreeable to those words of Jesus Christ, where He says, " That servant which knew his lord’s will, and pre- pared not himself, neither did according to his will, shall be beaten with many blows; but he who knew not, though he committed things woryour of blows, shall be beaten with few, (Luk 12:47-48). The Leper then, who is the subject of this Miracle, is a representative figure of all those, who have once admitted into their minds the knowledge of heavenly things, and been made sensible of the love of them, and who afterwards decline from such knowledge and love, in consequence of immersing their thoughts and affections again in the selfish and worldly love which they had forsaken. Q. But it is said of the above Leper, that he worshiped Jesus Christ, saying, lord, if you will, you can make me clean — what do you understand here by the Leper’s worshipping Jesus Christ ? A. The worship of Jesus Christ implies the acknowledgement of His divinity, and thus that He was god made man in One Divine Person. Such worship therefore is here recorded of the above Leper, because the acknowledgement of the divinity of Jesus Christ is the necessary qualification to draw from Him the operation of His Divine Virtue for the cure of disease whether mental or bodily. Q. And what do you further understand by the Leper saying, lord, if you will, you can make me clean? A. These words involve confidence, on the part of the Leper, in the Omnipotence of the incarnate god, whom he now worshiped, which confidence was grounded in the conviction, that Jesus Christ is able to accomplish every purpose which is in agreement with His Own divine order and providence; in other words, that He has power to effect all things which are not contrary to the laws of His own appointment, thus to the determinations of His Divine Will. This confidence therefore is here recorded, because it is another essential qualification for receiving all the benefits and blessings resulting from the Divine Operation. Q. But it follows, that Jesus put forth his hand and touched him, saying, I will, be you clean. And immediately his leprosy was cleansed — What do you here understand by Jesus putting forth his hand? A. By the hand is denoted power, because the hand is formed to execute the determinations of the will, in which all power originates. By the hand of Jesus, therefore is represented Divine Power, which is Omnipotence, and by putting forth the hand is signified the exercise of that Omnipotence, thus the fulfillment of the purposes of the Divine Mercy and Love, According this sense, it is to be understood that the blessed Jesus is always putting forth his hand, because he is always in the act of relieving the infirmities, soothing the sorrows, and healing the spiritual distempers of all his children who believe in his divinity, and have confidence in the omnipotence which he possesses as the only god of heaven and earth. Q. And what do you conceive to be further meant by Jesus touching the Leper and saying, I will, be you clean ? A. By touching is here to be understood the communication of that omnipotence which is signified by putting forth the hand, in other words, its application to the distempered principles which it intended to cure. It is therefore added, I will, be you clean, because the expression, I will, is significative of the Divine Intention or Purpose, as originating in" the Divine Mercy or Love, whilst the expression, Be thou clean, denotes, with equal emphasis, the accomplishment of that intention or purpose, through the application of an omnipotent energy to the malady which was to be removed. It is therefore further to be under stood, not only that Jesus Christ is perpetually putting forth his hand, and touching his distempered children, who with confidence supplicate his Divine Aid, but likewise that he is perpetually saying, as in the present instance, I will, be you clean, in other words, that he is perpetually declaring the purpose of his mercy to relieve the wants and heal the infirmities of his penitent and humble children, and is always in the act of executing that purpose, whenever his children are in a proper state of heart and of life to admit his Divine Operation. Q. And what do you understand by what next follows, where it is said, immediately Ms leprosy was cleansed? A. The blessed Jesus had before expressed the purpose of His Love, and also its operation, in the emphatic words, I will, be you clean, and therefore now the effect of that purpose and operation is described. Thus we are instructed that every Divine Work is threefold, including in it Intention which is of love, design which is of wisdom, and effect which is of operation; and thus too we are instructed further, that in every effect there must be a cause or design, and in every cause or design there must be a purpose or end; and that consequently in every work of creation and redemption there is a manifestation of Divine Love and Wisdom, of which such work is therefore an exact representative type or figure, so that the whole of creation may be regarded as a theatre representative of the Divine Principles in which it originates, which are love, wisdom and use. Q. But It is written that Jesus says unto him, See you tell no man, but go your way, show yourself to the priest, and offer the gift that Moses commanded) for a testimony to them — what do you conceive to be here meant by the injunction, See you tell no man? A. According to the sense of the letter, this injunction implies, that the cleansed Leper should be silent respecting the Divine Operation from which he had received such an extraordinary benefit, and in this sense of the term, it contains an useful caution to those, who are forward to speak of the experience they have had of the Divine Mercy, and who consider it as a crime to conceal from others the blessings which have been bestowed on themselves. But according to the spiritual idea, the injunction implies that the Miracle worked should not affect the understanding only, by being regarded merely in an intellectual view, or as a point of curious speculation, but should affect the will of its cleansed subject, by being regarded as an effect of the pure love and mercy of the most high god. It therefore follows, Go your way, show yourself to the priest, and offer the gift which Moses commanded, for a testimony to them. For by the injunction, Go your way, is to be understood a requirement to live according to the mercy which had been experienced; and by the further injunction, show yourself to the priest, is to be understood an opening of the mind to the consideration and reception of the good of heavenly love and life, which good was figured and represented by the priest under the Jewish law; and lastly by the injunction, offer the gift which Moses commanded for a testimony to them, is to be understood the grateful and devout acknowledgment that all spiritual cleansing and purification, especially in the case of the profanation of Good and Truth, is the sole effect of the Divine Loving-kindness, and a proof most positive of the Divine Omnipotence. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this Miracle? A. I learn from it, in the first place, to adore that Divine Power and Goodness, which when manifested here on earth in a bodily form, was exercised on the bodies of men, by the removal of bodily disease and infirmity, and thus proves the original of that form to be from the father of mercies. And I learn from it, in the next place, to reflect with consolation and confidence, that the same Divine Power and Goodness is continually flowing from the glorified body of the great redeemer, to remove all spiritual disease and infirmity, even that greatest of all distempers, the profanation of Good and Truth, in all cases where Divine Aid is supplicated out of a humble and penitent heart for the purpose of removal. Lastly, I learn what are the qualifications to receive the healing gift of the Divine Mercy, and that they consist, first, in the acknowledgement of the incarnate god in His divine humanity; and secondly, in the confidence that He has Omnipotence, in other words, that He can do all things consistent with His own order, and with the laws of operation which He Himself hath been pleased to appoint. I am resolved therefore from now on to believe in this Omnipotence of the incarnate god, and to apply to Him, and to Him alone, for relief under all my spiritual distempers, and never to despair of His Divine Aid, even though I should inadvertently offend against His holy laws, and thus incur the guilt of profaning them. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 4: 01.03. THE CENTURION'S SERVANT HEALED ======================================================================== The Centurion’s Servant Healed Mat 8:5-14. And when Jesus was entered into Capernaum, there came to Him a Centurion, beseeching Him, and saying, lord, my servant lies at home sick of the palsy, grievously tormented, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by the centurion, by his servant, and by the palsy of which he was sick, and by which he was grievously tormented? A. According to the sense of the letter, by the Centurion here recorded is to be understood a Roman Commander of a hundred soldiers, and by his servant is to be understood one of his domestics employed in his service, and by the palsy with which he was afflicted, is further to be understood a bodily disease called by that name, and consisting in the want of a proper circulation of the blood in some part of the body, in consequence of which the part affected was rendered incapable of performing the functions for which it was intended. But according to the spiritual idea, which is involved in every part of this Miracle, as well as of all the other Miracles performed by the great redeemer, by the Centurion above-mentioned is to be understood the Church among the Gentiles, and particularly the Church combating against spiritual adversaries, for the Centurion here spoken was a Gentile Soldier. Agreeably to the same spiritual idea, by this Centurion’s servant is to be understood some lower principle in the natural mind intended to administer to the higher principles of the spiritual mind; and therefore by the palsy, with which the servant was afflicted, is to be understood a defect of truth in the lower principles of the natural mind, in consequence of which defect there was a want of circulation of heavenly life and love from the higher principles of the spiritual mind, which rendered the natural mind unable to perform the functions for which it was intended, particularly in the way of combat against the evil principles and false persuasions with which it was infected. It is accordingly said concerning this servant, that he was sick, and grievously tormented, because sickness has relation to the evils which were unsubdued and thus unremoved, whilst grievous torment has relation to the false persuasions originating in those evils. Q. But it is added, that Jesus says unto him, I will come and heal him——what do you learn from these words of the blessed Jesus? A. I learn, not only His willingness to administer to the relief of the servant here recorded, but also His willingness to administer to the relief of all other His afflicted servants, who apply to Him out of pure and penitent hearts. It is therefore to be understood, and attentively considered, that Jesus is ever uttering this same expression, I will come and heal him, over every individual child or servant, labouring under any disease or sorrow, whether mental or corporeal. For the great redeemer is the same compassionate mercy yesterday, today, and for ever, and consequently as He was willing in the days of His flesh to listen to the prayers of His afflicted children, and to relieve their distresses, so He is alike willing at this day, and alike in the act of coming, to remove the infirmities of all those, who, like the good Centurion of old, supplicate His Divine Power and Presence, It is to be remarked further concerning the two expressions, coming and healing, that the former must in all cases precede the latter; in other words, that the blessed Jesus cannot heal, unless he be first allowed to come, and that healing therefore is to be regarded as the effect of His Divine Presence, and that consequently whoever wishes to experience the power of His healing, must first labour to open his mind, and to keep it open, to the Divine presence, favour, and benediction. Q. But it is added that the Centurion answered and said, lord, I am not worthy that you should come under my roof, but speak the word only, and my servant shall be healed — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. I learn from these words two necessary qualifications to secure the favour and blessing of the holy Jesus, the first of which is humility, as manifested in these words, lord, I am not worthy that you should come under my roof, and the second is, confidence in divine aid grounded in that humility, and expressed in these words, speak the word only, and my servant shall be healed. Q. And what instruction do you learn from the words which follow, where it is written, for I am a man under authority, having soldiers under me; and I say to this [man] Go, and he goes; and to another, Come, and he comes ; and to my servant, Do this, and he does it. A. I learn a third qualification necessary to secure the favour and blessing of the great redeemer, which qualification consists in a well arranged mind, resulting from the two former qualifications, humility and confidence in Divine Aid. For the soldiers here spoken of, as being under the Centurion, have reference to the subordinate principles of the natural mind, and to say to one, Go, and he goes; and to another, Come, and he comes; and to my servant, Do this, and he does it, denotes the orderly arrangement of those principles. It is further to be observed concerning this arrangement, that to say to one, Go, and he goes, denotes the first energy and effect of the will in the execution of any purpose; whilst to say to another, Come, and he cometh, denotes the excitation and presence of means in the understanding for the accomplishment of the same purpose; and to say to my servant, Do this, and he does it, denotes the effect, or the full accomplishment of the purpose in word and in work. Q. But it follows, that when Jesus heard it, he marvelled, and said to them that followed, Verily I say to you, I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel — what instruction do you further learn from these words ? A. By Jesus marvelling, I learn, that the case of the Centurion was singular and extraordinary; and by his saying, I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel, I am further taught in what respect the case was both singular and extraordinary, namely. because the faith of the Centurion was a faith not grounded in himself, but in the affection of charity, thus in the god from whom that affection is derived, on which account it is called a great faith, for the term great is always applied, according to the spiritual idea, to denote heavenly good, which is the good of love and charity. And since the faith, which prevailed at that time in the Israelitish Church, was not of that description, being grounded in selfish and worldly love, and thus not in god, it is therefore added, I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel. Q. And what instruction do you further learn from the words which follow, where Jesus adds, and I say unto you, that many shall come from the East and West, and shall sit down with Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, in the kingdom of god, but the children of the kingdom shall be cast out into outer darkness; there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth? A. By many coming from the East and West, I am instructed in the call of the Gentiles into the Christian Church, both of those who were in a state of more enlightened good, signified by the East, and of those who were in a state of more obscure good, signified by the West; and by their sitting down with Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, in the kingdom of god, I am further taught the several degrees of goodness and of blessedness to which they will be admitted, whilst some attain to a celestial degree, signified by Abraham, some to a spiritual degree, signified by Isaac, and some to a natural degree, signified by Jacob; in other words, while some become principled in love to the lord, others in charity towards their neighbour, and lastly, others in simple obedience to the truth, because they believe it to be their duty to live uprightly and sincerely one amongst smother. For according to any other idea, what can be meant by sitting down with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of god? And again, by the children of the kingdom being cast out into outer darkness, where there is weeping and gnashing of teeth, I am further instructed, that they, who are principled in faith and truth alone, separate from a life of charity, or obedience to the truth, will be removed from all communion with the blessed, and plunged into a more terrible darkness than they who are ignorant of the truth, and will thus be deprived of all heavenly love and wisdom, and left a prey to every evil purpose and false principle, signified by weeping and gnashing of teeth. Q. But it is lastly written, that Jesus said to the Centurion, Go your way; and as you have believed, so be it done to you. And his servant was healed in the self-same hour — what is the instruction which you learn from these words? A. By Jesus saying to the Centurion, Go your way, is to be understood Divine Exhortation to live according to the great faith with which he was gifted, for to go, and to go in a way, according to the spiritual idea, signifies to walk or to live according to the knowledge of heavenly truth which has been received; and therefore I am instructed by these words, that every one, who has been blessed with the knowledge and belief of the eternal truth, ought to endeavour to form his life and love according to it; heavenly dictates. By Jesus saying further, as you have believed, so be it done to you. I am again instructed that the Divine Blessing, with its operation, attends every one, according to his faith; in other words, according to the ruling persuasions of his mind, as grounded in his ruling love, if that love be in agreement with the Divine Will, and that for this plain reason, because those persuasions are in conjunction with the eternal truth, and the eternal truth is ever connected with Omnipotence, agreeable to which idea it is written in. another place, that ail things are possible to him that believes. Lastly, I am instructed by the concluding words, his servant was healed in the self-same hour, that a Divine Effect always attends a Divine Intention and loving-kindness, in all cases, where obstructions to its operation are removed, as in the present instance of the faithful Centurion and his afflicted servant, and that thus the palsy is healed in all the lower principles of the human mind, whenever the higher principles are opened, by genuine faith and love, to the reception of the Divine Mercy and its full operation. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from, this Miracle? A. I learn, first, that there is a spiritual palsy as well as a natural one, and that a spiritual palsy consists in some spiritual obstruction in the mind and life, whereby the free circulation of heavenly love and wisdom is impeded, so that the mental faculties are not able to perform their proper functions, which functions consist in opposing evil and false principles, and in cherishing such as are in agreement with the supreme good and the supreme truth. I am instructed yet further, that no radical cure is to be found for this spiritual palsy but in the incarnate god, or In the great saviour, Jesus Christ in His divine humanity, and not even, in this god and saviour, unless he be approached in a right faith, that is to say, with a faith grounded in love and charity, producing right arrangement in all the subordinate powers and principles of the natural mind. I 1earn still further from the above Divine Miracle, that let the obstructions to heavenly life and love be ever so formidable, and the Divine circulation of Blessing be ever so much impeded, yet if Jesus Christ in His divine humanity be believed in and approached with a sincere heart, and in the spirit of true repentance, every obstruction will then soon be removed, which prevents the free circulation of His blessed influence, until at length the whole mind and life be restored to their proper health and strength, by being enabled to comply willingly and freely with the Divine Operation. I am resolved therefore now on, whensoever I feel my own mind affected with a spiritual palsy, to apply immediately, like the faithful Centurion above recorded, to my god and saviour for his healing virtue, and to apply to him with that living faith in His Divine Omnipotence, for which the Centurion was so eminently distinguished. I am resolved also to attend well to the operations of my own mind, that so all its powers and faculties may be brought into right arrangement, and thus rendered strong to withstand the assault of evil and false principles, and eager and earnest to cherish all heavenly and holy influences. Lastly, I am resolved to believe confidently, that if my faith in my god and saviour be grounded in His love and wisdom, it will then connect me perpetually with His Omnipotence, and through that Omnipotence every obstruction to the circulation of the Divine Blessing will finally be removed, and I shall feel myself restored to the free exercise of every mental faculty, and to the happy perception of its close conjunction with the mercy, favour, peace and blessedness of my heavenly father. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 5: 01.04. PETER'S WIFE'S MOTHER HEALED ======================================================================== Peter’s Wife’s Mother Healed Mat 8:14-16. And when Jesus was come into Peter’s house, He saw his wife’s mother laid, and sick of a fever, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by Jesus entering into Peter’s house, and by his seeing Peter’s wife’s mother laid, and sick of a fever? A. These words have both a literal and a spiritual meaning, like the words of all the other Miracles performed by the lord, and according to the literal meaning they relate to Peter as a man, and to his wife’s mother as to a person sick of a bodily disorder called a fever; but according to their spiritual meaning, they relate to Peter and to his wife’s mother, as representing spiritual principles belonging to the church, that is to say, to the members of the church at that period, and to the distemper with which the members of the church were then affected. Q. And according to the spiritual signification, what do you under stand by Jesus entering into Peter’s house? A. By Peter, as an apostle, is represented the principle of faith in the church, and especially of that faith which acknowledges the divinity of the great saviour, (see Mat 17:13-20); and by his house therefore are represented the interiors of that faith. Thus by Jesus entering Peter’s house is to be understood His Divine Influx into the interiors which constituted the faith of the church. Q. What then do you understand, according to the spiritual idea, by Peter’s wife’s mother, and what by Jesus seeing her laid, and sick of a fever? A. According to the spiritual idea, by Peter’s wife’s mother, is to be understood the affection in which the good of the faith of the church originates; and by Jesus seeing her laid, and sick of a fever, is further to be understood Divine Inspection into that affection, and a consequent discovery of its being merely natural, and infected with evils of concupiscence: for by Jesus seeing is signified Divine Inspection; and by being laid, and sick of a fever, is further denoted that the affection in which the good of the faith of the church originates, was immersed in mere natural love, and thus infested with the concupiscencies originating in that love. Q. But it is written, that Jesus touched her handy and the fever left her, and she arose and ministered to them——what do you here conceive to be expressed by Jesus touching her hand? and the fever leaving her? A. Agreeable to the above spiritual idea, by Jesus touching her hand is to be understood, the communication of Divine Power to the affection in which the good of the faith of the church originates; and by the fever leaving her in consequence of that touch, is to be further understood, that when that affection had communication opened with the Divine Power of the lord, and became thus conjoined with his love, it was then immediately liberated from the concupiscencies of evil which had before infested it, and was thus restored to its proper strength, purity, and activity. Q. And what do you understand by her arising, and ministering to them? A. These words, like the foregoing, have both a literal and a spiritual meaning, and in their literal meaning they relate to Peter’s wife’s mother, and to her arising out of her bed, and fulfilling her appointed duties, but in the spiritual sense, as applied to the affection in which the good of the faith of the church originates, they were intended to record the elevation of that affection, and its consequent application to works of service and of use in the church. And since all spiritual elevation implies an elevation towards the great and holy god, and thus a conjunction of life with Him, and the performing of useful services under His divine Influence, therefore this also is to be understood by arising and ministering to them. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above Miracle? A. I learn, in the first place, from its letter or history, to adore that Divine Power, by which the great saviour at one and the same time manifested His Divinity, and relieved the natural infirmities of His suffering creatures; and from the interior contents of that letter or history, I learn in the next place to acknowledge with equal adoration and gratitude the same Divine Power in its application to remove spiritual infirmity and disease. I learn further, from the significant history of a bodily fever, to reflect on that more terrible mental fever in which it originates, and which it was intended to represent and make manifest, and to be continually upon my guard against its assault and destructive effects. And since this mental fever consists in those concupiscencies of the natural man, which infest and defile the affection of truth, or of a right faith, in the spiritual man, I am further instructed by the spiritual sense of this Miracle, to be continually on the watch against the infecting influence of those concupiscencies, which all originate in self-love and an inordinate love of the world. I am resolved therefore from now on, through the Divine Grace and Mercy, to take heed to myself, lest at any time the defiling influence of mere natural love should infect the higher principles of the life of my immortal spirit, and thus plunge me into that most terrible and dangerous, yet least dreaded of all disorders, a fever of the mind, Still should it come to pass, through the weakness of my corrupt nature, that I shall at any time become the prey of such infection, I am resolved not to despair of Divine Aid and Relief but rather in all humility of penitence and contrition, to throw myself at the feet of my merciful saviour, and implore the healing power of His divine benediction. Thus may I hope, like Peter’s wife’s mother of old, who had the happiness to experience the blessed touch of her saviour’s hand, to be partaker of the same high privilege, and to receive from that touch the cure of all my spiritual maladies. And thus too, like her, shall I also arise and minister; in other words, become elevated to an eternal conjunction of life with my god, and by virtue of that elevation, be enabled to perform all useful services to my fellow-creatures to His glory and my own happiness. amen, ======================================================================== CHAPTER 6: 01.05. THE DEVILS CAST OUT ======================================================================== The Devils Cast Out Mat 8:16-18. When the even was come, they brought to him many that were possessed with devils, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by the even coming? A. By the even coming, according to the sense of the letter, is to be understood the close of the natural day, or the time when the sun sets to this lower world of nature; but according to the spiritual idea contained under the letter, by the even coming is to be understood a state of obscure faith and love in the church, or the close of the spiritual day, when the Sun of Heaven sets on benighted mortals, in consequence of their want of faith in the brightness of his rays, and their want of love for that heavenly warmth which they inspire. Q. And what do you conceive to be here meant by the possessed of devils? A. By devils are to be understood the spirits and powers of darkness in the infernal world, and by being possessed of these devils, according to the sense of the letter, is to be understood the possession which these spirits and powers took at that time of the bodies of men; for such at that time was the deplorable state of the Jewish church, in its departure from god and His kingdom, that the infernal inhabitants entered even into the corporeal part of man, and ruled it at pleasure. But by being possessed of devils, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood the possession which the infernal powers take of the souls of men, by virtue of which possession they obtain entire government over the thoughtless and impenitent, and rule them with the iron rod of diabolical malice and agency. For such is the awful situation of man in this lower world, that he is placed as it were between two kingdoms, the kingdom of light, which is the kingdom of god, and the kingdom of darkness which is the kingdom of the enemy of god, called the Devil and Satan ; the Devil by reason of the diabolical evil by which he is impelled to all kind of mischief: and Satan, by reason of the false principles in which that evil works, and effects its mischievous purposes. Moreover, the inhabitants of both these kingdoms have access to man, and he becomes of necessity associated with the one or the other according to his ruling love, that is to say, according as he is desirous to submit himself to the government of the divine love and wisdom of god, or to govern himself, by exalting his own will and wisdom above the will and wisdom of the most high. It is further to be remarked concerning such association, that, man acquires a life and a form according to it, an angelic life and form if his association be angelic, but an infernal life and form if his association be infernal. Jesus Christ accordingly declares concerning the wicked and unbelieving Jews, You are of your father the devil, and the lusts of your father you will do. (John 8:44). Q. Can you assign any reason why the possessed of devils were brought to Jesus when the even was come? A. Yes, if the even be understood according to the spiritual idea above expressed, as denoting the absence of good and of truth in the church, for whenever this is the case, then the members of the church must of necessity become a prey to evil and error, and of course must be possessed of devils, because wherever evil and error are, there the powers of darkness, called the Devil and Satan, must have their abode. It is only therefore in the even, according to its spiritual meaning, that mankind can become possessed of devils, and thus brought to Jesus for deliverance. Q. But it follows, that He cast out the spirits with His Word, and healed all that were sick — what do you understand by Jesus casting out the spirits with His Word? A. By the spirits here spoken of are to be understood the powers of darkness, who have their abodes in all man’s natural evils and errors, and by the word of Jesus Christ is to be understood the complex of His divine love and wisdom brought down into the letter, or literal expression. By Jesus casting out the spirits with His Word is consequently to be understood the removal of evil and error through the implantation, the growth, and fruitfulness of heavenly love and wisdom, or what amounts to the same of heavenly goodness and truth. It is not therefore to be understood that Jesus cast out the spirits by the mere sound of His voice, or by any extraordinary act of divine authority or omnipotence separate from His divine love and wisdom, for evil can never be supplanted but by good, nor can error be supplanted but by truth, and therefore it is to be understood, that the voice of the blessed Jesus operated to the casting out the spirits by virtue of the omnipotence of His divine love and wisdom, as formed and contained in it. Hence then may be discovered the obligation imposed on every one, who is desirous of experiencing in his own mind the casting out of the powers of darkness, to cherish carefully in himself the contrary powers of heavenly love and wisdom, or goodness and truth, from a firm conviction that one opposite can never be cast out but by another, in like manner as darkness can never be cast out but by light, nor cold but by heat. Q. And what do you conceive to be meant by the words which follow, and healed all that were sick? A. By the sick, according to the spiritual sense O the Miracle, are here meant those who are spiritually sick, and the spiritually sick are all those who are distempered in their understanding, by reason of the influence of false persuasions and perverted thoughts. By healing the sick therefore is to be understood the removal of such false principles and perverted thoughts by the insemination and growth of heavenly truth and knowledge. This operation of healing the sick accordingly follows that of casting out the spirits, because by the spirits are meant the spirits of evil infecting the will of man with disorderly love, and until these spirits are cast out, it is impossible the sick can be healed, since if the love be disorderly in the will, it must of necessity give birth to false persuasions in the understanding; but no sooner is evil extirpated from the will, than error is at the same time extirpated from the understanding, and thus the sick are healed. Q. But it is added, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet, saying, Himself took our infirmities, and bare our sicknesses. How do you understand these words? A. By these words I am instructed that all the Miracles worked by the blessed Jesus were of divine prediction, and that thus the prophetic Word and the evangelical are in the most perfect harmony, and accord with each other; the latter being the accomplishment of the former, in the person of the incarnate god. By this god taking our infirmities, and bearing our sicknesses? I am further instructed, that he subjected himself to the assault of all those evils and errors which infest the nature of man, and which are in connection with the powers of darkness, to the intent that he might finally subdue those powers, and deliver man from their tyrannical usurpation. Mention is accordingly made both of infirmities and sicknesses, because infirmities relate to the disorders of evil in the human will, whilst sicknesses have relation to the disorders resulting from false principles in the understanding. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this Miracle? A. I learn in the first place to adore the power of that incarnate god, who was manifested to destroy the works of the devil, both in the heart, in the understanding, and in the operation of man, by delivering the heart from the love of evil, and the understanding from the darkness of error, and the operation from the mischievous effects of both. I learn in the next place to venerate that holy word, which proceeds from this incarnate god, and is embodied in the letter or literal sense of the divine records, and to regard it as the grand complex of the divine will and wisdom let down from heaven for the use of man, by forming in him the same heavenly love and wisdom with which itself is filled. I learn also that the incarnate god effects all his saving purposes by the instrumentality of this His holy word. I learn further that so far as I deliberately cherish any evil or error, in the same proportion I admit into myself infernal agency, and by degrees become a living form of diabolical influence, from which I can never by any possibility be delivered, but through the reception of the eternal truth, producing in me the blessed fruits of repentance, of faith in Jesus Christ, and of a holy life according to His divine precepts. I learn lastly to adore that divine mercy, which was pleased in the fulness of time to assume a body of flesh, and in that body to submit to all the assaults of the powers of darkness, for the purpose of subduing them, and thus removing them from man. I am resolved therefore from now on to take Jesus Christ for my only god and saviour, by believing that he alone has power to deliver me from my natural evils, and thus from infernal association and usurpation. I am resolved also to venerate His holy word, by believing it to proceed from him, and to contain in its inmost bosom all the fullness of His love and wisdom, by virtue of which it is in continual close connection with Him. Lastly, I am resolved to cherish this holy word in my heart, my understanding, and my life, from a full conviction that I can never attain any ascendancy over my own natural evils, and thus over the powers of darkness, only so far as the heavenly goods and truths of the eternal word are implanted and bring forth their blessed fruits in my life and conversation, amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 7: 01.06. THE WIND AND WAVES REBUKED ======================================================================== The Wind and Waves Rebuked Mat 8:23-28. And when He was entered into a ship, His disciples followed Him, etc. Q. WHAT do you understand here by Jesus entering into a ship, and His disciples following him ? A. By Jesus entering into a ship, and His disciples following him, is to be understood, according to the literal sense of the history, that He and his disciples entered into a natural ship, such as floats on the natural waters of the sea; but according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood that they entered into what is signified and represented by a ship, and this is nothing else but the knowledge of what is good and true, as derived from the holy word, since what a ship is as to its natural use and service, that the knowledge of what is good and true is as to its spiritual use and service. Q. Can you prove to me, from the authority of the sacred scriptures, that ships have such a spiritual meaning and signification? A. Yes; it is said in the prophecy of Balaam, in reference to the gospel dispensation, that ships shall come from the coast of Shittim, and shall afflict Asshur, and shall afflict Eber, and he also shall perish for ever, (Num 24:24). where it must be evident to every considerate person, that by ships are not meant ships, but the knowledges of good and truth derived from the word of god, which were to oppose and overturn the reasonings of the natural man, signified by Asshur and Eber, It is written again in the prophet Isaiah, where he is speaking, in like manner of the Lord’s Advent, and of its extraordinary effects, that the day of the Lord should be upon all the ships of Tarshish, (Isa 2:16). where it is again manifest that by ships cannot be meant ships, but the knowledges of good and truth, and in the opposite sense the knowledges of what is evil and false, which were to be supplanted at the appearing of the incarnate god. To the same purport it is written in the Revelations concerning the destruction of Babylon, or of the corrupt church signified by Babylon, Alas, alas, that great city, wherein were made rich all that had ships in the sea, by reason of her costliness! (Rev 18:19). from which words it is again plain, that by ships are not meant ships, but the doctrinals taught in that corrupt church. Q. But it is said on this occasion, that there arose a great tempest in the sea, insomuch that the ship was covered with the waves — what do you conceive to be meant by the tempest here spoken of, and by the ship being covered with the waves? A. According to the sense of the letter, by the tempest is to be understood a natural tempest or storm; and by the ship being covered with waves is to be understood the natural effect of that tempest or storm, in covering the ship with the waters of the sea. But, according to the spiritual idea, by a tempest is to be understood a spiritual tempest, which is no other than the agitation and perturbation of the natural man, occasioned by the knowledges of good and truth derived from the word of god, which are here treated of. For in regard to those knowledges, the case is this, that when they are first communicated to the natural man, they disturb him in his natural loves, and thus cause what is called spiritual trial; trouble, or temptation, here called a tempest: and by the ship being covered with the waves is therefore to be understood, that the knowledges of heavenly good and truth were obscured by the agitation and perturbation of the natural man, signified by the waves. Q. And what do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written; that he was asleep? A. The sleep here spoken of, according to the spiritual idea, has reference to the state of the natural man, under the agitation and perturbation which is here described. For when the natural man is in such a state, then Jesus appears to be asleep; in other words, His Divine presence is not noted or attended to, being immersed in the distracted affections and thoughts of the natural mind. Sleep therefore, in such case, is ascribed to the blessed Jesus, in like manner as anger and wrath are ascribed to Him, when yet they are only appearances, arising from the evil and false principles which prevail in the mind of man, leading him to suppose that, because he is against god, therefore God is against him. Thus Jesus is said to be asleep, when in reality the sleep appertains only to man, who is pronounced to be asleep, when he thinks naturally, and not spiritually, that is to say, when his understanding is immersed in the things of nature, and not awake to the perception and enjoyment of things spiritual and eternal. Q. But it is added, that His disciples came to Him, and awoke Him, saying, lord, save us; we perish — what do you understand by these words? A. By the disciples coming to Him is to be understood that their affections were excited towards Him, because every man comes or goes, according to the state of his ruling affection. If therefore that affection be directed towards Jesus Christ, man is then said to come to that great and holy god, as on the other hand, he goes away from that god, whenever his affection grows cold towards Him, by being fixed on inferior objects. And as by coming to Jesus Christ is thus to be understood a state of the ruling affection, so by awaking Him is to be further understood a state of the ruling thought, or a state of the understanding in its elevation upwards towards things spiritual and eternal, agreeable to what was just now observed concerning Jesus being asleep. This state of elevated affection and elevated thought is further described in these words; which the disciples spoke on the occasion, lord, save us; ice perish: for by the prayer, lord, save us, is evidently described a state of elevated affection; and by the additional words, we perish, is as evidently denoted a state of elevated thought, since without such a state it would have been impossible for them to discern the danger and destruction which threatened them. Q. And what do you conceive to be meant by the words which next follow, where it is written, He says to them, Why are you fearful, O you of little faith? A. By the interesting question, Why are you fearful? the blessed Jesus intended to lead His disciples to explore in their own minds the cause and origin of fear, that so they might discover that all fear has its source in mere natural affection and thought separate from spiritual affection and thought; and therefore He adds, O you of little faith, by which words He manifestly points out a defect of those spiritual principles. For all faith, properly so called, is the complex of spiritual affection and spiritual thought, since, if spiritual affection be wanting, it is impossible to suppose that there can be any true faith; and in like manner, if spiritual thought be wanting, the principle of faith cannot be supposed to exist. When therefore the blessed Jesus applied the words of censure, O ye of little faith, He manifestly designed to instruct His disciples, and through them all succeeding generations of mankind, that fear is the constant result of the want or weakness of heavenly principles in the human mind, in consequence of which want or weakness the mind is separated from that Divine strength and omnipotence, in which all true courage originates, and is left a prey to all those fears and alarms, which beset the natural mind in such state of separation, by plunging it into a dreadful association with the powers of darkness, of terror, and of dismay. Q. But it is added, that then He arose, and rebuked the winds and the sea; and there was a great calm——what do you understand by these words? A. By Jesus arising is to be understood, according to the spiritual idea, His exaltation in the minds of His disciples as the supreme good and the supreme truth, for god can never be said to arise in any other sense than this. When therefore the Psalmist says, Let god arise, and let His enemies be scattered, he manifestly prays for such an exaltation of god, that is to say, of His Divine love and wisdom in his own mind and life, by virtue of which he might experience power over all his spiritual enemies. It is accordingly added in the history of this miracle, that when Jesus arose, He rebuked the winds and the sea, and there was a great calm, because to rebuke the winds and the sea denotes the exercise of His omnipotence in subduing the infernal influence signified by the wind, and the evils and errors of the natural man signified by the sea, which exercise is to be considered as the result of His arising, in other words, of His being exalted to the supreme place in the affections and thoughts of His disciples. It is therefore to be well understood, that infernal influence, evil and error, can never be removed in man, until the blessed Jesus is first exalted in his mind and life, but that no sooner does such exaltation take place, than presently the wind and the sea are rebuked, and the agitations and perturbations of the natural man give place to the tranquil and composing principles operative from the great redeemer in the spirit of man. Thus, as it is here recorded, there is a great calm, because the great calm here spoken of has relation to the gentle and pacific rule of heavenly principles and persuasions in the human mind on the removal of the contrary principles and persuasions suggested by the powers of darkness, and it is called a great calm, to denote its Divine origin, as having its source in the operation of the Divine mercy and love, for the term great is always applied to denote that operation. Q. But it is further written, that the men marvelled, saying, What manner of man is this, that even the winds and the sea obey him? — what particular instruction do you learn, from these words? A. By the men marvelling, I am taught what is the genuine effect on human minds, resulting from the display of the Divine Omnipotence in removing infernal influence in the natural man, and that this effect is the acknowledgement of that omnipotence, or of a Divine power infinitely exceeding all human agency whatever, for to marvel, according to the spiritual idea, is to recognise such a power. It accordingly follows that they said, What manner of man is this, that even the winds and the sea obey him? by which words it is evident, that they began to regard the blessed Jesus as a being more than human, and even as Divine, since no other than a Divine Being can be supposed to exercise control over the winds and sea, and especially over what is signified and represented by the winds and sea, namely, the tempestuous influences of the powers of darkness operating on the disorderly passions and appetites of the natural man. When therefore the men exclaimed, What manner of man is this? it is the same thing as if they had said. This man can be no other than the great and holy god. Thus the first disciples were convinced by this miracle of the Supreme Divinity of their lord and master, and thus too all future disciples may be convinced of the same divinity, whensoever they observe in themselves the turbulence of unruly passions subdued, and in their place the tranquillity, the peace and gentleness restored, which ever flow from the admission of the meek and mild Spirit of the holy Jesus. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn to adore, in the first place, the Divine Agency, by which the almighty has been pleased to manifest His absolute control over the elements of nature; and in the next place to adore the same Divine Agency, as exercised upon the higher elements of human minds. I learn further to trace up that agency to the incarnate god, so as to behold in His divine humanity all the fullness of deity and of omnipotence. I am instructed yet further, by the spiritual sense of this miracle, to look up to that incarnate god for protection under all my spiritual trials and temptations, and especially for deliverance from the winds and waves of my own boisterous passions excited by the destructive influence of the powers of darkness. Lastly, I am taught that in such perturbation and tempests of the natural mind, the blessed Jesus frequently appears to be asleep, and that He can only be awakened by fervent prayer arising from a mind sensible of its danger and of its inability to be its own deliverer. I am resolved therefore now on, in all my spiritual trials and troubles, to apply to and put my whole trust in the holy Jesus, and then I may humbly hope that he will arise, and rebuke the winds and sea, so as to produce a great calm in my disturbed mind. Then too shall I also be led to marvel at the omnipotence of His operations, and to answer the interesting question, What manner of man is this, by the devout and grateful acknowledgment that he is god over all blessed for ever, the alpha and omega, the beginning and the ending of all spiritual life, power, protection, benediction, and salvation; to whom be ascribed all praise, honour and glory, for ever. amen ! ======================================================================== CHAPTER 8: 01.07. THE POSSESSED WITH DEVILS COMING OUT OF THE TOMBS ======================================================================== The Possessed With Devils Coming Out of the Tombs Mat 8:28-34. And when He was come to the other side, to the country of the Gergesenes, there met Him two possessed with devils, coming out of the tombs, exceeding fierce, so that no man might pass by that way, etc Q. HOW do you understand the miracle here recorded, according to its literal sense? A. According to the literal sense of this miracle, are to be understood two men, who, as to their bodies, were possessed or obsessed by infernal spirits, coming out from amongst the filth and impurity of sepulchres, and so exceeding fierce and ungovernable, that it was unsafe for any one to come near them. And by the devils requesting to be permitted to enter into the herd of swine, and by the herd, when such permission was granted, running down a steep place into the sea, and perishing in the waters? is further to be understood, that the devils find delight in entering into the bodies of unclean animals, and then in instigating those animals to their own destruction. Q. And how do you understand this miracle according to its spiritual sense, or according to that sense which is veiled under the letter? A. According to the spiritual sense, by two are not to be understood two men, but two principles: and by their being possessed of devils, and meeting Jesus is further to be understood, that those principles were in connection with the power of darkness, and thus in opposition to the holy Jesus, that is to say, to his divine love and divine wisdom. And by their coming out of the tombs is further to be understood their issuing forth from their infernal abodes: and by their being exceeding fierce, so that no man might pass by that way, is further described the violence of their opposition to the eternal truth, so that it was impossible for any truth to be manifested before them. According to this sense, therefore, by the devils beseeching Jesus to suffer them to enter into the herd of swine, and by Jesus permitting them, is further to be understood, that infernal spirits take delight in infesting both the bodies and minds of men, and that when, by the Word of the great redeemer, they are expelled from the minds of the humble, and the penitent, they then take refuge, and this by divine permission, in the minds of those who are here figured by the swine, that is to say, of the sordidly sensual and avaricious, who, under their infernal influence, descend rapidly into the infernal pit, and there perish in the polluted waters of all infernal persuasions. Q. And what do you conceive the two principles to be, which are described as possessed of devils and meeting Jesus ? A. By these two principles are to be understood the principle of evil in the human will, and the principle of error in the human understanding, both of them in connection with infernal agency: and by their meeting Jesus is further described a trial or temptation which the saviour of the world endured from the powers of darkness operating in His infirm humanity, before it was fully glorified, or made divine. Q. But it is written, that the devils cried out, saying, What have we to do with you, Jesus, you son of god ? Art you come here to torment us before the time? — what do you understand by these words? A. By the devils crying out, saying, What have we to do with you, Jesus, you son of god? is to be understood the vehemence of their opposition to the principles of the divine love and wisdom, notwithstanding their conviction that those principles were incarnate in the blessed Jesus. By the same words therefore is described, the torment under which they laboured through the opposition between their wills and their understandings, since with their understandings they knew the truth, but with their wills they hated and rejected it. They therefore exclaim, Art you come here to torment us (or, as it is expressed in the original, to explore us), before the time? to denote, that the manifestation of the divine truth was to them a source of the most exquisite pangs, because it was in opposition to their ruling love, and that consequently nothing is more painful to a wicked infernal being, than to have his purposes and thoughts thus exposed to the scrutinizing light of the divine intelligence. Q. You have already told me what is to be understood by the herd of swine, and by the devils requesting permission to enter into them. Can you explain to me what is further to be understood by the words of the blessed Jesus, where it is written, He said to them, Go? A. The Significant term Go, involves in it the whole of the divine will respecting the powers of darkness, which is, that they be eternally separated from Him, His kingdom, and His children, so as to be incapable of doing any mischief either to the great father of being, or to His happy family. Under every spiritual trial therefore, stirred up by the powers of darkness in the minds of the humble and the penitent, the great saviour is ever uttering the same authoritative command, Go, and the effect of this divine word is, to remove those powers from their usurped abode, that they may enter into minds congenial to their own, and precipitate them into their own infernal kingdom. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above miracle? A. I learn again to adore that divine power, which was manifested to destroy the works of the devil, and overturn their empire, whether established in the bodies or in the souls of men. I learn also from the above miracle, that the powers of darkness are in direct opposition to the love and wisdom of Jesus Christ, and that their greatest torment consists in being explored by the light of the divine truth, and in the discovery thus made of their secret purposes, thoughts, and devices. I am also further instructed, that a single word uttered by the great saviour is able to put to flight a host of infernals, and that that saviour is ever uttering such a word of salvation in the hearts of all his penitent and suffering children. Lastly, I learn to tremble under the idea of the effect of infernal influence, and of those defiled concupiscencies in which it operates, since this effect is nothing less than a rapidity of motion downwards, hurrying its miserable subjects from the realms of bliss, to perish everlastingly in the disturbed waters of impiety and iniquity. I am resolved therefore, henceforth to be upon my guard against such infernal agency, and for this purpose to endeavour, through divine mercy, to keep my mind pure from all denied affections and concupiscencies. Thus, under the assault of all my spiritual enemies, I may hope to hear the authoritative word, Go, pronounced against them by my god and saviour, and may thus behold every infernal power cast out, and the blessed Jesus glorified in their separation, and in the consequent salvation of His humble and grateful child. Thus too I shall be preserved from imitating the folly and wickedness of the people amongst whom the above miracle was worked, and of whom it is written, that when they saw Jesus, they besought Him to depart out of their coasts, since by the experience which I have of the omnipotence and miraculous energy of my god and saviour in my own bosom, I shall be led to cleave to Him the more closely, and to beseech Him the more earnestly, not to depart, but rather to take up His eternal abode in my purified and grateful bosom, amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 9: 01.08. THE SICK OF THE PALSY HEALED ======================================================================== The Sick Of The Palsy Healed Mat 9:2-9. And, behold, they brought to him a man sick of the palsy, lying on a bed: and Jesus, seeing their faith, said to the sick of the palsy, Son, be of good cheer; your sins be forgiven you, etc. Q. YOU have already told me, in the explanation of a former miracle, what is to be understood both naturally and spiritually by the sick of the palsy, and that it implies some obstruction to the circulation of the blood in the body, and of truth in the mind, in consequence of which both the corporeal and mental organs are rendered incapable of performing their proper functions. Can you now tell me why the sick of the palsy, as here recorded, is described as lying on a bed? A. The reason is, because a bed, according to its spiritual signification, figures and represents the natural principle of the life of man, since what a literal bed is to the body of a man, that the natural principle is to the spirit of a man. For man, it is well known, or may be known, consists of two distinct principles, the one natural, the other spiritual; in other words, the one formed to be affected by, and to take cognizance of the things of this world, and the other formed to be affected by, and to take cognizance of the things of another world, namely. god, His law, His kingdom, His providence, His perfections, and the relationship subsisting between Him and His creatures. Agreeable then to this idea, the natural principle, as being the lowest, may be regarded as the bed of the spiritual principle, which is above it, because the spiritual principle rests upon, and finds its repose in the natural, in like manner as the body of man rests upon, and finds its repose in a literal bed. That bed has such a spiritual signification, may be plain from these passages in the holy word, where it is mentioned. Thus it is written in the Book of Psalms; Commune with your own heart on your bed, (Psa 4:4). And again, He deviseth mischief upon his bed, (Psa 36:4). And again, You will make all his bed in his sickness, (Psa 41:3). And again, When I remember you upon my bed, (Psa 63:6). And again, in Isaiah, The bed is shorter than that a man can stretch himself on it) (Isa 28:20). in all which passages, by bed is not meant a bed literally, but the natural mind or principle, on which the spiritual mind or principle rests, and in which it thinks. The awful sentence therefore against Jezebel was denounced in these words, Behold, I will cast her into a bed, (Rev 2:22), to denote that she would be left to the natural mind or principle, and to its false persuasions. It deserves however to be noted, that the spiritual bed here spoken of varies according to the state of the natural principle, being a soft and easy bed if the natural principle be brought into right subordination to the spiritual, but a hard and uneasy bed, if such subordination be wanting. By the sick of the palsy, therefore, lying on a bed, is to be understood the connection of the spiritual principle with the natural, and that in this connection there was some obstruction, which prevented the due circulation of spiritual principles and persuasions in the natural life and its principles and persuasions. Q. But it is said, that Jesus, seeing their faith, said to the sick of the palsy, Son, be of good cheer; your sins be forgiven you — what is it you understand by these words of the blessed Jesus, Son, be of good cheer; your sins be forgiven you? A. Jesus, in calling the sick of the palsy, his son, announces his divine parental affection to all His distempered and suffering children, and this is language at once the most tender, most consolatory, and most encouraging. When He says again to this son, Be of good cheer, He meant to announce, further, the presence and comfort of His own mercy and love, since it is impossible that man can be of good cheer, or, as it is expressed in the original, have confidence, by any other means than the communication and reception of the divine favour and loving-kindness. And again, when He pronounces, your sins be forgiven you, He meant to declare the saving blessed effect of such favour and loving-kindness, in removing and separating all the principles of sin and disorder, thus in purifying the affections and thoughts from all defilement of iniquity, and finally restoring the whole man, with all his principles both natural and spiritual, to the order, the image, the peace and blessing of god and heaven. Q. But it is added, that certain of the scribes said within themselves, This man blasphemes, And Jesus knowing their thoughts said, Wherefore think you evil in your hearts? — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. I learn that sinful men, especially if their sin be strengthened and supported by human learning, and what are commonly called great talents, are ever ready to misinterpret the words of the most high, and to call His wisdom foolishness, and the declarations of his mercy blasphemy. I learn further an additional proof of the divinity of my saviour, manifested so evidently in His discernment of the thoughts of those with whom He was conversing; for who but the only god can possess such discernment? Thirdly, from the significant question, Wherefore think you evil in your hearts? I am taught to reflect, not only that all evil thoughts proceed from a corrupt heart, but also that they are in themselves most unreasonable and groundless, being nothing more or less than oppositions to the divine love and wisdom of the Most high god. Q. But the blessed Jesus adds, as a proof of the unreasonableness of such evil thoughts, Whether is easier to say, Your sins be forgiven you; or to say, Arise, and walk? — what do you conceive to be the force and drift of this significant question? A. My saviour would instruct me by this significant question, that to forgive sins and to cure bodily disease, are acts which equally require the exercise of Divine Omnipotence, and that consequently the supernatural cure of a bodily disease implies the power to cure a mental disease. He would instruct me therefore to regard all His healing operations, exercised on the bodies of men, as proofs most positive of His divine power to exercise similar operations on the souls or spirits of men. And the reason is plain, because sin, properly considered, is nothing but a distemper of the soul; and to forgive sin therefore, or, as it is expressed in the original, to remit it, means nothing more or less than to remove that distemper. The blessed Jesus therefore, by every act of healing exercised on the bodies of men, gave a full demonstration of His divine power to heal their souls or spirits; in other words, to forgive sins: to which purpose He declares afterwards, But that you may know that the son of man has power on earth to forgive sins, (then says He to the sick of the palsy ) Arise, take up your bed, and go to your house. Q. And what do you conceive to be involved in the words, Arise, take up your bed, and go to your house? A. The injunction to arise, involves in it spiritually an elevation of the affections and thoughts, or of the will and understanding, from earthly things to heavenly; in other words, from self-love and the love of the world to the love of god and neighbourly love. The injunction again, to take up the bed, involves in it a similar elevation of the natural mind, with all its purposes, words and works, agreeable to what was said above concerning the spiritual signification of the term bed. And lastly, the injunction, go to your house, spiritually considered, involves in it a divine exhortation to the sick of the palsy, and thus to every distempered child of man, to retire into the interiors of his own mind, where the most high has His consecrated abode, and there to dwell continually in the enjoyment of the divine presence, favour and benediction of the god who heals all his infirmities. Q. In the conclusion it is said, that he arose, and departed to his house. But when the multitude saw it, they marvelled, and glorified god, which had given such power to men——what do you learn from these words? A. By the sick of the palsy arising, and departing to his house, I am taught to discern the effect of the divine word of the most high, produced in the ultimates of nature. For such is the quality of the divine intention and thought, which is the same thing with the divine word or speech, that it ever proceeds to its effect, which effect terminates in the ultimates of the natural world, and from thence returns, by re-action, to its divine source. And from the multitude marvelling at the sight of the effect, and glorifying god which had given such power to men, I am further instructed in the true disposition and genuine character of the followers of the blessed Jesus, that is to say, of the real living members of His church and kingdom, namely. that they adore with wonder the effects of His omnipotence, in removing the disorders both of body and mind, and thus of restoring man to his original purity, order, and life; and further, that they refer these effects to the union of the divine and human nature in the person of the incarnate god, and thus worship Jesus Christ in His divine humanity as One with the eternal father, consequently as the supreme and only god, who has all power both in heaven and earth. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn again to adore the power of that merciful god and saviour, which I find exercised in healing the bodily infirmities of mankind. But I learn still more to adore that same divine power as applied to the removal of spiritual infirmity and distemper, and as expressing itself in the divine consolatory words, Son, be of good cheer your sins be forgiven you. From the account too of the above miracle, I receive an additional confirmation of my faith in the divinity of my lord and saviour, of whom I find it written, that He knew the thoughts of those with whom He conversed, for such knowledge is a peculiar characteristic of divinity, and consequently a demonstration that the person possessing it could be no other than the supreme god. Again I learn, that the power of healing bodily disease involves in it, of necessary consequence, the power of healing spiritual disease, and that therefore the blessed Jesus, in controlling the disorders of matter, exhibited a proof most positive that the kingdom of mind also was subject to His authority, and that of course he was able likewise to control all its disorders, and to restore it to its proper health, vigour, and enjoyment. Lastly, I learn what is the true temper and spirit of the followers of this incarnate god, or of the members of His church and kingdom, and that their minds are continually filled with wonder and adoration at observing the effects of His mercy and omnipotence as exhibited both in matter and in mind, and further, that they are led by those effects to the acknowledgment of the incarnate god, and to the devout worship of Him in His divine humanity, thus in His one-ness with the eternal father. I am resolved therefore from now on to take this god for my god, and to believe in and follow Him, as the restorer of the breach in all the principles both of my body and of my mind. So may I humbly hope, in all my sorrows and infirmities, to hear from His divine mouth the consolatory words, Son, be of good cheer, your sins be forgiven you; and penetrated with a lively and grateful sense of the mercy and power of these divine words, I may finally experience their blessed efficacy, in enabling me to arise, and take up my bed, and go to my house. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 10: 01.09. THE RULER'S DAUGHTER RAISED ======================================================================== The Ruler’s Daughter Raised Mat 9:18-27 While he spoke these things to them, behold, there came a certain ruler, and worshiped Him, saying, My daughter is even now dead: but come, and lay your hand upon her, and she shall live, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by a certain ruler and his daughter? A. According to the sense of the letter, by a certain ruler is to be understood a person, who was in authority amongst the Jews; and by his daughter is to be understood his daughter according to the flesh; but agreeable to the spiritual sense of this miracle, by a certain ruler is to be understood the church, or the members of the church, principled in heavenly truths, from which comes all spiritual rule or dominion; and by his daughter, in agreement with the same sense, is to be understood the affection derived from that truth, for such, in the language of inspiration, is the signification of the term daughter, and therefore so frequent mention is made of the daughter of Zion, the daughter of Jerusalem, and the daughter of the uncircumcised, denoting the affection of good, the affection of truth, and the opposite affections of evil and of error. Q. What then do you understand by this ruler’s daughter being dead, according to this spiritual signification of the term? A. By being dead, according to the sense of the letter, is to be understood natural death, or the separation of the soul from the body, but by being dead, according to the spiritual sense, is to be understood spiritual death, or the separation of the soul from the life of the love of god, and its consequent immersion in the unclean loves of self and of the world. When therefore it is said by the ruler, My daughter is even now dead, it is to be understood that the affection of truth was thus separated from heavenly love, and thereby immersed in unclean loves. Q. But it is added concerning the ruler, that he said to Jesus, Come, and lay your hand upon her, and she shall live — what do you conceive to be implied in these words? A. They are words expressive of a strong faith in the divinity of the great saviour, and are therefore recorded for the instruction and benefit of the church in all succeeding ages. For when the ruler says, Come, in application to the great saviour, he manifestly intended to supplicate His divine presence, mercy, and benediction; and when he added, lay your hand upon her, he meant further to supplicate a communication with the Divine Omnipotence; and lastly, when he concludes, she shall live, he expresses a strong confidence in the effect of such communication, by restoring a dead affection to the newness of heavenly life, vigour and enjoyment. Q. And what do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written, that Jesus arose, and followed him, and so did His disciples? A. According to the sense of the letter, by these words is to be understood, that Jesus and His disciples rose up, and followed the ruler to his house, but according to the spiritual sense, by Jesus arising, is to be understood the elevation of His humanity to a closer and fuller union with His divinity, agreeable to the process by which He gradually made His humanity divine, by uniting it fully with the eternal father in Himself. This divine process was called His glorification, agreeable to His own words, where He says, "Now is the Son of Man glorified, and in another place, Father, glorify Your name. And by His following the ruler, is to be understood, according to the same sense, the intenseness of His love to fulfill the desire which He had before implanted in the ruler’s mind. It is added, and so did His disciples, to denote that Jesus and His disciples are always united, because His disciples are all those who admit into their wills’ and understandings His divine love and wisdom. Q. But it is written, that when Jesus cams into the ruler’s house, and saw the minstrels and the people making a noise, He said to them, Give place; for the maid is not dead, but sleeps: and they laughed Him to scorn — what do you understand by these words? A. These words, like the foregoing, have their spiritual as well as their literal meaning, and according to their spiritual interpretation, by Jesus coming into the ruler’s house, is signified His divine influx into the minds of those who are represented by the ruler, namely. such as are principled in the knowledge of the eternal truth, but without that affection, which the truth is calculated to produce. And by His seeing the minstrels, and the people making a noise, is further signified, according to the same sense, His divine inspection of the disorderly state of their affections and thoughts; for by the minstrels are spiritually denoted the things relating to the will; and by the people, the things relating to the understanding; and by their making a noise, is signified the disorderly and. disturbed state of both. Again, by His saying to them, Give place; for the maid is not dead, but sleeps, is to be understood, His divine control over that disorder and disturbance, that so he might restore the affection of truth to its proper state of vigour and activity, inasmuch as it was not really dead, or voluntarily and deliberately immersed in evil love, but asleep; in other words, immersed for a time, and unintentionally, in mere natural appetites and affections. And by their laughing Him to scorn, is further to be understood, that they were incapable of apprehending this distinction between death and sleep, and therefore made light of it, as a distinction not worth attending to. Q. It is lastly written, that when the people were put forth. He went in, and took her by the hand, and the maid arose. And the fame hereof went abroad into all that land — how do you understand these words? A. By the people being put forth, is to be understood the separation of disorderly thoughts; and by His going in, and taking her by the hand, is to be understood His divine influx into the affection of truth, and a communication thereby of divine power; and by the maid arising, is further to be understood the elevation of that affection out of the natural affections and appetites in which it had been immersed. Lastly, by the fame thereof going forth into all that land, is denoted the church’s acknowledgement of a divine supernatural agency, proceeding from the humanity of the incarnate god. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn again to adore the divine omnipotence of my god and saviour, as exercised in the double kingdom of matter and of mind; of matter, by raising up to life a dead, body; and of mind, by elevating out of unclean loves a mental affection. I learn further, to distinguish in myself between an affection which is dead, and an affection which is asleep, and to see that the latter is capable of admitting divine influx and power, and thus of being raised out of sleep; in other words, of being elevated out of the natural state into which it was fallen, into a spiritual one of life and peace. Lastly, I learn, that before the blessed Jesus can operate to advantage either on body or on mind, the people must be put forth; in other words, the rabble of unruly and disorderly thoughts must be separated, that so the healing virtues of the divine mercy and omnipotence may be admitted. I am resolved, therefore, from now on, to apply to this my god and saviour, under all my spiritual infirmities, and especially under that sleep of good affections, which, if deliberately indulged in, may prove fatal to my everlasting happiness. And further I am resolved, in my application for divine aid, to endeavour to bring my mind into a state capable of receiving it, by expelling all those purposes, affections, and tumultuous thoughts, which have a tendency to banish the blessed Jesus from me, and to render ineffectual the divine power of His healing love and wisdom, amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 11: 01.10. THE BLOODY ISSUE CURED ======================================================================== The Bloody Issue Cured Mat 9:20. Behold, a woman, which was diseased of an issue of blood twelve years, came behind Him, and touched the hem of His garment, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by a woman which was diseased with an issue of blood twelve years? A. By the woman here spoken of, is figured the church, as it existed at that time amongst the Jews; and by her being diseased with an issue of blood, is denoted the state of that church in regard to the falsification of truth, and the overflow of such falsification. For by bloody in a good sense, is signified the divine truth proceeding from the great redeemer; and of which it is written, Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of Man, and drink His blood, you have no life in you, (John 6:53). But in an opposite sense, by blood is signified violence offered to truth, in consequence of which it is falsified, by being compelled to confirm the principles of evil in the human mind; according to which sense of the word, it is written in the prophet, Your hands are full of blood, (Isa 1:15). and in the Revelations, They have shed the blood of saints and prophets, and thou have given them blood to drink, (Rev 16:6). Thus, as the leper was a figure of the profanation of truth in the Jewish church at the time of the lord’s appearing among them; and as the sick of the palsy was a figure equally striking of the want of circulation of heavenly wisdom in that church; and as the fever was a figure of the concupiscencies of evil which then abounded; and as the possessed of devils were figures of the ascendancy of the powers of darkness which were then prevalent; in like manner the woman here spoken of, who was diseased with an issue of blood twelve years, was also a representative figure, and this a most exact one, of another corruption in that church, which corruption consisted in its propensity to falsify truth, or to pervert it to the confirmation of evil. It is said twelve years, to denote that this had always been the case with that church; for years, according to the spiritual sense, signify states of the church, and twelve signify all. Q. But it is said of this woman, that she came behind Him, and touched the hem of His garment; for she said within herself, If I may but touch His garment, I shall be whole — what do you here understand by the woman coming behind Jesus, and touching the hem of His garment? A. The term behind, when applied to the blessed Jesus, denotes the exterior things of His Word, of the church and of worship, since as His face, or front, is expressive of His mercy, love, and innocence, in like manner His back, or back-parts, are expressive of what proceeds from his mercy, love, and innocence, that is to say, of His wisdom, truth, and the faith to which that truth gives birth. Accordingly, it is written in the book of Exodus concerning Moses, when he desired to see the glory of Jehovah, You shall see my back-parts, but my face shall not be seen, (Exo 33:23), to denote, that he was not qualified to behold the almighty as He really is, beaming with divine love, but only to behold Him in His Word, and in His works, according to the manifestation of His divine wisdom. It is therefore added, that she touched the hem of His garment, because the hem of his garment is expressive of the same idea, namely. of the exterior things of the Word, of the church, and of worship. For garment, according to the spiritual idea, when applied to the great redeemer, denotes the divine truth of His wisdom, which invests, as it were, the divine good of His love; in agreement with which signification it is written of Him, that He clothed Himself with light as with a garment, (Psa 104:2); and the hem of this garment manifestly means its most external part; whilst to touch it denotes communication with that part. On this occasion, therefore, the woman touched the hem of Jesus ’ s garment, because she was incapable at the time of any nearer communication with Him than by the mere externals of His Word or truth. Q. But it is added further, that she said within her self, If I may but touch His garment, I shall be whole — how do you understand these words? A. By saying within herself, is to be understood her interior thought, or persuasion; and by saying. If I may touch His garment, I shall be whole, is to be understood the interior thought or persuasion, that any communication with the blessed Jesus, however remote, would be sufficient for the cure of all her infirmities; and thus the words are expressive of an extraordinary degree of faith in her god and saviour, which, as it afterwards appears, was her qualification to receive from Him the blessing of health which she wanted. Q. And what do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written, that Jesus turned Him about; and when He saw her, He said, Daughter, be of good comfort, your faith has made you whole? A. By Jesus turning Him about, is to be understood the manifestation of his divine mercy or love; and by seeing the woman, is denoted inspection from that mercy and love; and by saying, Daughter, be of good comfort, is further to be understood the communication of those blessed principles, from parental affection; and by adding, your faith has made you whole, is lastly denoted, that such communication was the result of a belief in His divine omnipotence, thus a belief that He was the supreme and only god; for such is the faith, or belief which in the gospel is called saving, and to which all things are declared possible, and the reason is, because it is a faith, or belief, not of man, but of god, agreeable to the proper character of faith described by Jesus Christ in another place, where He says, Have the faith of god, (Mark 11:22). Q. It is said in the conclusion, that the woman was made whole from that same hour— what do you suppose to be involved in these words? A. They involve the effect produced by the words of the great saviour, thus they imply, not only that the woman was cured of her natural infirmity, which was an issue of blood, but also of her spiritual infirmity, or violent propensity to falsify truth, and consequently that she was restored to the blessing of a sound mind, which consists in loving the truth for its own sake, and practising it for the sake of that good with which it is connected, and to which it leads. It is added, in that same hour, to show that this effect was the result of her communication with the blessed Jesus, and was therefore the real fruit of His mercy and love, although He ascribes it to the woman’s faith, which in reality is the same thing, since that faith was the product of the same divine mercy and love. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. From the issue of blood, which is the subject of this miracle, I am taught to reflect on that more terrible issue of blood which it figures, namely. the falsification of truth, which at that time prevailed in the Jewish church, and which. consists in perverting the truth from its proper purpose of purity and holiness of life, and making it favour evil purposes, which are contrary to purity and holiness. I learn further, that a remedy is still provided by the divine mercy for such falsification, and that this remedy consists in applying to the incarnate god, and to the truths of His most holy word, in the spirit of true repentance and obedience. I am resolved, therefore, whenever I feel any propensity in myself to do violence to the eternal truth, by wresting it to an evil purpose, to imitate the conduct of the woman as recorded in the history of this miracle, by applying immediately to my god and saviour, and touching, if it be but the hem of his garment, through the power of that faith, which acknowledges the divinity of His humanity, and thus that He is the supreme and only god even as to that humanity. Then may I humbly hope that my issue of blood will be staunched, and that although at first I come behind the blessed Jesus, and behold only His back-parts, yet presently He will turn Himself about, and make manifest His blessed face of mercy and loving-kindness, whilst I hear from His gracious lips the consolatory words. Be of good comfort, your faith has made you whole. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 12: 01.11. THE TWO BLIND MEN RESTORED TO SIGHT ======================================================================== The Two Blind Men Restored To Sight Mat 9:27-32. And when Jesus departed thence, two blind men followed Him, crying and saying, You Son of David, have mercy on us, etc. Q. YOU have already told me that the Leprosy, the Palsy, the Fever, the Possessed of Devils, and the Bloody Issue, are to be understood not only literally, but figuratively, as expressing the spiritual disorders prevalent at that time in the Jewish church, and that there is reason to suppose that all the infirmities and distempers, for which the blessed Jesus provided a remedy, are to be considered in this same figurative character. Can you tell me then, according to this idea, what is to be understood by the two blind men above-mentioned ? A. By blindness, according to its figurative meaning, is to be understood, the want of spiritual intelligence respecting the things of heaven and of the church, for what the eye is to the body, that the understanding is to the mind, and consequently what the loss of eye-sight is to the corporeal part of man, that the loss of intellectual sight is to his spiritual part. By these two blind men, therefore, was figured the want of spiritual understanding in the Jewish church at that period; and since the want of spiritual understanding ie two-fold, namely. the want of the understanding of truth; and the want of the understanding of good, therefore two blind men are here recorded. For the same reason, and in agreement with the same figure, man is gifted with two eyes, one having reference to the understanding of good, and the other to the understanding of truth; on which ground it is that Jesus Christ says, If your right eye offend you, pluck it out, and cast it from you, (Mat 5:29), for by the right eye is signified the understanding of good, and therefore this eye, and not the left, was to be plucked out, and cast away, in case it offended; in other words, in case it favoured the love of evil, since the left eye, as denoting the understanding of truth, was not capable of offending in the same degree. Q. But it is said of these two blind men, that they followed Jesus, crying, and saying, Son of David, have mercy on us — how do you understand these words? A. By the two blind men following Jesus, is to be understood, according to the figurative or spiritual sense of the history, that they were made sensible of their want of spiritual understanding; and not only so, but they were also sensible that the blessed Jesus was able to open their spiritual eyes, and give them the spiritual sight which they wanted. They accordingly are described as crying and saying, in the supplication which they make on the occasion; because the term crying is expressive of the strong desire of their wills to receive the light of truth, as the term saying is expressive of the thought of their understanding on the same subject. It is remarkable also, that they address the great redeemer under His two-fold character, as a man, and as a god ; as a man, when they call Him the Son of david; and as a god, when they say, have mercy on us. Thus they supplicate Him as a god-man; or as god made manifest in a divine humanity, and dwelling bodily with all His fullness in that humanity. Q. And what do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written, When He was come into the house, the blind men came to Him; and: Jesus says to them, Believe you that I am able to do this? They say to Him, Yea, Lord. A. According to the spiritual sense of this history, by Jesus coming into the house, is to be understood His divine influx of love and wisdom into His church, which is properly his house and temple ; His house, so far as His church is principled in heavenly good of love and charity; and His temple, so far as she is principled in heavenly truth of wisdom and intelligence. And by the two blind men coming to Him in the house, is to be understood, their spiritual communication and conjunction with Him by virtue of that influx. Again, by Jesus saying to them, Believe you that I am able to do this? was intended to be expressed an exploration of the nature and quality of their faith, and how far they believed in His omnipotence; and by their replying, Yea, Lord, is to be understood their full persuasion of His divine ability, and their consequent conviction that from His divine power they might hope to receive the blessing of spiritual sight, or of a right understanding both of what is good and what is true, Q. But it is lastly written, that Jesus touched their eyes, saying, According to your faith be it to you: and their eyes were opened; and Jesus strictly charged them, saying. See that no man know it. But they, when they were departed, spread abroad His fame in all that country — what do you conceive to be the meaning of these words? A. By Jesus touching their eyes, isto be spiritually understood, His communication by divine influx with the understanding, or intellectual principle of His church or people, since the touch is figurative of communication; and by His saying, According to your faith be it to you, is further to be understood, in agreement with the spiritual idea, that the recovery of spiritual light, or, what is the same thing, of intellectual light in the church, would depend entirely on a right belief in the divine omnipotence of the incarnate god, or, what amounts to the same, in the omnipotence of the divine humanity of that god; consequently, that there can be no true understanding, or no understanding of truth in the church, only so far as Jesus Christ is acknowledged to be the only god, and approached and worshiped in His divine humanity. By their eyes being opened, is further to be understood, the effect of the above faith in the imparting of spiritual understanding, - or the understanding of truth; and by Jesus strictly charging them, saying, See that no man know, is meant divine caution, lest the omnipotence of the divine humanity, thus exercised in the recovery of spiritual sight, should be regarded in a mere speculative way, as a truth manifested merely in the understanding, instead of making its proper impression on the will, and thus exciting devout affection of love and gratitude to the giver of all good, and particularly to the bestower of all spiritual light of intellectual truth. Lastly, by the men, when they were departed, spreading abroad His fame in all the country, is denoted that the divine honour due to the incarnate god, in His divine humanity, is made known in the church, in proportion as the understanding of truth is restored, and the human intellect becomes thus receptive of the light of heavenly wisdom; for by country, is here spiritually to be understood, the church ; and by His fame, is meant the divine honour and worship due to the divine humanity of the blessed Jesus ; and by His fame being spread abroad, is manifestly denoted its being made known, acknowledged, and celebrated. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn again to adore the omnipotence of the incarnate god, as exercised in removing the infirmities of mankind, and particularly in restoring the great blessing of bodily sight to those who had lost it. I learn also, that this miracle, like all the others performed by the great redeemer, is figure, and that in its figurative sense or meaning, it involves in it the restoration of spiritual sight to the church, or the recovery of that spiritual understanding of heavenly truth which had been lost. Lastly, I learn, that spiritual sight, or spiritual understanding, can only be recovered by faith in Jesus Christ, as the manifested god ; thus by faith in His divine humanity, as being one with the eternal father, and therefore containing in it all the fullness of the Godhead. I am resolved, therefore, now on to draw near to this omnipotent god, as the only restorer of spiritual sight; thus as the only Deliverer from the natural blindness into which I was born, and in which I have been educated, that so my understanding may be opened to see by the bright light of the eternal truth, and my will may accordingly be affected, and elevated to the pursuit of the supreme good. And since I cannot hope to attain these signal blessings, only so far as I prepare myself for their reception, I am further resolved, under a deep sense of my natural ignorance and blindness, to imitate the example of the two blind men recorded in the history of this miracle, by following my redeemer, crying and saying, You son of david, have mercy on me. Thus may I hope to experience the virtue of His divine touch, and to hear His blessed words, According to your faith be it to you: and thus too will my spiritual eyes be opened, and like the blind men of old, I shall be admitted to the inestimable privilege of spreading abroad the fame of my god and saviour, by acknowledging Him in His divine humanity to be the only Deliverer from spiritual blindness, because the only Giver of true light, as well as of the faculty to receive it. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 13: 01.12. THE DEVIL CAST OUT FROM THE DUMB MAN ======================================================================== The Devil Cast Out From the Dumb Man Mat 9:32-36 As they went out, behold, they brought to Him a dumb man possessed with a devil, etc. Q. YOU have already told me, in the explanation of a former parable, that by being possessed of a devil, is to be understood possession as to the body, or corporeal part, as well as with respect to the mind, or mental part; and that it consisted in the subjection of the corporeal parts or members to the rule and governance of infernal spirits --- can you now tell me what is to be understood by the dumb man here spoken of? A. The dumbness here spoken of may be considered in two senses, a natural sense, and a spiritual sense; and according to the natural sense of the term, it means a deprivation of the use of the tongue, or of the organs of speech, so that the dumb person is incapable of articulation; but according to the spiritual sense of the term, it implies a deprivation of that principle in which all speech originates, namely. the principle of thought, so that a spiritually dumb person is incapable of exercising the faculty of thinking, and especially of thinking on spiritual subjects, and thus of confessing that the lord is god, The miracle, therefore, under consideration, has respect to both these kinds of dumbness, and to its cure through the omnipotence of the great redeemer. It is also to be further considered, that the dumbness here spoken of, like the blindness treated of in a former miracle, was figurative, and that in its figurative character it was representative of the state of the Jewish church at that period, which state was such, that they were incapable of exercising spiritual thought, thus of elevating their understandings to the contemplation of spiritual and eternal objects, and of confessing their god accordingly. Q. But it is written, that when the devil was cast out, the dumb spoke — what do you here understand by the devil being cast out, and by the dumb speaking? A. According to the sense of the letter, by the devil being cast out, is to be understood, that the man was liberated from the possession which infernal spirits had gained over his bodily organs; and by the dumb speaking, according to the same sense, is to be understood, that the man recovered the use of speech in consequence of such liberation. But according to the spiritual sense of the miracle here recorded, by the devil being cast out, is to be understood, the man’s emancipation from the dominion of the powers of darkness, as to his mind or spirit; and by the dumb speaking, is further to be understood, according to the same sense, the consequent liberation of the faculty of thought, and especially of spiritual thought; so that whereas the man, when under infernal influence, was incapable of elevating his understanding to the contemplation of spiritual and eternal objects; he now acquired a capacity of thinking, and thus of meditating on the word of god, and of making confession accordingly. Q. And what do you conceive to be implied in the words which immediately follow, where it is written, that the multitude marvelled, saying, It was never so seen in Israel? A. By the multitude marvelling, is to be understood the holy awe with which their minds were struck at witnessing the effect of the divine omnipotence of the saviour god, manifested in the subjugation and separation of the powers of darkness, and in the consequent liberation of the church, both as to bodily and mental faculties, so that not only the bodily tongue was loosed, but the mental thought, from which the tongue derives the exercise of its powers, was set at liberty to employ itself on spiritual subjects, and thus to elevate itself to spiritual and eternal objects : and by saying, it was never so seen in Israel, is implied that the church never before witnessed such divine effects; and that consequently the saviour, in whom those effects originated, must be the god of heaven and earth, thus the eternal jehovah. Q. But it is added, that the Pharisees said, He casteth out devils through the prince of the devils — what do you learn from these words? A. I learn from these words, that wherever evil and error have taken possession of the human heart, inconsistency and mistaken judgement are sure to be found there. For what idea could be more inconsistent, and what judgement more groundless, than to suppose that any being can act against himself and his own interest? Yet when the Pharisees conceived that power to cast out devils, was derived from the prince of the devils, what is this but conceiving that the prince of the devils acts in opposition to himself, and to the interests of his own kingdom? Well, therefore, might the blessed Jesus exclaim on this occasion, as it is written in another place, How can Satan cast out Satan? Yet the blindness of the Pharisees of old, in not acknowledging the divine power of Jesus Christ, exercised in the casting out of devils, isnot greater than what prevails at this day in the minds of many Christians, whilst they are not aware, that every opposition to the kingdom of darkness in themselves, every combat against their natural evils, every restraint made to their bad passions, and every victory obtained over them, are manifest proofs and demonstrations of the same divine presence and agency, since it is as impossible for man to combat and overthrow the enemies of his salvation, by any power merely his, own, as it is for the prince of the devils to cast out devils, as for Satan to cast out Satan. Q. It is further added, that Jesus went about all the cities and villages, teaching in their synagogues, and preaching the gospel of the kingdom, and healing every sickness and every disease amongst the people — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. I learn again to adore the goodness of that Divine Being, whose life was thus spent in providing for the necessities, and supplying the wants, both spiritual and natural, of his distressed creatures. I learn further to adore the gift of that divine word, or speech, which was powerful at once to remove the distempers both of mind and body, and thus to restore man to all the health and strength of heavenly life and order in every principle of his constitution. I am taught also to mark some singular and edifying distinctions, which here occur in the letter of the divine history, such as the distinction between teaching and preaching and also the distinction between sickness and disease. Q. And what do you suppose to be the ground and meaning of these distinctions? A. The distinction in both cases originates in the distinction between the two universal principles of good and truth, and also of their opposites, evil and error; and the distinction is marked in the sacred history, in order to lead the reader to a right apprehension of those eternal principles, their distinct natures, and yet their union in that distinction. The term teaching, therefore, is applied to denote the divine truth of doctrine, which ever influenced the speech of the incarnate god; whilst the term preaching is applied to denote the power of divine love from which He spoke, and to which His divine speech was intended to conduct his hearers. Thus both terms united were designed to express that divine and heavenly marriage of love and wisdom, or of goodness and. truth, which constitutes the very life and soul of the eternal word ; and of which Jesus Christ speaks in another place, where He says, My words are spirit and life; spirit having relation to their wisdom or truth; and life having relation to the love and good from which that wisdom and truth flowed. In like manner the two terms, sickness and disease, were intended to express the opposite or infernal marriage, namely. the marriage of evil and error; sickness having relation to the one, and disease to the other, whilst both united express the conjunction of those principles in the human mind, and thus express the true nature of man’s destruction, which has no other source than that infernal union. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above miracle? A. I learn that there is a spiritual dumbness as well as a natural one, and that the lord god the saviour Jesus Christ, is the only Being in the universe who has power to remove either. I learn, therefore, not only that the organs of bodily speech are under His divine control, but also the organs of spiritual speech, which are nothing more or less than the principles and persuasions of spiritual thought. I learn further, that both the above kinds of dumbness are in connection with disorderly spirits, and that they cannot be cured, only so far as those spirits are first cast out, I am yet further instructed, that the manifestation of divine power, as exhibited in. the cure of both kinds of dumbness, has a double effect on different minds, exciting in the well-disposed, a sacred awe and adoration, and leading them to exclaim, It was never so seen in Israel; whilst with the ill-disposed it produces a contrary effect of calumny and misinterpretation, leading them to exclaim, He casteth out devils through the prince of the devils. Lastly, I learn, that in all the words of the blessed Jesus, there is a twofold principle, which He Himself distinguishes by the names of spirit and life; and which is marked in the above history by the terms teaching and preaching, the former having relation to the divine wisdom or truth, and the latter to the divine love or goodness. In agreement with this distinction is that of the opposite principles, or of evil and error, one of which is therefore called sickness, whilst the other is called disease. I am resolved, therefore, now on to regard all my powers of speech, whether natural or spiritual, as gifts from the Almighty Dispenser of all good, and to employ them accordingly to His glory, the benefit of my fellow-creatures, and the consequent promotion of my own salvation. Thus shall I ever, in the use of those powers, be struck with a sacred awe and adoration, which will lead me also to exclaim with the multitude of old, It was never so seen in Israel; and thus too shall I escape the terrible misinterpretation and perversion of miraculous agency, by which the Pharisees of old were deceived, and instead of joining in their infernal cry, He casteth out devils through the prince of the devils, I shall joyfully and gratefully ascribe the agency to the inexpressible mercy and omnipotence of the incarnate god, whose high and holy name is Jesus Christ. Lastly, I am resolved to regard all the words of Jesus Christ in their two-fold character of spirit and life; in other words, of wisdom and love, or of goodness and truth; and to take good heed to myself lest I ever separate those principles in my own mind, by receiving truth in my understanding without good in my will, or good in my will without truth in my understanding. To the same purpose, I am resolved to distinguish well in myself the opposite principles of evil and error, calling one sickness and the other disease, and to apply to the great redeemer for the cure of both, under the full conviction that they never can be cured but by the joint reception of His love, or goodness in my will, and of His wisdom or truth in my understanding, and of both in my life and conversation. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 14: 01.13. THE WITHERED HAND RESTORED ======================================================================== The Withered Hand Restored Mat 12:9-14. And when He was departed thence, He went into their synagogue; and behold, there was a man which had his hand withered, etc. Q. WHAT do you conceive to be meant here by a withered hand? A. According to the literal or natural idea, by a withered hand is to be understood the member of the body so called, deprived of its life and consequent use, for want of a free circulation of vital powers; but according to the spiritual idea, by a withered hand is to be understood a faculty or power of the human mind, deprived also of its life and energy for want of a free circulation of vital principles. For the hand of the body, as being created to execute the purposes of the soul, is a figure of power, or strength; and since all spiritual power and strength is of two kinds, namely. intellectual and voluntary; the one originating in the understanding, and the other in the will, or the one originating in truth, and the other in good; therefore every man has two hands, in like manner as he has two eyes, and two ears, the one being intended to express the power of truth in the intellect, whilst the other is intended to express the power derived from good in the will. By the withered hand therefore, recorded in the above history, is spiritually figured the state of the Jewish church at that period, in that it was deprived of one of the above spiritual powers, so that its members were principled either in truth without good, or in good without truth; thus either in understanding without will, or in will without understanding; and this by reason of the want of circulation of the divine principles of heavenly love and wisdom in their minds and lives. Accordingly, in the original tongue, the term rendered withered is expressive of the idea of dryness, and therefore the withered hand might properly have been rendered a dry hand, to denote that the power of truth or of good was dried up, through a defect of the circulation of heavenly life in the interiors of the mind. It is remarkable also that Jesus Christ in speaking of the hand which offended, and was to be cut off and cast away, (Mat 5:30), confines his observation to the right hand, because the right hand, like the right eye, has respect to the will of man, as the left has respect to the understanding; and therefore Jesus Christ, by his injunction to cut off and cast away the offending right hand, meant to inculcate this edifying lesson, that man ought to pay more attention to the evil desires in his will, than to the erroneous persuasions in his understanding, because all real offence comes from the former, and not at all from the latter, only so far as they are connected with and derived from the former. Q. But it is written in the history, that the people present proposed this question to the blessed Jesus, Is it lawful to heal on the sabbath-day? that they might accuse Him: to which He replied, What man shall there be among you that shall have one sheep, and if it fall into a pit on the sabbath-day, will he not lay hold of it, and lift it out? How much then is a man better than a sheep? — what instruction do you learn from the above question, and the answer which was given to it? A. The above question is grounded in a mistaken idea of that rest which is figured by the sabbath, and is involved in it, as if it implied an absolute cessation from all work or operation of the body; whereas it only implies a cessation, from the work or labour of the mind, all which work or labour originates in man’s evils, and their connection with the powers of darkness, according as it is written, There is no peace [or rest,] says the lord, for the wicked, (Isa 48:22). Jesus Christ accordingly, in his reply to the above question, confirms the above idea of the sabbath, as involving in it, not the mere rest of the body only, but the rest of the soul; in other words, a cessation from sin, which is the only true cause of what can properly be called labour, since the work of the body is not properly labour, only so far as it is done unwillingly, and thus not in the spirit of that freedom, which heavenly love and heavenly wisdom never fail to inspire. For such is the force of His divine argument, if regarded only according to the letter, thus as implying that it is lawful on the sabbath-day to save the life of a sheep, which has fallen into a pit. But how much greater is the force of this argument when spiritually understood, or when interpreted according to its spiritual and internal meaning! For according to that meaning, by a sheep is here to be understood, the affection of good in man; and by this sheep falling into a pit is to be further understood, the affection of good immersed in false principles and persuasions; for by a pit, and especially an infernal pit, whenever the expression occurs in the sacred scriptures, such persuasions and principles are always signified. The argument of the blessed Jesus therefore, when considered in its full force, is this, that, as He afterwards expresses it, Itis lawful to do well on the sabbath-day; mother words, it is lawful to save the life of a sheep, whether considered in a natural or a spiritual sense, thus it is lawful to do any thing by which the benefit either of animal or of mental life may be promoted; this being the very ground and intention of the sabbath to promote the best interests of man, and therefore especially to lift the sheep out of the pit; in other words, to elevate the affection of good out of false persuasions, to seek conjunction with the eternal truth, and thus with the god of that truth, which is the true sabbath. Q. And what further instruction do you learn from the question which Jesus Christ proposes on this occasion, when He asks, How much then is a man better than a sheep? A. I am led by the question to examine the distinct natures and qualities of a man and of a sheep; and from such examination I am conducted to the important discovery, that a man and a sheep are distinguished from each other principally by this mark and character , that, man, as being figurative of heavenly wisdom or intelligence, has thus the faculty from god of elevating his thought to an eternal end; and not only so, but also of acknowledging in humility and thankfulness, that his life, with all its powers and enjoyments, are from a divine source, and capable of being conjoined with that source; whereas a sheep, as being figurative only of a natural affection, possesses no such quality, being not only incapable of elevating his thought to an eternal object, but also of conjoining himself by affection with any other but temporal objects. Q. But it is lastly added, Then says He to the man, Stretch forth your hand: and he stretched it forth, and it was restored whole, like as the other — what do you here understand by the injunction of Jesus Christ, stretch forth your hand; and by the man’s compliance, as expressed in these words, and he stretched it forth? A. According to the literal sense of the history, both the lord’s injunction and the man’s compliance, have relation only to the stretching forth the hand of the body which had before been withered; but according to the spiritual sense of the miracle here recorded, by the lord’s injunction to stretch out his hand, is to be understood the divine will and pleasure, that man should exercise freely, and as of himself, the powers both of love and of wisdom, or of goodness and truth, imparted to him continually by his merciful creator; yet that he should do so under the constant grateful acknowledgment that those powers are not his own, but perpetual gifts from a divine bounty; and by the man’s compliance with this injunction is further to be understood, his free exertion of the spiritual powers with which he was invested, whilst he humbly acknowledged that those powers were from god, and yet exercised them as if they were his own, absolutely independent of their divine source. Q. And what do you conceive to be the force and meaning of the concluding words, And it was restored whole, like as the other? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words again have reference only to the hands of the body, teaching that one was made sound and whole as the other; but according to the spiritual sense, they have a deeper meaning and signification, as having relation to the mental powers above spoken of, namely. to the power of the human will, and the power of the human understanding; in other words, to the power of goodness, and to the power of truth, or, as it may be otherwise expressed, to the power of love, and to the power of wisdom. Agreeable, therefore, to this application of the words, they were intended to teach the important and edifying lesson, that when either of the above powers has been in a state of disorder and infirmity, and is afterwards restored by divine aid to order and strength, its restoration is such, in measure and degree, as to render it exactly suited to the other, so that each power shall be equally balanced and proportioned to the other. Thus, as in the formation of the human body, a Wonderful providence, we find, is continually in exercise, to preserve a due proportion of the limbs, so that the right arm, and the right leg, for instance, may be exactly fitted to the left, both in size and shape; in like manner the same providence is continually operative to preserve the same fitness and meetness in the powers of the mind, and this in such a sort, that the power of the will shall always keep pace with the power of the understanding; or what is the same thing, the power of goodness with the power of truth, and vice versa. Accordingly, it is ordained of the divine wisdom and mercy, that no man shall possess more of goodness than he possesses of truth, or more of love than he possesses of wisdom, or more of will than he possesses of understanding, and vice versa ; and this, with the divine view, that the spiritual form of man, like the bodily, may be in exact harmony and proportion, which would not be the case, unless the relative powers were fitted to each other in the manner above described. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. Under the figure of a withered hand, I learn to discern, not only a bodily imperfection and weakness, but also a mental one, consisting in a defect of the operation either of love or of wisdom, or, what amounts to the same, either of goodness or of truth, in the church in general, and in its members in particular. But whilst I am taught thus to see and to lament human defect and imperfection, I am taught, at the same time, to discover and to rejoice in a divine mercy and omnipotence, brought near in the incarnate god, for the removal of disorder, and the restoration of order in the diseased constitution of man. I am resolved, therefore, under all my spiritual infirmities, to apply to that god for relief, and especially when I find that my hand is withered, whether it arise from a defect of heavenly love and goodness in my will, or of heavenly wisdom and truth in my understanding. I am resolved also to cherish in my mind and life the just and proper idea of the sabbath-day, which is inculcated in the history of this miracle, by believing it to be a day sanctified to welldoing, or to the performance of all those good works which lead to the enjoyment of an eternal sabbath, consisting in deliverance from the powers of evil, and in consequent restoration to a blessed conjunction of life with the father of mercies, whose high and holy name is Jesus Christ. Thus may I humbly hope under every defect and infirmity, whether of will or of understanding, to hear from my saviour god the blessed injunction, Stretch forth thy hand: and thus, too, shall I further rejoice in complying willingly with that injunction, until each faculty of my mind be restored to harmony and due proportion with the other, so that in me may be fulfilled the concluding words of the above memorable history, It was restored whole, like as the other. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 15: 01.14. THE DEVIL CAST OUT FROM THE BLIND AND DUMB ======================================================================== The Devil Cast Out From the Blind and Dumb. Mat 12:22-29. Then was brought to Him one possessed with a devil, blind and dumb, etc. Q. YOU have already told me what is to be understood by being possessed of a devil. Can you now tell me what is here further to be understood by one blind and dumb? A. According to the letter of the history, by one blind and dumb is to be understood a person deprived of bodily sight, and of bodily speech; but according to the spiritual sense, is to be understood the state of the Jewish church at that period, which, in consequence of being immersed in the evil of self-love, and the love of the world, was blind to the knowledge of heavenly truth, and overspread with the darkness of false principles and persuasions, by reason of which it was also dumb, or unable to think, to utter, and to teach any truth of doctrine conducive to good of life. For there are two distinct origins of spiritual dumbness, one in the will, and the other in the understanding, and the latter is here recorded, because connected with blindness; whereas, when the former is noticed, it is connected with deafness, (Mark 9:25), blindness having relation to a defect of truth in the understanding, arising from the influence of false principles and persuasions; and deafness having relation to a defect of good in the will, by reason of the influence of evil love and corrupt affections. Q. Do you conceive, then, that there is any necessary connection between blindness and dumbness? A. Not according to the literal meaning of those two bodily imperfections, but, according to the spiritual meaning, the connection, I conceive, is both, necessary and close. For blindness, according to the spiritual idea, implies a defect of the spiritual light of truth in the human understanding, through the influence of false principles and persuasions; and where this is the case, spiritual dumbness must be a necessary consequence, because without spiritual thought derived from the light of truth in the understanding, it is impossible for man to give utterance to truth; and if he cannot give utterance to truth, he is then spiritually dumb, agreeable to what has been above observed concerning this spiritual infirmity. Q. And what do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written, He healed him, insomuch that the blind and dumb both spoke and saw? A. By He, is to be understood the great saviour, whose name is Jesus Christ; and by healing him, is further to be understood the restoration of the blessing of sight and of speech, whether considered in a natural or in a, spiritual sense. By the blind and dumb therefore both speaking and seeing, is further to be understood the effect of the healing virtue applied by the great redeemer, and made manifest both naturally and spiritually; naturally by opening the eyes of one who had been blind, and by unloosing his tongue; and spiritually by opening the eyes of the understanding also, to see by the bright light of the eternal truth, and at the same time by unloosing the organs of spiritual speech, to give utterance to that truth, and thus to declare the praises of the incarnate god. Q. But it is written further, that all the people were amazed, and said, Is not this the Son of David? But when the Pharisees heard it, they said, This fellow does not cast out devils, but by Beelzebub the prince of the devils — how do you understand what is here said of the people, and the opposite sentiment ascribed to the Pharisees? A. By the people being amazed, is to be understood the sacred awe with which their minds were impressed on observing the operation of the divine power exercised upon the blind and dumb man possessed with a devil; and by their exclamation, Is not this the Son of David? is further to be understood, the unanimous conviction worked in their minds by a supernatural agency, that Jesus Christ was the expected Messiah, and consequently was a being more than human. Again, by the Pharisees saying, This fellow does not cast out devils, but by Beelzebub the prince of the devils, is to be understood the lamentable perversion of the divine truth in the minds of all hypocrites, or of those who practise external piety, while their hearts are totally void of the heavenly spirit and love of charity. For the miracle above recorded was a manifest proof of divine agency, being worked, as Jesus Christ afterwards declares (verse 28), by the Spirit of god. But the Spirit of god is the Spirit of divine truth; and therefore the Pharisees, in ascribing the miracle to Beelzebub, proved themselves guilty of that most terrible and unpardonable of all sins, the sin against the holy ghost, which is nothing else but the perversion and consequent profanation of divine truth. Moreover, by Beelzebub is meant the god of flies; and by flies, according to their spiritual signification, are to be understood the false principles and persuasions of the natural mind; therefore the Pharisees in ascribing the miracle to Beelzebub, and not to the spirit of god, not only perverted and profaned the truth; but gave a manifest proof of their own folly, by supposing that the prince of the devils could oppose himself and his own kingdom, or that Satan could cast out Satan. Yet such, alas! is still the folly of those, who deny the divine omnipotence of the blessed jesus, and thus rob Him of His divinity; when yet they ought rather to conclude, in agreement with the tenor of what Jesus afterwards declares, that in His divine person the kingdom of god is. come unto man; for thus He expresses Himself, If I cast out devils by the Spirit of god, then the kingdom of God is come to you. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above miracle? A. I learn, in the first place, again to adore the divine mercy and omnipotence of that incarnate god, who was manifested to destroy the works of the devil, whether worked on the bodies or in the minds of men, and whether they appear in a simple or in a compound shape. In the next place, I learn to distinguish in myself the two mental defects of want of eyes, and want of speech, or of spiritual blindness, and spiritual dumbness, and to see that the latter is always a necessary consequence of the former, Lastly, from the different effects produced on different minds by the above miracle, whilst it led some, under the impulse of a sacred awe, to confess the blessed Jesus to be the true Messiah, and led others to pervert and blaspheme the eternal truth, I am taught the great importance of attending well to the temper and disposition of my own mind, that I may always be in a state willingly and thankfully to confess the operation of the divine omnipotence, and thus to escape the dreadful crime of perverting and profaning divine purposes and intentions. I am resolved therefore from now on, under every state of spiritual blindness and dumbness, to apply to my saviour Jesus Christ for his omnipotent aid. I am resolved further to watch well over all the affections and thoughts of my own heart, so that I may always entertain just and worthy sentiments respecting divine agency, and never, like the Pharisees of old, impute the operation of the spirit of god to any inferior power, and especially to that infernal one, the power of Beelzebub. So may I humbly hope to experience the healing virtue of my god and saviour, in the cure of all my spiritual blindness and dumbness, and being enabled both to see and to speak, may rejoice in the discovery of the glory of His divinity, and in telling forth his praises from generation to generation, amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 16: 01.15. MIRACLE OF THE FIVE LOAVES AND TWO FISHES ======================================================================== Miracle of the Five Loaves and Two Fishes Mat 14:14-22. And Jesus went forth, and saw a great multitude, and was moved with compassion towards them, and Pie healed their sick. And when it was evening, His disciples came to Him, saying, This is a desert place, and the time is now past; send the multitude away, that they may go into the villages, and buy themselves victuals, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by Jesus going forth, and seeing a great multitude? A. According to the letter of the history, by Jesus going forth, and seeing a great multitude, is to be understood His going forth as to His personal or bodily presence, and His taking a view of the people who followed Him; but according to the internal or spiritual sense of the history, by Jesus going forth, is to be understood the divine influx of His divine love into His church, thus into the truths and knowledges in which His church was principled; and by seeing a great multitude, is to be further understood the influx of His divine wisdom into those truths and knowledges, to note their several characters and qualities. It therefore follows, that He was moved with compassion towards them, and healed their sick; because to be moved with compassion is an effect of His divine love towards His church or people; and to heal their sick is an effect of His divine wisdom, in removing the false principles and persuasions, which at that time prevailed amongst them. Q. And what do you further understand by the words which follow, where it is written, that when it was evening, His disciples Game to Him, saying, This is a desert place, and the time is now past; send the multitude away, that they may go into the villages, and buy themselves victuals? A. According to the sense of the letter, the meaning of the above words is so plain, as to require no explanation; but according to the spiritual sense, it may be necessary to explain them. By the evening then here spoken of, is to be understood the last state of the Jewish church, or a state when there was no longer any faith or love prevailing amongst that people; and by the disciples coming to Jesus, saying, This is a desert place, the time is now past, is to be further understood an acknowledgement of that state of the church by those who were principled in the truths of the new or Christian church; for by the disciples are signified those who received the doctrines of this latter church; and by their saying, This is a desert place, the time is now past, is further denoted a perception that there was no longer any desire of heavenly good, or any understanding of heavenly truth remaining; the one being signified by a desert place, and the other by the time is now past. By their adding further, Send the multitudes away, that they may go into the villages, and buy themselves victuals, is further to be understood ignorance on the part of the disciples, who were not as yet fully instructed as to the divine origin of spiritual food, and who therefore supposed that the multitudes might procure it for themselves, in a state of separation from the blessed Jesus ; for by sending the multitudes away, is manifestly denoted such a state of separation; and by their going to the villages to buy themselves victuals, is further to be understood the procuring to themselves spiritual food in that state. Q. But it is added, that Jesus said to them, They need not depart; give you them to eat — what do you conceive to be the force and meaning of these words? A. According to the literal sense of the history, these words contain an intimation on the part of the blessed Jesus, that His disciples should provide bodily food forthe multitude; but according to the spiritual sense, they have relation to spiritual food, which is instruction from the holy Word in truth and wisdom, and thus contain an intimation, that that food should be provided by those, who were already instructed in truth and wisdom. For by Jesus saying, according to the spiritual sense, is to be understood a divine dictate; and by saying to them, or to His disciples, is further to be understood a dictate to those of His church, who were already instructed in the goods and truths of His most holy word; and by His adding, they need not depart, is further to be understood the necessity of abiding in the divine presence, in order to receive instruction; and by adding further, give you them to eat, is implied that spiritual food, or spiritual instruction, was to be communicated by the intelligent and wise to those who were in want of intelligence and wisdom. Q. And how do you understand the words which follow, where it is written, They say to Him, We have here but five loaves and two fishes? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words imply the impossibility of supplying the bodily wants of the multitude out of so small a store of bodily food; but according to the spiritual sense, in which they relate to the spiritual food of instruction, by saying to Him (Jesus), is to be understood perception of the little good and little truth which then prevailed in the natural man; for by the disciples saying to jesus, is to be understood perception; and by saying, We have here but five loaves and two fishes, is denoted the very small portion of good and of truth, which then prevailed in the natural man or mind; loaves having respect to the principle of good, and fishes to the principle of truth. Q. But it is added, that He said, Bring them here to me — how do you understand these words? A. According to the letter of the history, these words mean, that the literal loaves and fishes should be brought to Jesus; but according to the spirit of the history they imply, that what is signified by the loaves and fishes, namely. the goods and truths of the natural man, should be brought to Him; in other words, should be submitted to His divine guidance, government, and blessing. Bring them to me is therefore a divine injunction, ever proceeding from the blessed Jesus, and ever enforcing its weighty obligations on all his children; because it is of the first importance in the great business of regeneration and consequent salvation, that all His children should refer to Him, as the divine giver, every good and every truth of the natural mind or man, that so it may not only receive perpetual increase from his divine benediction, but may also finally be brought to the blessedness of an eternal con, junction with Him. Q. And what do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written, that He commanded the multitude to sit dozen on the grass, and took the five loaves and two fishes, and looking up to heaven, He blessed, and break, and gave the loaves to the disciples, and the disciples to the multitude? A. By the multitude, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood the church, desirous, to be spiritually fed, or to receive instruction; and by Jesus commanding the multitude to sit down on the grass, is to be further understood arrangement according to divine order of the lower principles of the church; for by Jesus commanding is signified divine order; and by sitting down on the grass, is signified arrangement according to that order in the lower principles of the church, as previously necessary to receive instruction, grass denoting those lower principles. It is accordingly written in another place, where this miracle is recorded, that there was much grass in the place, (John 6:10), which is a circumstance too trivial to be mentioned in the Word of the most high god, unless it had involved a spiritual sense and meaning; and what this spiritual sense and meaning is, is manifest in another passage, where the blessed Jesus says, speaking of the growth of spiritual seed in the church, The earth brings forth fruit of herself, first the blade (or grass), then the ear, after that the full corn in the ear, (Mark 4:28), where the blade (or grass) evidently denotes the first reception of truth in the memory, or what may be called scientific truth, which is here the grass on which the multitude were commanded to sit down, since without truth first received in the memory, and rightly arranged there, no spiritual instruction can be received; spiritual instruction, in all cases, having relation to the elevation of scientific truth to its divine source, and to its conjunction with that source. Q. And what do you understand by Jesus taking the five loaves and the two fishes? A. By the five loaves and two fishes, it has been already seen, are to be understood the goods and truths of the natural man or mind, about to be initiated into divine truth, and thus to be nourished; and by Jesus therefore taking these loaves and fishes, is to be understood first initiation, when these goods and truths are acknowledged by the understanding to be His and from Him; it is accordingly written in the institution of the sacrament of the holy supper, that Jesus first took bread, and then blessed, and break it; and that when he gave it to His disciples, He said, " Take, eat; this is my body," (Mat 26:26), denoting that before He can bless the bread, and before His children can eat it, it must first be acknowledged in the understanding to be His, and from Him. Q. And what do you conceive to be meant by Jesus looking up to heaven? A. To look up to heaven, according to the sense of the letter, is to direct the eyes of the body upwards towards heaven; but according to the spiritual sense or meaning of the expression, it has reference to the eyes of the mind turned inward into itself, for heaven, we know, is within man, as it is written, The kingdom of god is within you, (Luk 17:21). When this expression, however, is applied to the blessed Jesus, it denotes His looking to the divine principle within Himself, since, as the kingdom of god is in every man, so the Divine Being or Principle was in the blessed Jesus as His inmost life or soul. Moreover, heaven is heaven by virtue of its reception of the divine love and wisdom in close conjunction, and therefore whether we speak of heaven, or of the conjunction of the divine love and wisdom, it is the same thing. Thus, by looking up to heaven, when applied to the blessed Jesus, is represented an internal act of His mind, or of His humanity, elevating itself to a fuller view of, and closer union with the divinity which dwelt in it. Q. And what do you understand by His blessing and breaking the loaves? A. By blessing the loaves, is spiritually to be understood the initiation of natural goods into the divine good, and their conjunction with that good, for every thing is called blessed, and is blessed, in proportion as it is so conjoined; and by breaking ike loaves, is again to be understood the conjunction of the natural goods with divine spiritual truth, by virtue whereof natural goods are viewed and distinguished into the particular goods of which they are compounded, and are thus rendered capable of a fuller incorporation into the life and love. For such is the nature of all good, that whilst it is seen in the general only, and not in its particulars, it cannot be so fully admitted into the mind, in like manner as a loaf of bread cannot be admitted into the bodily life for nourishment and support, unless it be first broken into pieces, and afterwards masticated in the mouth of the eater. Hence arises the necessity, in spiritual eating, to conjoin good with truth, or love in the will with wisdom in the understanding, since it is by truth and wisdom alone that any good, or any love, can be properly discriminated and particularized, so as to render it admissible into the spiritual life of man. This, therefore, was the hidden reason why mention is here made of breaking the loaves, and also why the same act is recorded in other passages of the word, as at the institution of the holy supper, (Mat 26:26. Mark 14:22. Luk 22:19). and particularly at the village of Emmaus, where It is written that Jesus was known to the disciples by breaking of bread. (Luk 24:35). For the same reason, the perfume for the use of the Jewish tabernacle, was required to be beaten small or bruised, (Exo 30:36), bruising having the same signification in regard to perfume, that breaking has in regard to bread. For a similar reason too, the powers and principles of evil are said to be beaten small as the dust before the wind, (Psa 18:42), because as good cannot be admitted into the life of man, until it be minutely viewed as to its nature and quality, in like manner evil cannot be expelled from the life of man, until its nature and quality are also distinctly seen, and this by the light of the eternal truth. In the great work, therefore, of man’s purification from evil, it is not sufficient for him to confess, in general terms, that he is a sinner, or full of evil, but he ought to enter upon a particular exploration of the distinct marks and characters of evil in himself; in other words, he ought to break and bruise it, otherwise it will remain for ever incorporated in his life’s love. Q. And what instruction do you learn from the words which follow, where it is written, that Jesus gave the loaves to His disciples, and His disciples to the multitude? A. I am instructed by these words, that the blessed Jesus does not teach truth, or give spiritual food, immediately, but mediately, or by and through His most holy word. For by the disciples are here meant those, who have already admitted into their minds the goods and truths of that word; thus by the disciples are here represented the goods and truths themselves which they have received; whereas, by the multitude are represented those, who are desirous of receiving instruction and the spiritual nourishment which it yields. When therefore it is said, that Jesus gave the loaves to His disciples, and the disciples to the multitude, it was intended to teach the edifying lesson, that the almighty always employs instruments to effect His saving purposes of instruction and consequent regeneration; and that the instruments which He employs are the goods and truths of His most holy word, and those who teach them; thus that the order still is, for the edification of His church, that He shall give the loaves to His disciples, and the disciples to the multitude; in other words, that there shall always be mediating instruments, or mediating ministers, between Him and His people. Q. But it follows, that they did all eat, and were filled; and they took up of the fragments that remained, twelve baskets-full — what do you understand by these words? A. By all eating, is to be understood that all incorporated into their minds and lives the good, which was thus conjoined with the divine good and truth; for by eating, is spiritually signified such incorporation, inasmuch as spiritual eating is nothing else but the reception of the good of heavenly love from Jesus Christ; and this good is received, when natural good, or the good into which man is born, submits itself, and acknowledges its divine parent and nourisher. By being filled, is further signified a full contentment and satisfaction of mind experienced in the reception of the good here spoken of, by virtue of which it is acknowledged, to be enough and all-sufficient to gratify every desire, and supply every want. For such is the nature of the human mind, created for an eternal conjunction of life and love with its heavenly father, that nothing but an infinite good, which is the divine love, can fill and satisfy it; and therefore all finite goods, such as worldly wealth, honours, reputation, pleasure, and the like, however abundant, and however apparently gratifying they may seem, still leave the soul in a state of all that emptiness, of which it is written, He has sent the rich empty away. Nevertheless, these latter and lesser goods have their important uses, and therefore are not to be rejected, whenever they submit themselves to be filled with a higher and an eternal good. Q. And what do you further understand by taking up of the fragments that remained, twelve baskets-full? A. According to the sense of the letter, by these words is to be understood the miraculous increase of natural food in consequence of the divine presence and blessing; but according to the spiritual idea, the words have relation to spiritual eating, which is instruction in the word of god, and therefore denote the immense increase of spiritual food, when it also receives the divine blessing, and is thus conjoined with its divine source. For in regard to spiritual nourishment, the case is this, that the more a man eats, the more he is made sensible of the infinite stores of divine nourishment provided for him; and thus, contrary to what is true of natural eating, his food grows more abundant, the more he receives. This super-abundance is therefore here represented by the twelve baskets-full of fragments, which are said to be taken up, in other words, to be elevated to conjunction with the divine giver of all food, by the humble and grateful acknowledgment that they are from Him, and His, Q. And what instruction do you learn from the concluding words, where it is written, And they that had eaten were about five thousand mm, besides women and children? A. By these words are denoted those of the lord’s new church here on earth, who received the truths and goods of His most holy word; men, denoting those who were more principled in truths; women, those who were more in the affection of truth; and children, denoting those who were more principled in innocence. Thus the words taken together have reference to the heavenly marriage of good and of truth, or of love and of wisdom, which constitutes the church. And thus, too, we are further instructed in the important distinction between what are here called men, women, and children; and in the still more important representation of each class of beings, as having reference to the distinct spiritual and celestial principles, which constitute the lord’s church and kingdom. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn, in the first place, to adore the miraculous power of that incarnate god, who, when it pleases Him, can convert spiritual food into natural, as in the case of the manna in the wilderness, and of the loaves and fishes in the present instance. In the next place I learn, from the spiritual sense of the above miracle, many interesting and edifying particulars respecting spiritual food, and its reception in the human mind, being taught: That all spiritual food is of two kinds, namely. good and truth, or love and wisdom, the one intended for the nourishment of the human will, and the other for the nourishment of the human understanding; the one therefore represented by the loaves, and the other by the fishes. That before spiritual food can be fully received, there must be a right arrangement in the lower principles of the human mind, signified by the lord commanding the multitude to sit down on the grass. That before spiritual food can be fully received and incorporated into the life, the divine presence and benediction must be supplicated, and at the same time the understanding must be opened to the light of truth, to enable it to explore and distinguish well the principles of spiritual nourishment, signified by jesus taking the five loaves and the two fishes, and looking up to heaven, and blessing and breaking the loaves, That spiritual food, which is instruction in the word of god, is not given immediately by Jesus Christ, but mediately, that is to say, by the goods and truths of that word, through the instrumentality of those who teach them, signified by Jesus giving the loaves to the disciples, and the disciples to the multitude. That the food derived from the word of god, is the only food which can fully satisfy an immortal spirit, signified by all eating and being filled. That in all spiritual eating, there is an immense increase of spiritual food, which increase ought to be devoutly acknowledged to be the result of the divine bounty, signified by taking up the fragments that remained, twelve baskets-full. That there are three distinct classes of men, who constitute the lord’s church and kingdom, and who are therefore carefully to be distinguished from each other, namely, those who receive more of truth in their understandings, those who receive more of the affection of truth in their wills, and those who are in innocence, signified by the five thousand men, besides women and children. I am resolved, therefore, in reading the word of god, or in receiving spiritual food in any other manner, to attend well to every particular of divine instruction recorded in the history of this miracle; and then may I humbly hope to be fed by my god and saviour, as the multitudes of old were, and thus to find angels’ food in every state of life, even the most desolate and desert. And then, too, may I hope further, like the infant church of old, to be filled, in other words, to find a full satisfaction and contentment derived from my food; and also to experience a blessed increase of spiritual nourishment, leading me to a more devout acknowledgement of the divine giver, both of natural and spiritual food, and thus to join in the angelic song, Worthy is the lamb that was slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honour, and glory, and blessing, (Rev 5:12). amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 17: 01.16. JESUS WALKING ON THE SEA ======================================================================== Jesus Walking on the Sea. Mat 14:22-34 And straightway Jesus constrained His disciples to get into a ship, and to go before Him to the other side, while He sent the multitudes away, etc. Q. WHAT do you understand here by Jesus constraining His disciples to get into a ship, and to go before Him to the other side? A. According to the sense of the letter, by these words is meant what is literally expressed; but according to the spiritual sense, they imply a requirement of the divine order, that the members of the church should acquire the knowledges of good and of truth, and should thus change their state in regard to spiritual life; for by the disciples, are here meant the members of the church; and by Jesus constraining them, is meant the requirement of divine order; and by getting into a ship, is spiritually to be understood the acquirement of the knowledges of good and truth, such knowledges being signified and represented by a ship, agreeable to what was shown in the explanation of a former miracle, (Mat 8:23-28); and by going before him to the other side, is to be understood a change of spiritual state, or a passage from knowledge to the life of knowledge. Q. And what do you understand by the words which immediately follow, where it is written, while He sent the multitudes away? A. In the original Greek, the term here rendered sent away, is derived from the verb apoluo, which more properly signifies to loosen or to set at liberty; and which therefore, when interpreted according to its spiritual signification, denotes that the blessed Jesus, after feeding the multitudes with the goods and truths of His holy word, left them at liberty to act and live in agreement, or otherwise, with the heavenly instruction they had received: And that the term was intended to suggest such a spiritual idea, is further confirmed by this circumstance, that the Evangelist Saint Mark, in recording this same miracle (Mark 6:45-46), applies two distinct expressions in the original Greek, which are yet considered as one and the same in the English translation. For in the original Greek, the term apoluo is applied to express the sending away the people, at verse 45, whereas in the next verse 46, the term apotasso is applied, which evidently means, not sending away the people, as it is rendered by the English translation, but arranging them, or putting them in their proper places; thus, according to the spiritual sense, denoting the orderly arrangement of truths, when each takes its proper place in the regenerate mind. This therefore appears to be the reason why this circumstance respecting the multitude is recorded, otherwise it is difficult to conceive, if nothing more was meant than sending away the multitudes, how an event so seemingly insignificant should find a place in the divine history. Q. But it is further written, that when He had sent the multitudes away, He went up into a mountain to pray; and when the evening was come, He was there alone — what do you here understand by the blessed Jesus going up into a mountain to pray? A. These words, like all other parts of the divine history, have both a literal and spiritual signification; and according to the former, they literally mean that Jesus went up into a mountain to pray, etc. but according to the latter, their meaning is, that the blessed Jesus opened His humanity to a fuller and closer communication with the divinity in Himself; for by a mountain is figured and represented the divine love; agreeable to which idea mention is made in the holy word of the mountain of the lord of hosts, denoting the divine love of jehovah, or the eternal father; and it is called also the mountain of the lord’s house, which, according to the language of prophecy, was to be established at the top of the mountains, (Isa 2:2), denoting the exaltation of the divine love over every inferior love, which was to take place under the gospel dispensation. By praying then on this mountain, is to be understood an opening of the interiors of the mind of the blessed Jesus to the reception of the divine love, or what is the same thing, of jehovah in Himself; for prayer properly understood is nothing else but an opening of the interiors; in the case of man, an opening to what is spiritual and celestial; but in the case of the lord, to what is divine, or to the eternal father. Q. And what do you further understand by the words which follow, that when the evening was come He was there alone? A. By the evening coming, is to be understood the last state of the church, when there was no longer any good or any truth remaining in it; and by Jesus being alone at this time, was intended to be expressed His union with His father, or the union of the humanity with the divinity from which it came forth, agreeable to His own declaration in another place, where He says, Behold, the hour comes, yea, is now come, that you shall be scattered every one to his own, and shall leave me alone, and yet I am not alone, because the father is with me. (John 16:32). Q. But it is written that the ship was now in the midst of the sea, tossed with waves; for the wind was contrary—what do you understand by these words? A. By the ship here spoken of, it has already been shown, are to be understood the knowledges of what is good and true derived from the word of god; and by the sea is here spiritually signified the scientific principle of the natural man, not yet obedient to those knowledges. By the ship therefore being in the midst of the sea, tossed with waves, is to be further understood the agitation and disturbance excited in the natural man by the knowledges of goodness and truth imparted to the spiritual man, by reason of the contrariety between those knowledges and the affections prevailing in the natural mind. By the wind being contrary, is therefore further signified this opposition between heavenly knowledge and natural love; for by wind, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood spiritual influence, in the present case infernal influence, because it is said to be contrary to the purposes of those who were principled in heavenly knowledges. Q. And what do you conceive to be implied in what next follows, where it is said that in the fourth watch of the night, Jesus went to them walking on the sea? A. By the fourth watch of the night is meant the time immediately preceding morning, and by morning is signified, according to the spiritual idea, the time of the lord’s Advent, or of a new dispensation of heavenly truth for the restoration of the church. It is therefore said, that at this time Jesus went unto them, that is to say, went to His disciples, denoting His divine presence and influence in His new church; and He is further described as walking on the sea, to denote His absolute rule over, and control of, all the disturbances of the natural man or mind. Q. But it is said, that when the disciples saw him walking on the seat they were troubled, saying, It is a spirit: and they cried out for fear— how do you understand these words? A. According to the sense of the letter, they are descriptive of the alarm of the disciples, at seeing their Divine Master walking on the sea; but according to the spiritual sense of the history, they represent the perturbation of mind, which hath place with all those, who are principled in the knowledges of what is good and true, but are not yet in the life of those knowledges, which is the life of love and charity. For when persons of this description begin to be made sensible in their own minds of the nearness of the Divine Presence, and of its omnipotence in controlling the boisterous passions and unruly affections of the natural man, they are immediately struck with a secret awe and terror, at observing the god of heaven and the powers of the world to come, so near at hand, whom they had been accustomed to view as at so great a distance. Under these circumstances therefore, like the disciples in the ship, they are troubled, and say, It is a spirit; and they cry out for fear, not aware that what appears to them as a mere phantom, which has no purpose but to create alarm, is in deed and truth the dawning of eternal life, the manifestation of the kingdom and glory of the incarnate god, thus the rising of the Sun of Righteousness with healing in His wings, to be an everlasting Guide, Comforter, Protector, and Saviour. Q. What then do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written, Straightway Jesus spoke to them, saying, Be of good cheer; it is I, be not afraid? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words describe the consolation communicated to the troubled disciples by the audible voice of their Divine Master, assuring them that their fears were groundless, for that it was He Himself; but according to the spiritual sense of the history, as it applies to the regeneration of man, the words are expressive of a divine influx into the minds of those who are principled in the knowledges of what is good and true, but not yet in the life of those knowledges, instructing them that their alarms about the nearness of the Divine Presence and omnipotence are unfounded. By the expression therefore, Be of good cheer, is to be understood an influx of divine confidence; and by the additional expression, It is I, or, as it is written in the original, I am, is to be understood a manifestation of the sole and supreme divinity of the blessed Jesus, and of his divine power over all the turbulence of human passions; and lastly, by the concluding words, Be not afraid, is to be understood a communication of divine strength, dispelling all the fears and disquietudes, to which the natural mind is ever subject, when separated from the spiritual, and thus from the life of heavenly love and charity. Q. But it is written afterwards, that Peter answered Him and said, Lord, if it be You, bid me come to You on the water — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. By Peter, according to the spiritual idea, is here to be understood the faith of the church, and especially that faith which acknowledges the divinity of the great saviour, agreeable to what was shown in treating of the miracle of Peter’s wife’s mother being cured of her fever, (Mat 8:14-15). By Peter therefore answering, and saying, Lord, if it be You, bid me come to You on the water, is to be further understood a divine impulse imparted to that faith by which it was led to acknowledge, in the first place the divinity of the great saviour, as expressed by the significant appellation, lord; and in the next place was prompted to seek a closer conjunction with the incarnate god, in the exercise of that omnipotence, by which He controlled all the lower principles of the natural mind, together with the infernal powers with which they were connected, signified by the words. If it be You, bid me come to you on the water. Q. And what do you understand by the words which immediately follow, where it is written, And He said, Come; and when Peter was come down out of the ship, he walked on the water to go to Jesus; but when he saw the wind boisterous, he was afraid; and beginning to sink, he cried, lord, save me? A. By the blessed Jesus saying, Come, is to be understood the invitation of the divine love and mercy, not only to Peter, but likewise to all believers, to enter into the closest state of conjunction with the divine omnipotence, especially in its control over the lower principles of the natural man. And by Peter coming down out of the ship, and walking on the water, to go to Jesus, is to be understood compliance with that invitation; and by his further being afraid, and beginning to sink, and crying, lord, save me, when he saw the wind boisterous, is to be understood his weak and wavering faith, together with the weak and wavering faith of all those, who are principled in the knowledge of holy things, but are not yet advanced far in the life of that knowledge, and who consequently feel alarmed when they hear and feel the boisterous wind of strong temptation. Q. But it immediately follows, that Jesus stretched forth His hand, and caught him, and said unto him, O you of little faith, wherefore did you doubt? And when they were come into the ship, the wind ceased — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. I learn first, that the blessed Jesus is ever attentive to the prayer of His children, and immediately supplies all their wants. I learn in the second place, that the supply of the wants of His children is always effected by an exertion of His omnipotence, represented and signified by stretching out His hand. In the third place I am instructed, that omnipotence cannot help or save man, unless it operate on the principles of his life, represented and signified by He caught him, or, as it might be better expressed, laid hold of him. I further learn, that the blessed jesus effects His saving and salutary purposes, in many cases, by wholesome reproof, which leads to serious self-examination about the cause of fear and unbelief, and is signified by Jesus saying to Peter, O you of little faith, wherefore did you doubt? And lastly I am instructed, that when the blessed Jesus, together with a right faith, are admitted into the knowledges of what is good and true, immediately tranquillity is restored, the wind of infernal influence ceases to blow, and there is a great calm, signified by the concluding words, that when they were come into the ship, the wind ceased. Q. And what do you learn from the concluding words in the history of this miracle, where it is written, that they who were in the ship came and worshiped Him, saying, Of a truth You are the Son of God? A. According to their plain and obvious sense, these words teach that the divinity of Jesus Christ was again acknowledged by His followers, in consequence of His walking on the sea, and manifesting thus His power of control over the elements of nature; for it is said, that they came and worshiped Him, saying, Of a truth You are the Son of God. But according to the more remote or spiritual idea, I learn from the above words, that the divinity and divine humanity of the great saviour were on this occasion acknowledged, and this by reason of the control which He exercised over the passions, the disturbances, the alarms, and the unbelief of the natural man or mind. For by Jesus walking on the sea, and supporting the wavering faith of Peter, this control is figured and represented, whilst by the worship which was paid, and by the confession, Of a truth You are the Son of God, is manifestly described the acknowledgement, not only of His divinity, but also of His divine humanity, according to which latter signification, He was emphatically called the son of god. It is however well to be considered, that this acknowledgment was made by those who were in the ship, to instruct us in the necessity of acquiring knowledges of what is good and true from the word of god, before such acknowledgement can be made; for by a ship, as was shown above, are signified such knowledges. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn in the first place, from the letter of the history, an additional proof of the divinity of Jesus Christ, confirmed by His walking on the sea, and calming its disturbed waters. I learn further, from the spiritual sense of the history, the great necessity of acquiring the knowledges of what is good and true from the word of god, which necessity is made known by Jesus constraining His disciples to go into a ship. I learn again the usual effect of those knowledges on the impure principles of the natural mind, in exciting disturbance, trial and temptation, ex-pressed in the history by the ship being tossed with waves, for the wind was contrary. But I learn further, to my great consolation, that the blessed Jesus is ever present in the midst of such disturbance, compelling it to make more manifest His fatherly mercy and divine omnipotence. From the example also of the apostle Peter, who, when he saw the wind boisterous, was afraid, I am instructed what the weakness of human faith is, unless supported by and in conjunction with a divine faith; but from the same example also I learn, that all things are possible to him that believes, and that if human faith connect itself with omnipotence, it also can walk on the water, and go to Jesus . Again, I learn that the great redeemer is ever stretching forth the hand of His Divine Omnipotence to succour His children in all their dangers, and to relieve them in all their fears, whilst at the same time He leads them to a diligent exploration of the causes of their alarms, by the friendly expostulation, O you of little faith, wherefore did you doubt? Lastly, I observe in the ship, which contained the blessed saviour and His disciples, a figure of the true church, and of every individual of the church, tossed on the boisterous waves of trial and temptation, yet riding in perfect safety and security, under the rule and government of Him, who sits above the water-floods, and remains a King for ever be the earth never so unquiet. I am resolved therefore, through the aid of His divine favour and strength, so to apply myself to the study of the eternal truth, that I may find a place in that figurative ship, and may thus be conveyed, in communion with the blessed Jesus and His disciples, through all the storms and tempests of this lower world, to the haven of eternal rest in that happy world, where there is no more death, neither sorrow, nor crying, neither shall there be any more pain. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 18: 01.17. THE SICK HEALED IN THE LAND OF GENNESARETH ======================================================================== The Sick Healed in the Land Of Gennesareth. Mat 14:34-36. And when they were gone over, they came into the land of Gennesareth. And when the men of that place had knowledge of Him, they sent out into all that country round about, and brought to Him all that were diseased, etc. Q. WHAT do you understand here by their going over, and coming into the land of Gennesareth? A. According to the letter of the history, these words relate only to the passage of the blessed Jesus and His disciples across the lake, and their arrival at the land on the other side; but according to the spiritual sense, the words have respect to a change of state in the church, in consequence of the knowledges of good and truth which had been imbibed, and which are represented by the ship in which they had sailed; For there is no circumstance in the life of the blessed Jesus, as it is recorded in the gospel, howsoever trivial it may appear, but what involves in it some spiritual and edifying instruction relative to Himself and to the new church which He came to establish. Besides, all the places in the land of Canaan are significative and representative, like the land of Canaan itself, which, it is well known, is significative and representative of the heavenly Canaan, or of the kingdom of heaven. This observation is true of the Land of Gennesareth here mentioned, which therefore is to be understood as having a spiritual signification and representation, like all other places recorded in the gospel history. What its signification and representation is, may be known in some degree from the name itself, which properly signifies the garden of the prince; and since the term garden, wheresoever it occurs in the sacred history, is always applied to denote spiritual intelligence, and especially the intelligence derived from the word of god, therefore by Jesus and His disciples coming into the land of Gennesareth is to be understood the church’s advancement to a state of intelligence, effected by the knowledges of truth which had been previously admitted. Q. But it is written, that when the men of that place had knowledge of Him, they sent out into all that country round about, and brought to Him all that were diseased — what do you conceive to be the meaning of these words? A. According to the letter of the history, the above words relate to the men of Gennesareth informing all the country round about of the arrival of the blessed Jesus, and to their bringing to Him all that were afflicted with bodily diseases, that they might be healed. But according to the spiritual sense of the history, the words have reference to those in the church who are principled in intelligence, and who from the light of intelligence have knowledge of the Divine Omnipotence of the incarnate god, and are therefore eager to bring every spiritual infirmity and disorder under the operation of that omnipotence, that so it may be removed, and the church thus restored to the blessed order and image of heaven and its god. For such is the nature of all true intelligence, that it is always employed in looking, by virtue of the light of heaven which it receives, first at the divine perfections, as made manifest in the blessed Jesus ; and secondly at human imperfections, weaknesses, errors, and disorders, to the intent that as far as possible the latter may be operated upon by the former, and thus may make more manifest the divine mercy and omnipotence. Q. And what do you learn from the words which follow, where it is written, And besought Him that they might only touch the hem of His garment, and as many as touched were made perfectly whole? A. By the garment of the blessed Jesus, as was shown in treating of the miracle concerning the bloody issue, (Mat 9:20-23), is signified and represented the divine truth of His holy word; this being as a garment containing and investing the divine good of His love. By the hem of His garment is therefore to be understood the lowest or outermost principle of that truth, which principle is the letter or literal sense of the word; and to touch this hem of course means to have communication with the blessed Jesus by means of that literal sense. When therefore it is said of the men of Gennesareth, that they besought Him that they might only touch the hem of His garment, it is to denote the strong desire of those in the church who are intelligent, that every infirmity, error, and disorder of human nature may be submitted to the rule and guidance of the eternal truth, even in its lowest or outermost principles, as is the case when the letter of the holy word is seen and considered according to its proper sanctity, as being the sacred receptacle and basis of the treasures of the divine wisdom and love stored up within it. It is therefore added, that as many as touched were made perfectly whole, to denote, that if the letter of the holy word be held in proper reverence, by regarding it as the consecrated tabernacle of all that is divine, thus as the residence and abode of the eternal and the infinite, of all His attributes, and of all His perfections, it then never fails to communicate a healing virtue, of efficacy sufficient for the removal of every infirmity and disorder of the human mind, so that they, who before were spiritually blind, deaf, diseased and infirm, are by degrees restored to the perfection of spiritual sight, hearing, health, and virtue. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this history? A. I learn from this history, that the church, in advancing towards perfection of life, which is the conjunction of love and wisdom, and thus conjunction with the lord, has to pass through several states, which may be called states of its regeneration, and that one of these states is a state of spiritual intelligence, figured by the land of Gennesareih, and resulting from the knowledges of what is good and true, derived from the word of god. I learn further, that this state of intelligence conducts to the knowledge of the incarnate god, signified by the men of Gennesareth having knowledge of Jesus, and that they who are in that knowledge from a perception of the divine perfections, are ever desirous to submit all human infirmities and disorders to the control of the divine mercy and omnipotence. Lastly, I learn that in this state of spiritual intelligence, a discovery is made of the divine virtue and presence ever operative in the letter of the holy word, and that by means of that operation, the all of evil and of error is gradually removed in the minds of the penitent and the faithful, who are willing to admit its healing influence. I am resolved therefore now on, to apply myself diligently and devoutly to the study of the pages of the eternal truth, that so, through the divine mercy, I may attain to a state of spiritual intelligence, and thus be led to a discovery, not only of the perfections of the incarnate god, but also of the interior evils and disorders of my own mind and life, which, without the light of such intelligence, must for ever remain hid, unacknowledged, and consequently unremoved. And I am further resolved to believe, like the men of Gennesareth, that a divine and holy virtue is ever present from the great and holy god in the letter of His revealed word; and that consequently, if by a right faith and pure life I maintain communication with that divine virtue, by submitting all my natural evils and errors to its purifying and controlling influence, I may then indulge the consolatory hope that sooner or later every disorderly affection, appetite, thought, word or work, will give place to the blessed order, purity and peace of the divine love and wisdom in my own happy bosom, amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 19: 01.18. THE DEVIL CAST OUT FROM THE DAUGHTER OF THE WOMAN OF CANAAN ======================================================================== The Devil Cast Out From the Daughter of the Woman of Canaan Mat 15:21-29 Then Jesus went thence, and departed into the coasts of Tyre and Sidon. And, behold, a woman of Canaan came out of the same coasts, and cried to Him, saying, Have mercy, on me, O lord, you Son of David; my daughter is grievously vexed with a devil, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by Jesus departing into the coasts of Tyre and Zidon? A. According to the sense of the letter, by Jesus departing into the coasts of Tyre and Si-don is to be understood, that as to His body, or bodily presence, He really entered into those coasts. But whereas all that the blessed Jesus did; all His journeyings, His sojournings, and His resting-places were significative and representative of spiritual and celestial things relating to His church and kingdom; and as all places in the land of Canaan, and bordering upon that land, were in like manner significative and representative; therefore by Jesus departing into the coasts of Tyre and Sidon, is to be understood a state into which He entered as to His humanity, in its progress towards union with His divinity, corresponding to the spiritual signification of Tyre and Zidon. Q. And what do you conceive to be the spiritual signification of those two places? A. These places, as being near the sea, and in the boundaries of the land of Canaan, were figurative of the knowledges, both interior and exterior, necessary for introduction into the church, or heaven, represented by the land of Canaan, Tyre being figurative of interior knowledges, and Zidon of exterior. As therefore the descent of the blessed Jesus into Egypt, when He was a child, was figurative of His instruction in the scientifics of the church, with a view to the glorification of His human nature, or to making it divine; in like manner His departure here recorded into the coasts of Tyre and Zidon, denotes His further instruction in the knowledges represented by those two places. Frequent mention is accordingly made in the Psalms and in the prophetic writings, both of Tyre and Zidon, and in all cases with reference to their internal spiritual signification as above stated. Q. But it is written, that Behold, a woman of Canaan came out of the same coasts, and cried to Him, saying, Have mercy on me, O Lord, You Son of David; my daughter is grievously vexed with a devil——what do you here understand by a woman of Canaan coming out of those coasts? A. According to the sense of the letter, by a woman of Canaan coming out of those coasts, is to be understood such a woman coming out of the coasts of Tyre and Zidon; but according to the spiritual or internal sense of the history, is to be understood the affection of truth in the church; for by Canaan is signified and represented the church; and by a woman, the affection of truth which constitutes the church; and by this woman coming out of the coasts of Tyre and Zidon is further denoted the affection of truth emerging from the knowledges in which it was principled, and advancing to that state of purification and conjunction with the supreme good, to which those knowledges point. Q. And what do you conceive to be implied in the words which follow, where it is written? And cried to Him, saying, Have mercy on me, O Lord, you Son of David; my daughter is grievously vexed with a devil? A. By crying to Him, is to be understood the vehement affection from which she spoke; and by saying, is further to be understood the expression of that affection in her thought; and that this thought was grounded in a full persuasion of the divinity and divine humanity of the blessed Jesus whom she was addressing, is plain from the words which she applies on the occasion, Have mercy on me, O Lord, You Son of David. For by the exclamation, Have mercy on me, O Lord, is manifestly expressed an acknowledgement of the divinity of the being to whom it was directed, and by the additional appellation of You Son of David; is marked with equal emphasis the acknowledgement of His humanity. It is added, my daughter is grievously vexed with a devil, to denote that the vehemence of her affection, and the piety of her exclamation, were grounded in the painful sentiment, that the heavenly good of love and charity, which had been produced in her mind, was infested by the infernal opposite principles of evil and of defilement, for by daughter is signified such heavenly good, which had been produced from the affection of truth; and by being grievously vexed with a devil, is denoted the infestation excited by infernal evil and defilement. Q. But it is said that he (Jesus ) answered her not a word, And Hisdisciples came and besought Him, saying, Send her away; for she cries after us——what do you here understand by Jesus answering her not a word? A. According to the literal idea, the expression means that He was silent; but the spiritual idea involved in silence is that of astonishment, since this sentiment maybe so great as to take away the use of speech. Thus it is written in the book of Revelations, (Rev 8:1). that there was silence in heaven for the space of half an hour, to denote the astonishment, or amaze-merit of the angelic host, at learning what was the state of the church, as it had been discovered in the preceding chapter. The silence, therefore, of the blessed Jesus on the present occasion, was the silence of astonishment, occasioned either by the faith of the supplicant woman who was addressing Him, and which He afterwards so highly commended, or by the consideration of the state of her unhappy daughter, who was grievously vexed with a devil. Q. And how do you understand the following words, where it is said, that His disciples came and besought Him, saying, Send her away, for she cries after us? A. By the disciples are here to be understood those, who have received the knowledge of truth in their understandings, but are not yet equally principled in the good of love and charity in their wills; and it is the nature and disposition of such persons to judge others from the spirit of truth or faith alone, and not from a principle of heaven-born love or charity. When therefore these disciples observed that the woman of Canaan was urgent with her entreaties in favour of her daughter, they would have sent her away without the blessing which she solicited, because she herself was not a disciple, or instructed in the doctrines or opinions which they had learned, and because she troubled them with her cries. And thus it is at this day that they, who are principled in the doctrine of faith alone, assigning it a pre-eminence over charity and good works, decide on the merits of others from their opinions more than from their practices, and reprobate all who do not receive their creed, whatever respect they may pay to the commandments of God. Q. But it follows that He (Jesus ) answered and said, I am not sent but to the lost sheep of the house of Israel — what do you conceive to be the purport of these words? A. These words, in appearance, seem to justify the disciples, who requested that He would send the woman away ; but that this is only an appearance, and that the blessed Jesus therefore did not mean to vindicate His disciples, is evident from the concluding part of the history, in which we read that he granted the woman’s request. In like manner it is evident from the words themselves, that Jesus did not intend absolutely to reject the petitions of the distressed woman, but only to try her faith, and thus to purify and strengthen it. For when he says, I am not sent but to the lost sheep of the house of Israel, He intended to teach His followers in all ages, that the grand end and design of His coming into the world was to assist and save those who were principled in some degree of heavenly good, but who, for want of the knowledge of the truth, are in danger of being deprived of that good; all such being signified by the lost sheep of the house of Israel. It is not therefore to be understood that by the lost sheep of the house of Israel, are meant only the Jews, or they who were of the seed of Abraham according to the flesh; but the expression includes all those who were of the seed of Abraham according to the Spirit, that is to say, who possess the heavenly faith and love by which the patriarch was distinguished. Jesus Christ accordingly declares concerning the publican Zaccheus, who was by birth a Gentile, This day is salvation come to this house, forasmuch as He also is the son of Abraham, (Luk 19:9). evidently teaching that every one is a son of Abraham, who, like the publican Zaccheus, is principled in that faith and love which seek to see Jesus who He is, (verse 3). Q. And what do you learn from the succeeding words, where it is written, Then came she and worshiped Him, saying, lord, help me? A. I learn from these words that a true faith and love is not to be discouraged by any apparent rejection of its petition, or by any seeming repulsion on the part of the almighty. For notwithstanding the silence of the blessed jesus in the first instance, and the subsequent reply, I am not sent but to the lost sheep of the house of Israel, the distressed woman, who is the subject of this history, still persists in her adoration of her redeeming lord, and in her supplication for his divine aid, thus instructing all future supplicants to persevere patiently in all their spiritual purposes, and not to be dispirited, whatsoever apparent difficulties and obstructions may present themselves. Q. And what do you learn further from the reply which the blessed Jesus makes on the occasion, and which is expressed in these words, It is not worthy to take the children’s meat, and to cast it to dogs? A. By the children, are here to be understood those of the church, who receive and cherish the heavenly principles of goodness and truth in their hearts and lives; and by their bread is to be understood the holy Word which contains these principles, according to which idea it is written, Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word which proceeds out of the mouth of god, (Deu 8:3. Mat 4:4). By dogs again are here to be understood the Gentiles, or those who are out of the church where the Word is taught and received, and according to this sense the term is again applied in the parable of the rich man and Lazarus, where it is written concerning the latter, that the dogs came and licked his sores, denoting that the ill effects resulting from false principles, which in the parable are here called sores, were healed by the externally good affections of the Gentiles, or of those who were not in possession of the Word. Yet dogs are frequently spoken of in the scripture in a bad sense, as denoting concupiscencies and appetites, agreeable to which sense it is written in the book of Psalms, For dogs have compassed me, (Psa 22:16). and in the Revelations, speaking of the holy city Jerusalem, For without are dogs, (Rev 22:15). When the blessed Jesus therefore said, It is not worthy to take the children’s meat, and to cast it to dogs, He taught an important lesson of divine truth, namely. that the holy word ought not to be imparted to those who are not in a disposition to receive it; as He says also in another place, Give not that which is holy to the dogs, (Mat 7:6). There is reason, however, to believe, that in the reply which he here makes to the distressed supplicant, He meant to try and to exercise the principles of her faith and love, by presenting another apparently discouraging remark, and by such trial and exercise to purify the principles which were the subject of His operation. And that this was its effect, is evident from the answer made by the supplicant, where she says, Truth, lord, but the dogs eat of the crumbs which fall from their master’s table, for these words are evidently words of humiliation, and at the same time of adoration of the divinity of the great saviour, also of assent to the truth which He delivered, implying likewise that such is the divine bounty, that all receive from it more or less of spiritual nourishment, and that consequently the Gentiles, who are here called dogs, derive benefit from the revealed Word, and though not fed to the full like the children, yet, partake of the crumbs, which fall from the plentiful table of the great creator and preserver, Q. But it is written in the conclusion, that Jesus answered and said to her, 0 woman, great is your faith; be it to you even as you will. And her daughter was made whole from that very hour——what instruction do you learn from these words? A. I learn from these words the blessed effect of patient perseverance in good desires and good purposes, and how, sooner or later, all difficulties and discouragements fall down before it; I learn further to distinguish this good effect by the three characters here given of it, first, as discovering to the woman the quality of her faith, and that it was a faith grounded in love and charity, signified by a great faith, for the term great is always applied in reference to that heavenly principle, or to its opposite. Secondly, as discovering further that the quality of every one, and his condition hereafter, depend altogether on the state of his will or love, signified by the words, Be it to you even as you will. And thirdly, as promoting the deliverance of the affection of good in the church from the infestations of infernal evils, signified by the words, And her daughter was made whole from that very hour. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn in the first place, that when the affection of truth in the church, by the acquirement of heavenly knowledge, is succeeded by the affection of good, which is the affection of heavenly love and charity, this latter affection is presently infested by evils, and by the infernal spirits who are in connection with those evils, and who seek to destroy it. I learn further, that in this state of infestation, the Omnipotence of the great redeemer is sought for and supplicated, as the only power capable of removing the infestation. I learn again that the aid of this Omnipotence, according to appearance, is not immediately granted, and that many apparent difficulties and discouragements are wont to present themselves against it; Lastly, I learn that these apparent difficulties and discouragements only tend to the purification and confirmation of the good desires and purposes, which they seemed to oppose; and that finally, through the divine mercy and power of the incarnate god, which had been solicited, all apparent obstacles are removed, the quality of heavenly good in the devout supplicant is made manifest, the ruling love is discovered to be the arbiter of man’s eternal state, and infernal infestation is no longer suffered to assault and vex the troubled spirit. I am resolved therefore, that under all the infestations of evil spirits which are permitted to molest me, I will follow the example of the devout woman, whose great faith is recorded in the above history, and therefore, whatsoever discouragements may be thrown in my way, whether they be real or apparent; and Howsoever my god and saviour may delay the fulfilment of my desires and petitions, I will not cast away my confidence, but will still patiently persevere, until I hear from His divine lips the consolatory words, Great is your faith; be it, to you even as you will. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 20: 01.19. THE LAME, BLIND, DUMB, MAIMED, AND MANY OTHERS HEALED ======================================================================== The Lame, Blind, Dumb, Maimed, and Many Others Healed. Mat 15:30-32 And great multitudes came to Him, having with them those that were lame, blind, dumb, maimed, and many others, and cast them down at jesus’s feet, and He healed them, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by great multitudes? A. By great multitudes, according to the sense of the letter, are to be understood great multitudes of people or persons; but according to the spiritual sense are to be understood multitudes of principles and persuasions ; which principles and persuasions were disordered, according to the description given in the history of this miracle, some being lame, some blind, some dumb, some maimed, with many other disorders. Q. And what do you mean by principles and persuasions of these several characters? A. A principle and persuasion is lame, when it has no orderly connection with the fountain of life, being destitute of that knowledge of genuine truth which is necessary to give it such connection, for without genuine truth, the fountain of life cannot descend into the life of man, neither can the life of man ascend to the fountain of life. Man therefore, in such case, is spiritually lame, in like manner as he is corporeally lame, when a limb or member of the body has no orderly connection with the fountain of its life. Again, a principle or persuasion is spiritually blind when it is without the intelligence of truth, or, what amounts to the same, without the light of heaven, since as the body is blind, which has no eye capable of discerning the things of this world, in like manner the soul is blind, which has no understanding capable of discerning the things of another world. Again, a principle or persuasion is dumb, when it can-not speak the praises of its maker, and tell of all his wondrous works, since as the bodily mouth is dumb, when it cannot give utterance to natural thoughts, so as to communicate them to others, for the same reason the spiritual mouth is dumb, when it cannot communicate to others its spiritual thoughts. Lastly, a principle or persuasion is maimed, when it is destitute of the love of the supreme good; in other words, when natural love is separated from spiritual love, since as the body is maimed when injury is done to any of its members, so that the connection is broken between them and the heart, in like manner the spirit is maimed, when any perverse affection separates any of its members from the influences of heavenly love and charity. Q. And what do you understand by what is further written, where it is said, That they cast them down at jesus’s feet, and He healed them? A. According to the sense of the letter, by these words is to be understood, that the lame, the blind, the dumb, and the maimed, were really laid at the bodily feet of Jesus , and that he healed them; but according to the above spiritual sense of this miracle is to be understood that the spiritually lame, the spiritually blind, the spiritually dumb, and the spiritually maimed, had access to the natural humanity of the blessed Jesus, and had thereby communication with the healing virtue flowing forth from the divinity which dwelt in that humanity, and was one with it. For as the feet of man are the lowest parts of his body, on which the higher parts stand and operate, they are therefore figurative and representative of the lower principles of his spirit, which principles are called natural, as being In the nearest connexion with the world of nature. Accordingly the term feet is frequently applied in the sacred Scriptures to express the lower principles of man’s natural life, as where it is written, Your word is a lamp to my feet, (Psa 119:105). He shall pluck my feet out of the net, (Psa 25:15). You have set my feet in a large room, (Psa 31:8). He has set my feet on a rock, (Psa 40:2). He suffer eth not our feet to be moved, (Psa 66:9). As for me my feet were almost gone, (Psa 73:2). I turned my feet to your testimonies, (Psa 119:59), together with numberless other passages to the same purpose, all tending to prove that by feet, when the term occurs in the sacred Scriptures, are not to be understood the bodily feet only, but those external natural principles, which are as feet to the mind. Accordingly, the great redeemer is described in the Revelations as to His feet, which are said to be like fine brass, (Rev 1:15), to denote the purity of His natural principle, when it was glorified, or made divine. Q. But it is written that the multitude wondered, when they saw the dumb to speak, the maimed to be whole, the lame to walk, and the blind to see; and they glorified the god of Israel — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. From the wondering of the multitude, I am instructed that nothing excites so much astonishment and adoration in the devout mind, as the contemplation of the operations of the almighty, especially when those operations are exercised in the removal of man’s spiritual disorders; and in his restoration thus to the order and life of heaven. This removal and restoration are signified by the dumb speaking, the maimed being whole, the lame walking, and the blind seeing, for under these four classes of infirmity and disorder, and of recovery, are involved all the evils and errors to which the nature of man is exposed, and from which, through the divine mercy, he hopes for deliverance. It is therefore added, They glorified the god of israel, because by the god of israel, the same thing is understood as by the feet of the blessed Jesus, namely. His natural humanity, which is then said to be glorified, when it is devoutly approached as the only fountain of all spiritual life, virtue, power, and salvation. It is further to be observed concerning this appellation, The god of israel, that in the Old Testament it is assumed by jehovah himself, who calls Himself The god, of israel, as being the Saviour of those who are signified by Israel, namely. His spiritual church, and who could not have been saved, unless they could have approached their god as a man, and thus have attained conjunction with Him as a man. Such a man was the great redeemer as to His natural humanity, which humanity He successively glorified until It became one with His divinity, and thus He gives to His spiritual children perpetual access to and conjunction with Himself, whilst they, in their turn, receiving from His divine body a cure for all their spiritual disorders, glorify Him as the god of israel; and in so doing, acknowledge Him to be the same identical Being with the great jehovah. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the combination of miracles here recorded? A. I learn that in the church in general, and in every individual member of the church in particular, there are numberless and nameless principles and persuasions, many of which are in a state of infirmity and disorder, answering to the four classes recorded in the above history, called the lame, the blind, the dumb, and the maimed. I learn further, that it is the wisdom of the church in general, and of every member of the church in particular, to lay these disordered principles and persuasions at the feet of the blessed Jesus; in other words, to submit them to the blessed influence and control of His divine humanity, as the only medium of their access to and conjunction with the supreme divinity who is one with it. Lastly, I learn that the blessed Jesus, in this His divine humanity, is ever near, and infinitely willing to administer a remedy from himself for every infirmity, disorder, evil, and error, to which the nature of man is subject, whether consisting in lameness, which is the want of genuine truth, or in blindness, which is the want of spiritual intelligence, or in dumbness, which is the want of spiritual utterance, or in being maimed, which is the want of genuine affection, and that the view of this His nearness and willingness, and of the blessed effects thereby produced, begets in the devout mind sentiments at once of astonishment and of adoration. I am resolved therefore from now on to imitate the multitudes above described, by looking attentively into the interiors of my own mind, and there discovering all that is lame, blind, dumb, maimed, with every other infirmity and disorder, and by laying them, when discovered, at the feet of the blessed Jesus, and thus submitting them to the influence and control of His divine mercy, wisdom, and omnipotence, as manifested in His divine humanity. Thus may I humbly hope, like the wondering multitude of old, to be excited to astonishment at the redeeming power of my god and saviour, when I behold the dumb speaking, the maimed made whole, the lame walking, and the blind seeing; and thus too, with them, observing that all these blessed effects are derived from His divine humanity, I may be admitted to the honour and happiness of glorifying with them the god of israel. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 21: 01.20. THE MIRACLE OF THE SEVEN LOAVES AND FISHES ======================================================================== The Miracle Of The Seven Loaves And Fishes. Mat 15:32-39. Then Jesus called His disciples to Him, and said, I have compassion on the multitude, because they continue with me now three days and have nothing to eat; and I will not send them away fasting, lest they faint in the way, etc. Q. IN speaking of the miracle of the five loaves recorded in the foregoing chapter, you have already explained the principal circumstances attending this miracle, particularly in regard to the compassion of the blessed Jesus, and also in regard to the loaves and fishes, and the baskets-full of fragments which were taken up. Can you now tell me in what respects the present miracle differs from the farmer, and what is the ground of that difference? A. The present miracle differs from the former in these four respects, first, that the number of loaves, in the present instance, was seven, whereas in the former case they were five; secondly, that on the present occasion the multitude were commanded to sit down on the ground, whereas on the former occasion they were commanded to sit down on the grass; thirdly, that the number of men, who were fed by the loaves, in the present instance were four thousand, whereas in the former case they were five thousand; fourthly, that in the present instance the number of baskets taken up were seven, whereas in the former case they were twelve. It is remarkable also that in the original Greek, the baskets mentioned in the two miracles are called by different names, for in the former miracle they are called Cophinoi, whereas in the latter they are called Spurides. Q. And what do you conceive to be the ground of all these differences in the two miracles? A. Each miracle is to be conceived as figurative and significative of a communication of heavenly good from the blessed Jesus to His church, and of the reception of that good by His church. But the good communicated by the blessed Jesus to His church is of two kinds, namely. the good of truth or faith, and the good of love or charity; and the former of these goods always precedes and is intended to conduct to the latter. When therefore the church had been fed and nourished by the former of these goods, and the period was now arrived for its reception of the latter, this reception is here recorded in the Evangelical History, and marked with such distinct characters, as to leave no doubt in the minds of the intelligent what is its distinct signification and meaning. For in the first place, it is said of the multitude on this occasion, that they had continued with Jesus now three days, denoting a full state of instruction in spiritual knowledge; for by three days is to be understood a full and complete period; and by continuing with Jesus, is further to be understood & a state of instruction. In the second place, the number of loaves are recorded to be seven, and the number seven, it is well known, denotes what is holy, and is usually applied in the sacred Scriptures to a state of love and charity, and therefore on the present occasion, when applied to the loaves, is significative of holy nourishment, that is to say, the nourishment derived from love and charity. In the third place, the multitude were commanded to sit down on the ground, not on the grass, as in the former miracle, denoting a state of more interior reception of good, for by ground is signified what is interior in respect to grass, which is its exterior product. In the fourth place, the number of men, who were fed by these loaves, are here said to be four thousand, and the number four, like the number two, from which it arises by multiplication, is always applied to denote a state of conjunction, thus the conjunction of love and wisdom, or of charity and faith, and therefore four yousand men, in the present instance, denote those of the church, in whom love and wisdom, or charity and faith are conjoined. Lastly, the number of baskets taken up, on the present occasion, were seven, which number, as was above noted, is always applied to denote what is most holy, thus what relates to love and charity. Q. You tell me that there are two kinds of spiritual good communicated by the blessed Jesus to His church, namely. the good of truth or faith, and the good of love or charity, will you now be pleased to inform me, how you distinguish these two kinds of good from each other? A. The good of truth or faith is the good done by man, whenever he submits his life, that is to say, his affections, thoughts, words, and works, to be guided and governed by the principles of truth, or faith operative in his understanding; thus when he is under the leading of intellectual light, and is obedient to that light, as proceeding from the revealed Word of the most high. On the other hand, the good of love or charity is the good done by man, when he begins to rise above the principles of truth or faith in his intellectual mind, and to act from the higher principle of love to god and his neighbour operative in his will, thus, when he is no longer led by the light of truth or faith alone, but is governed, because warmed by the genial heat of heaven-born regard to god in the Highest, and good-will towards men. These two distinct classes of good are carefully to be discriminated from each other, being in agreement with other distinctions frequently referred to in the sacred Scriptures, as with the distinction between knowing and doing, (John 21:17), between a prophet’s reward and a righteous man’s reward, (Matt. 40:41), between the wisdom of the serpent and the harmlessness of the dove, (Mat 10:16), between the sheep, whom Peter was required to feed, (John 21:16), and the sheep which he was again required to feed, (John 21:17). For by all these distinctions we are taught, that the life of man consists of two distinct principles, namely. will and understanding, the will being created to be a receptacle of the divine love, as the understanding is created to be a receptacle of the divine wisdom. We are therefore taught further by the same distinctions, that there are two kinds or degrees of heavenly good, or of that good which connects man with heaven, and is his qualification hereafter for admission into heaven, namely. the good produced by and from an enlightened understanding, and the good produced by and from a purified will. To conduct man then to the knowledge of these two kinds of good, and to teach him the importance of attending well to their distinct natures and qualities, appears to have been the design of the divine providence in the two miracles above recorded, the first of which was intended to teach the edifying lesson, that the good of faith, or truth, is from Jesus Christ, and has conjunction with Him and His kingdom, whilst the second was intended to teach the edifying lesson, that the good of love, or charity, is likewise from Jesus Christ, and in a still closer degree of conjunction with that great god and His eternal kingdom. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above miracle? A. I learn again to adore the mercy and omnipotence of my god and saviour, who, on two several occasions, was pleased to supply His children in a miraculous manner with food and nourishment for their perishable bodies, and to convince them, under that striking figure, of the infinitely more substantial and durable nourishment which He continually administers for the support and comfort of their immortal souls. I am taught further, by the above miracle, the edifying lesson, to distinguish the nourishment of the soul into two kinds, namely. that which is imparted by means of heavenly truth, or faith in the understanding, and that which is produced by love and charity in the will. I am still further instructed that both the one and the other of these two kinds of good is accepting of the bliss of heaven, and consequently is a qualification for introduction into the societies of heaven, because both the one and the other is in connexion with Jesus Christ, proceeding from Him, leading to Him, and abiding in Him. I am resolved therefore to attend well in my own mind to these two distinct kinds and orders of heavenly good, and so to feed upon the former, that I may finally be qualified to partake of the latter. Thus may I hope, through the divine mercy, to be one of the four thousand, who had the high happiness of being fed by their god and saviour; and thus too will some part of the seven loaves become my portion, and eating to the glory of god and the nourishment of my soul in His mercy and goodness, I also shall rejoice in taking up seven baskets-full of holy fragments. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 22: 01.21. THE TRANSFIGURATION ======================================================================== The Transfiguration. Mat 17:1-10 And after six days Jesus takes Peter, James, and John his brother, and brings them up into a high mountain apart, and was transfigured before them; and His face did shine as the sun, and His clothing was white as the light, etc. Q. CAN you see any reason why Peter, James and John were selected, on this occasion from the rest of the disciples to be present at the lord’s transfiguration? A. The reason appears to be grounded in the figurative or representative character of those three apostles; for by Peter, as has been before hinted, is figured or represented the faith of the church, particularly that faith which acknowledges the divinity of the great redeemer; by James again is figured or represented the principle of charity in the church, or that principle from god, by virtue whereof man is enabled to love his neighbour as himself; and by John is figured or represented the operation of charity, or that application to good and useful works, which has a tendency at once to promote the glory of god, to increase the sum of human happiness, and to purify and strengthen by exercise the heavenly principle in which it is grounded. The reason then why the blessed Jesus selected these three disciples to be witnesses of His transfiguration was probably this, to teach the edifying and instructive lesson, that none are capable of beholding the glory of the great saviour in His one-ness with the eternal father, but such as are principled in the faith represented by Peter, in the charity represented by James, and in the good works represented by John. Q. And can you see any reason why this selection was made after six days, or why after six days the blessed Jesus was pleased to manifest His interior glory to those three disciples? A. The reason appears to be grounded in the spiritual signification of six days, which imply a full state of previous labour, or spiritual combat, as a state preparative for admission to a nearer and closer conjunction with the principles of heavenly life, and thus with the lord of heaven, than could be attained without such labour or combat. Thus in the fourth commandment mention is made of six days’ labour, as preparative of the seventh or sabbath-day, because by the six days’ labour are there signified all the trials, conflicts and temptations necessary for man’s purification before he can be qualified to enter into that holy rest signified by the sabbath or seventh-day. Thus too the history of creation, or of man’s regeneration, as recorded in the first chapter of Genesis, is described as the work of six days, to denote again all the states of previous labour and conflict necessary to conduct man to the complete regeneration, or to that blessedness of divine order, life and peace signified by the seventh day. Q. But it is written of the blessed Jesus and His disciples on this occasion, that He brings them up into a high mountain — what do you understand here by bringing them up into a high mountain? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words, are to be understood literally, as teaching that the blessed Jesus brought the three disciples, into a high mountain of the matter and measure of this lower world; but according to the spiritual idea of a high mountain, the expression is figurative, like the six days above spoken of, and the thing figured by it is a state of heavenly love, resulting from a near and close conjunction of life with the divine fountain of life. Thus it is written in regard to this figurative meaning, O lord, by Your favour you have made my mountain to stand strong, (Psa 30:7); and thus too the mountain of the lord’s house is said to be established in the top of the mountains, and to be exalted above the hills, (Isa 2:2); in both which passages it is evident that the term mountain is applied figuratively, as in numberless other parts of the sacred Scriptures, to denote a state of holy love, communicated from the most high, and in conjunction with Him. Mountain, then as applied to the lord himself, denotes the divine love, and as applied to His disciples, denotes love derived from the divine. The spiritual meaning, therefore, of the above words, as connected in a series, is this, that after the period of previous preparation, they who are principled in faith, in charity, and in works of charity, are exalted to a state of holy conjunction with Jesus Christ in the blessed principle of His love. Q. And what do you learn from the words which follow, where it is written that He was transfigured before them; and His face did shine as the sun, and His clothing was white as the light? A. The original word here rendered transfigured signifies more properly transformed, and the genuine idea of transformation, when applied to a person, is the presenting an aspect different from what he usually presents, thus as applied in the present case to the blessed Jesus, it denotes His presenting the aspect of His divinity, or of His divine humanity, instead of that infirm humanity, in which He was usually presented to view. It therefore follows, that His face did shine as the sun, and His clothing was white as the light; because by His face is to be understood His interior mind or spirit, the face being the figure or index of the interiors, agreeable to which idea so frequent mention is made in the sacred Scriptures of the face or countenance of jehovah and of god, as denoting His divine mercy and love, thus His essential life. By this face then shining as the sun is to be understood, that the interior mind or soul of the blessed Jesus was seen to be divine good, the sun being a figure or emblem in outward nature of divinity, and of His essential life, since what the sun is to the natural world and its inhabitants, that the divinity is to the spiritual world and its inhabitants. It is accordingly added, that His clothing was white as the light, because as the face of the blessed Jesus is a figure or index of His interior mind or soul, in like mariner His clothing is a figure or index equally striking of the external principle with which the internal is invested: and as the internal principal, agreeable to what was shown above, is His divine good or love, therefore the external principle here denoted by clothing is His divine truth and wisdom, inasmuch as divine truth or wisdom is always proceeding from the divine good or love, and investing it as a garment; according to which idea it is written of jehovah, That He covers with light as with a garment, (Psa 104:2). This garment, therefore, is here said to be white as the light, because whiteness is figurative of the purity of truth, and is constantly so applied in the sacred Scriptures, and light is alike figurative of the truth itself, and is as constantly applied in the sacred Scriptures according to that figure. If the sense then of this verse be connected in a series with that of the foregoing verse, the whole will run thus, that they of the church, who are principled in faith, in charity, and in works of charity, after previous preparation, are elevated into a state of heavenly love, in which state the intellectual mind is opened to a sight of the blessed Jesus in His divine humanity, as the only god of heaven and earth, because the only source of all heavenly love and wisdom, consequently of all heavenly life, thus as the sun of the eternal world, beaming forth perpetually with the heat and light of the divine mercy and loving-kindness. Q. But it is next written, that behold, there appeared to them Moses and Elias talking with Him — how do you understand these words? A. These words have both a literal and a spiritual meaning, and the lesson which they teach according to each meaning is important and edifying. For according to their literal meaning, they overthrow at once the creed of the infidel, who denies a resurrection, by assuring us that Moses and Elias were then alive; and at the same time they expose the fallacy by which they are misled, who conceive that souls after death are not sensible of life and existence until the day of the general resurrection, when they shall be united again with their perishable bodies. In their spiritual sense again they inculcate a doc-trine still more interesting and instructive, be-cause by Moses and Elms, according to this sense, the same thing is meant as by Moses and the prophets mentioned in other parts of the sacred Scriptures, namely. the historical and prophetical word, by Moses the historical word, and by Elias the prophetical: and since these two persons appeared talking with the blessed Jesus, it is further to be understood, according to the spiritual idea, that the historical and prophetical word was seen in its internal sense, ever treating of that incarnate god and His kingdom, If the spiritual sense then of this verse be connected in a series with that of the two foregoing verses, the whole will read thus, that they who are principled in faith, in charity, and in works of charity, are not only elevated into a blessed sphere of heavenly love, in which they behold Jesus Christ in His divine humanity shining as a sun, and dispensing from His bright countenance the beams of heavenly love and light, bat also have a perception of the holy word, both as to its historical and prophetical pages. and see it in perpetual connection with its divine source, from whom it derives the fullness of its life, its sanctity, its wisdom, and its power. Q. And what instruction do you learn from the following verse, where it is written, that then answered Peter, and said to Jesus, lord, it is good for us to be here. If you will, let us make here three tabernacles, one for You, and one for Moses, and one for Elias? A. I learn from these words the proper quality and character of those in the church, who are principled in a genuine and living faith, namely. that in the first place they say with Peter, It is good for us to be here; in other words, they think it their highest happiness to enjoy the blessing of interior communion with their god and saviour, adoring His perfections, contemplating His glory, and perceiving to their great joy how he and His holy word are connected together by a bond of indissoluble union, whilst He is the All of its life, its light, and its energy; and in the second place, that they say further, Let us build three tabernacles, etc. because they are ever intent on fixing their happiness in themselves, by inviting the blessed Jesus to come and dwell with them, together with all the goods and truths of His holy word, and by thus consecrating their souls and bodies, with every principle in both, as sacred habitations, devoted to the everlasting residence of the great father of life, attended by all the angelic powers of purity, sanctity, peace, and benediction. Q. But it follows, that while He yet spake, behold, a bright cloud overshadowed them, and behold, a voice out of the cloud which said. This is my Moved Son, in whom I am well pleased; hear you Him — what do you conceive to be the meaning of these words? A. By the bright cloud, which is here said to have overshadowed the disciples, is to be understood the letter or literal sense of the holy word, made resplendent from its internal or spiritual sense, for the letter of the holy word, in respect to its internal light and lustre, is as a cloud; a bright cloud, if the internal sense be seen through it; but a dark cloud, if it be not seen. Accordingly the term cloud is frequently applied in other parts of the sacred Scriptures, to denote the obscurity of the letter of the holy records, when compared with their internal glory and splendour, as where it is written, Your truth reacheth to the clouds, where by your truth is meant the interior sense of the divine word, and by reaching to the clouds is meant its extent to and limitation in the sense of the letter: so again it is written, He spread a cloud for a covering, and fire to give light in the night, (Psa 105:39), where by a cloud for a covering is again to be understood the letter of the divine word, at once hiding and defending its interior holy contents. Again, to the same purport, Who makes the clouds his chariot, (Psa 104:3), denoting that the literal sense or history of the sacred Scriptures is as a vehicle for the conveyance of the spiritual or internal sense to the minds of men. Accordingly Jesus Christ, in describing His second advent, expresses Himself in these remarkable words, Then they shall see the Son of Man coming in the clouds of heaven with power and great glory, (Mat 24:30; Mark 13:26), where by the Son of Man is evidently meant the lord in His divine humanity; and by His coming in the clouds of heaven with power and great glory, is further to be understood His manifestation of Himself through the letter of His holy word in all the goods and truths of its interior contents. Q. And in what sense do you understand what is further written, Behold, a voice out of the cloud, which said, This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased; hear you Him? A. By a voice out of the cloud, is to be under-, stood instruction from the letter of the Word, and by this voice saying, This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased; hear you Him, is further to be understood the lord in His divine humanity, who is one with the eternal father, and who is therefore to be attended to and obeyed as the god of heaven and earth, and the only source of all divine love and wisdom, thus, of all goodness and truth. Q. But it is written further, that when the disciples heard, they fell on their faces, and were sore afraid — what do you conceive to be the force and meaning of these words? A. According to their literal sense, they contain a description of the fear which fell on the disciples, when they heard the voice from the cloud; but according to the spiritual idea contained in the letter, they describe the effect worked in the minds of all true disciples, when they are instructed concerning the lord’s divine humanity, which effect first manifests itself in devout humiliation, signified by the disciples falling on their faces, and next in a sacred awe of adoration, signified further by their being sore afraid, agreeable to which idea it is written of John in the Revelations, that when he had a sight of Jesus Christ in His divine humanity, he fell at His feet as dead, (Rev 1:17). For such is the effect produced in the natural mind by the first discovery of the incarnate god, dwelling in His glorified humanity as the god of heaven and earth, which effect results from the greater nearness and more powerful presence of the divine being in that manifestation. Q. And what do you understand by what next follows, that Jesus came and touched them, and said. Arise, and be not afraid? A. These words, according to their literal meaning, have relation to the three disciples, Peter, James and John; but according to their spiritual meaning they relate to all those who are represented by Peter, James and John, namely. those who are principled in faith, those who are principled in charity, and those who are principled in works of charity; and according to this meaning, by Jesus coming to them is signified divine presence; and by His touching them is signified communication of divine virtue or power; and by saying arise, is further signified Spiritual elevation, or elevation of the mind’s affections and thoughts in consequence of that divine virtue or power; and by His adding, Be not afraid, is lastly denoted divine confidence resulting from that elevation. Q. And what instruction do you learn from what is afterwards written, That when they lifted up their eyes, they saw no man, but Jesus only? A. By lifting up their eyes is denoted an elevation of the understanding, in consequence of the former elevation of the affections and thoughts, for when the affections and thoughts are raised out of worldly ends, to the contemplation and pursuit of eternal objects, the understanding is presently elevated in the same degree, and begins to be employed in the intellectual perception of those objects: and when this is the case, then is fulfilled too what is here further written, where it is said that they saw no man, (or as it is expressed in the original, no one) but Jesus only; for when the understanding is elevated to the perception of divine and spiritual objects, then it begins soon to be seen, that all those objects are included in the person of the blessed Jesus; in other words, that Jesus in his divine humanity is the All of heaven, the All of the holy Word, the All of the church on earth, the All of every member of the church, because the All of goodness and truth, consequently the All of salvation and eternal life. Thus, when the understanding is elevated to spiritual perception, Jesus alone is seen as the All in All of every thing both divine and human. Q. But it is lastly written, that when they came down from the mountain, Jesus charged them, saying, Tell the vision to no man until the Son of Man be risen again from the dead – what do you understand by these words? A. By their coming down from the mountain is denoted a descent from the state of love and affection, to which they had been elevated, into the duties of common life, by application to purposes of use; and by Jesus charging the disciples on this occasion, to tell the vision to no man until the Son of Man be risen from the dead, is tobe understood according to the sense of the letter, that they should not tell what they had seen to any one, until Jesus Christ was risen from the dead; but according to the spiritual sense of the above words, the caution of the blessed Jesus was to this effect, that they, who had been favoured with intellectual elevation and perception, should be careful of imparting their spiritual communications to those who are not hi a state capable of receiving and profiting by them, that is to say, in whom the Son of Man is not risen from the dead, for by the Son of Man is here to be understood the truth of the holy Word; and by this Son of Man being risen from the dead, is spiritually to be understood the resurrection, manifestation and operation of that truth in the natural mind of man, which was before dead in trespasses and sins, that is to say, in mere natural affections and thoughts. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle of the transfiguration? A. I learn in the first place that there are three heavenly principles from Jesus Christ, in which He chiefly delights, and which He implants in the minds and lives of all His regenerate children, namely. faith, charity, and the operation of charity, commonly called good works. I learn further that they, who are wise to cherish in themselves these three principles, are exalted by them into the sphere of the divine love, and in that elevation have an interior sight in their mind’s eye of the divine humanity of Jesus Christ in His one-ness with the eternal father, beholding Him as the divine source of all celestial good and truth. I learn also that in the same elevation they are favoured with a view of the holy word, and have their eyes open to see that it treats throughout of the great saviour, and as to its internal contents is in continual connection with Him, being full of His divine love and wisdom. I learn further, that it is the quality and character of a true faith, to delight in such views of Jesus Christ and His word, and that they, who are principled in such a faith, desire nothing more than to make their own minds the sacred tabernacles or abodes of that great god and His revealed will. Again, I am taught that the letter of the holy word is as a bright cloud overshadowing, covering, and defending its internal contents, and is ever bearing testimony to the divine humanity of Jesus Christ, and His one-ness with the eternal fat h e r, which testimony begets profound humiliation and sacred awe in the minds of the penitent, whereby they are admitted to a closer communication with their saviour god, and are at the same time made sensible in their minds of the elevation which it begets, and of the confidence which it inspires. Lastly, I learn that in that elevation of the understanding, Jesus Christ is seen as the All in All of His holy word, of heaven, and of the church, but that this view cannot be imparted to those, who do not suffer their minds to be elevated and enlightened by the eternal truth. I am resolved therefore to cherish in my mind, above all things, the above heavenly principles of faith, of charity, and of the operation of charity, that so, being elevated into the region of angelic love, I may view with the eye of faith the divine humanity of the incarnate god, and may further be enabled to see how His holy word is continually treating of the glorification of that humanity, and is thus full of divine love and wisdom, even in the sense of the letter. Thus may I hope, like the three disciples of old, to experience in. myself the blessed effects of this heavenly view, by being led into profound humiliation and adoration, and thereby into fuller communication with my god and saviour, and a more complete reception of His love and life. And thus, too, may I humbly hope to be enabled to discover, to my unspeakable joy, that Jesus Christ in His divine humanity, is the All in All of love, of wisdom, and of life, thus the All of heaven, the All of the church, the All of salvation, and the All of bliss, because the first and the last, the alpha and omega, the beginning and the ending, which is, which was, and which is to come, the almighty, (Rev 1:8). amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 23: 01.22. THE LUNATIC HEALED ======================================================================== The Lunatic Healed Mat 17:14-22. And when they were come to the multitude, there came to Him a man, kneeling down to Him, and saying, lord, have mercy on my son; for he is lunatic, and sore vexed: for oft-times he falls into the fire, and oft into the water, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by the man kneeling down to Jesus, and saying, lord, have mercy on my son, for he is lunatic? etc. A. According to the literal sense of this history, by the man here spoken of is meant one, who supplicates the blessed Jesus in favour of his lunatic son; but according to the spiritual or internal sense, by the man here spoken of is represented and signified the church as to the understanding of truth; and by his kneeling down to Jesus is to be understood profound humiliation; and by his saying, lord, have mercy on my son, for he is lunatic and sore vexed, is further denoted devout acknowledgement of the divinity of the great saviour, attended with fervent supplication to be delivered from the infestation occasioned by false principles in their connection with the powers of darkness. For by son, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood truth in the understanding; and by this son being lunatic and sore vexed, is further denoted the infestation of that truth by false principles. For the term lunatic literally means one who is affected by the changes of the moon, and since the moon, according to its spiritual signification in a good sense, has respect to the principles of faith, and is representative of those principles, as the sun has respect to the principle of love, and is representative of that principle, therefore by lunatic, as the word is here applied in a bad sense, is to be understood the persuasion of truth infested by false principles, on which account it is said to be sore vexed. Q. But it is added, that oft-times he falleth into the fire, and oft into the water – what do you understand by these words? A. According to their literal sense, they are to be understood literally, as having relation to elementary fire and water, and to the man falling alternately into these elements; but according to the spiritual idea, by fire and water are here to be understood the distinct spiritual principles, in which the above infestation of truth originated, fire denoting in this case the concupiscencies of evil, and water the false persuasions derived from those concupiscencies. For such is the nature of all spiritual infestation of heavenly truth, whenever that truth is first made manifest in the human understanding, since on this occasion the natural hereditary evils, which as yet have not been discovered and subdued, begin to assault, with endeavour to destroy, this first dawning of the eternal light, by claiming that light as their own, and not allowing it to bow down and acknowledge its divine parent. In the mean time the truth labours to defend itself under this assault, because the truth always points upward towards heaven, and seeks conjunction with the god of heaven. Moreover, the truth is ever intent on connecting itself with charity, and bringing forth the fruits of a pure and holy life, whereas hereditary evils are always eager to connect the truth with self-love and the love of the world, and to do works apparently good, but which have no real goodness in them, because not done to the glory of god, Hence then arises the infestation, which is here described by being lunatic and sore vexed, and by oft-times falling into the fire, and oft into the water. Q. And what do you conceive to be the meaning of the words which immediately follow, I brought him to your disciples, and they could not cure him? A. These words imply, according to their literal sense, that the disciples were not able to cure the lunatic, who was sore vexed, but according to their spiritual sense they imply, that the disciples were not yet sufficiently instructed in truths to combat and cast out the evil spirit, by which the understanding of truth in the church was infested. For from the history of this miracle, especially as it is recorded by Mark, it appears that this evil spirit was under the influence of false principles, for he is there described as foaming and gnashing with his teeth, (Mark 9:18), which expressions are constantly applied in the sacred Scriptures to denote the collision of erroneous persuasions in their combat against truth. In answer therefore to the question proposed afterwards by the disciples, Why could not we cast him out? the blessed Jesus replies, Because of your unbelief, which is the same thing as if He had said, Because ye are not yet principled in truths; for all faith is formed from truths, and therefore the want of truths is the real source of all unbelief. Q. But it is written, that Jesus answered and said, O faithless and perverse generation, how long shall I be with you? How long shall I suffer you? Bring him here to me. And Jesus rebuked the devil, and he departed out of him; and the child was cured from that very hour — what instruction do you receive from these words? A. From these words I am instructed first in the awful and fallen state of the Jewish church at that time, which drew from the great saviour the severe rebuke of being a faithless and perverse generation, for by being faithless is implied that they were destitute of all heavenly truth; and by being perverse, that they were alike destitute of all heavenly good. I learn secondly from the affectionate expostulation, How long shall I be with you? How long shall I suffer you? that the compassionate love of the blessed Jesus is not to be exhausted by any degree of faithlessness and perverseness on the part of man. This compassionate love therefore still addresses itself to its infested, children, labouring in the combat of truth against error, and of error against truth, and says of every suffering child, Bring him here to me. It also still rebukes the infesting and infernal power, until he departs out of the infested subject, so that again is fulfilled what is here written, that the child was cured from that very hour. Thus does every infestation, arising from, the powers of darkness, tend still, if it be resisted, to make more manifest both the mercy and omnipotence of the incarnate god. Q. And what do you conceive to be the force and meaning of the following words of the blessed Jesus on this occasion, where He says, If you have faith as a grain of mustard seed, you shall say to this mountain, Remove hence to yonder place, and it shall remove; and nothing shall be impossible to you? A. By faith is here to be understood a faith in the incarnate god, which is compared to a grain of mustard-seed, because in its commencement it is small, inasmuch as at that period man is led to believe that it is from himself and not from god. Nevertheless the blessed Jesus, declares even of this faith, that it is capable of removing mountains, by which mountains are to be understood spiritually the evils of self-love and the love of the world, since as a mountain, in a good sense, is representative and significative of heavenly love, so in the opposite sense it is representative and significative of infernal love, according to which latter sense a caution is given in the prophet against the feet stumbling upon the dark mountains, (Jer 13:16); and again, I am against you O destroying mountain, (Jer. 21:25); and again, Every mountain shall be brought low, (Isa 11:4); not to mention many other passages from the sacred Scriptures to the same purpose. It is added, on this occasion, in the gospel according to Luke, that this same faith is capable of removing a sycamore-tree, for thus it is written, If you had faith as a grain of mustard-seed, you might say to this sycamine-tree, Be you plucked up by the root, and be you planted in the sea; and it should obey you, (Luk 17:6), where by a sycamine-tree is to be understood the persuasion of what is false originating in evil. Jesus Christ would therefore here teach us the power of a divine faith, by virtue of which a true Christian is enabled to remove from himself all infestations, whether arising from evil or from error, and to cast them into the infernal pit from whence they proceed. It is therefore lastly added, Nothing shall be impossible to you, because under the influence of the above faith, the true Christian connects his will with the divine will, his wisdom with the divine wisdom, and his ability with the divine ability, in such a sort, that he can no longer will, desire, or endeavour to obtain any thing but what is in agreement with the will, the desire, and the operation of His heavenly father, and thus all things are possible to Him, because all His Inclinations and purposes are submitted to the inclinations and purposes of the most high. Q. But it is added lastly, Howbeit, this kind goes not out but by prayer and fasting — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. By these words Jesus Christ would teach the importance and necessity of two other Christian duties, in addition to the grace of a divine faith, one of which He calls prayer, and the other fasting;, and He would further instruct us, that there are certain assaults from the powers of darkness, which cannot be successfully opposed, but by the combined force of those two duties. Q. And what do you conceive to be the proper nature and meaning of those duties? A. By prayer, as the term is usually applied in the sacred Scriptures, I am to understand an opening of the interiors of the human mind towards heaven and its god, by virtue of a devout desire implanted by the almighty to become partaker of His life, and to enter into the blessedness of an eternal conjunction with Him in love: and by fasting, I am further to understand a closing of the exteriors of the mind against the deceitful and insinuating delights of the senses, by denying the concupiscencies of the world and the flesh, which would intrude themselves under the semblance of real and substantial goods. Fasting indeed is often limited to a more confined meaning, as implying only an occasional abstinence from particular kinds of bodily food, and in some cases from all food; but according to the most general acceptance of the term, it denotes not only abstinence from bodily food, but from mental also, which latter abstinence consists in denying to the mind its favourite external gratifications, whenever they interfere with the internal superior and spiritual joys of the immortal soul. Prayer and fasting are accordingly joined together by the blessed Jesus as Christian duties, because whilst the former opens the mind towards heaven, and renders it admissive of heavenly influence, the latter shuts the door against the powers of darkness, and thus prevents those powers from intruding upon and disturbing the life, the peace, and the order of heaven, which enter in at the other door. Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from this miracle? A. By the literal sense of the miracle I learn an additional testimony in favour of the omnipotence of the great redeemer, and am thus led to a more profound adoration of Him as the only god of heaven and earth. At the same time, from the spiritual sense of the miracle, I am instructed in several interesting particulars respecting that order of spiritual or regenerate life, which is prescribed to all Christians; as first, that when the knowledge of the truth is first admitted into the human understanding, it is frequently infested by false persuasions originating with the powers of darkness; secondly, that this infestation can only be successfully combated by faith in the incarnate god, or in the divine humanity of Jesus Christ; thirdly, that this faith is all-powerful, insomuch that there is no mountain of evil, of difficulty, and of danger, which it cannot remove, nor any noxious plant of erroneous persuasion, which it cannot cast into the sea; fourthly, that besides this grace of faith; the sincere Christian is gifted also with the two graces of prayer and fasting, by the united aid of which he is enabled to control the powers of darkness, and gain victories over himself and them, which could not otherwise be effected. I am resolved, therefore, to cherish now on in my mind and life, above all other things, these three Christian graces of faith, of prayer, and of fasting, under a full confidence that through their aid I shall be enabled, not only to overcome all spiritual infestation in my understanding, but also to remove from my heart and life every opposing evil, and to surmount every difficulty and perplexity which would thwart me in my good purpose to become a regenerate Christian. Thus may I humbly hope to find realized in myself what is written in the above history, where it is said, the child was cured from that very hour, together with those other blessed words of my saviour god, nothing shall be impossible to you. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 24: 01.23. THE PIECE OF MONE FOUND IN THE FISH'S MOUTH ======================================================================== The Piece of Money Found in the Fish’s Mouth Mat 17:24-27. And when they were come to Capernaum, they that received tribute-money came to Peter, and said, Does not your Master pay tribute? etc. Q. WHAT do you understand here by the word tribute? A. According to its literal sense it means a tax imposed by the Roman government on all those who were not Roman citizens, and thus free men; but according to the spiritual idea, by tribute is to be understood a mark of servitude, and therefore, according to this idea, the inquiry, Does not your Master pay tribute, is an inquiry respecting the principles of servitude and of freedom, and who are the subjects of those principles. Q. But it follows, that Peter replies to this question in the affirmative, saying, Yes; and that when he was come into the house, Jesus prevented him, saying, What think thou, Simon? of whom do the kings of the earth take custom or tribute? of their own children, or of strangers? — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. From the letter of these words I learn that another inquiry was made, and this by Jesus Christ Himself, about custom or tribute, and of whom it is to be taken. I learn also from the same source a further proof of the divinity of Jesus Christ, as discoverable from this circumstance, that He was acquainted with the thoughts of Peter, and therefore, as it is said, prevented him, or, as it might be otherwise expressed, anticipated what he had to say. But from the spiritual sense of the words I am instructed, that Jesus Christ Himself suggests the important question to all true believers concerning servitude and freedom, which question leads to the interesting and edifying conclusion, that the spiritual principle in man is free, and intended to be so, but that the natural principle serves, and was created for that purpose. For it can never be supposed that the incarnate god would propose to His apostle Peter an inquiry, which had no deeper ground than an investigation concerning the right of taking custom or tribute, if nothing of a more spiritual nature had been involved in the inquiry. Accordingly this incarnate god testifies in another place, My words are spirit and life, (John 6:63), but what spirit, or what life is discoverable in the above question if it be conceived to relate only to the custom or tribute taken by the kings of the earth? Q. But how does it appear that this inquiry leads to the conclusion, that the spiritual principle in man is free, and was intended to be so, but that the natural principle serves, and was created for that purpose? A. This appears from the two terms here applied by Jesus Christ, namely. their own children and strangers, when spoken of the kings of the earth. For in the language and idea of the incarnate god, by kings of the earth are not here to be understood kings of the earth according to the literal sense of the words, but according to the spiritual sense, agreeable to which latter sense, by kings of the earth, are to be understood the primary or principal truths of the church, for in the church all rule and dominion are derived from truths, and therefore all in the church, who are principled in truth, are called kings and princes in the sacred Scriptures. By the children then of these kings are to be understood all those in the church who receive truth into their minds and lives, thus all who are spiritual-minded, whilst by strangers are to be understood all, who do not admit truths into their minds and lives, thus who remain in a mere natural state, and are natural minded. When therefore Peter answered, of strangers; and when Jesus Christ replied, Then are the children free, the conclusion is plain, that the natural-minded pay tribute, or serve, but that the spiritual-minded are exempt from tribute, or are free. Q. But the blessed Jesus continues his discourse in these words: Notwithstanding, lest we should offend them, go you to the sea, and cast a hook, and take the the fish that first comes up; and when you have opened his mouthy you shall find a piece of money; that take, and give to them for me and you — what further instruction do you derive from these words? A. From the literal sense of these words, I am again led to adore the divine omnipotence of my god and saviour, together with His compassionate tenderness expressed in His willingness not to give offence. For in preparing a fish, which should supply a piece of money sufficient to answer the demands of those who received tribute, He gave a full and unequivocal demonstration of divine omnipotence, and when He assigns as a reason for this, lest we should offend. He gives a proof equally positive of His compassionate tenderness leading Him to make all reasonable allowance for the customs and laws of civil society; as He says in another place, Render therefore, to Caesar the things which are Caesar’s, (Mat 22:21). But if the literal sense of the above words be thus edifying, how much more is their spiritual sense! For according to their spiritual sense they confirm, in terms the most significative, and by images the most striking and instructive, what has been above observed concerning the two principles, the natural and the spiritual, by proving that the former serves, but that the latter is free. The blessed Jesus therefore does not send His apostle into the street, as He might have done, to seek and to find a piece of money, nor does He send Him, as He might have clone with equal success, to borrow it of His neighbours, but He sends him to the sea, because the sea is a representative figure of the natural principle above referred to, agreeable to what was observed in the explanation of a former miracle, (Mat 8:23-28). He bids him also cast a hook into this sea, and take up the fish that first comes up, because both the hook and the fish were alike significative as the sea, the hook being significative of the power of apprehending, and the fish being significative of what was to be apprehended, namely. something of a scientific nature which had life in it, and which was accordingly distinct from the dead principle in which it originated, because it was not merely natural, but by virtue of its connection; with a spiritual principle, or with some end of use, might be called spiritual-natural. In the mouth of this fish, therefore, was to be found a piece of money, (in the original a stater, which was a piece of silver), because a piece of money, or a piece of silver is a figure equally striking with the foregoing, of truth from a spiritual origin, to which a living principle of science, is ever open, and with which it is connected. For the principle of science in man may be either alive or dead, according to the end which it respects, and to which it is directed, being alive, if it respects an eternal end, but dead, if it; respects only a temporal end. It is the living principle of science therefore, in which alone the piece of money is to be found, because it is only the living principle of science which is open to truth from a spiritual origin, and in connection with it. The blessed Jesus, then, would thus teach Peter, and with Peter all who are principled in evangelical faith, the necessity of consulting science, and of apprehending such scientific truths as have life in them, that they may thus find in those truths the piece of money requisite to satisfy the demands of the receivers of tribute; in other words, that they may find truth from a spiritual origin requisite to prove that the spiritual principle in man, as being from the god of heaven, is a free principle, but that the natural principle is born to serve. He therefore adds in conclusion, That take, and give for me and you. It is however impossible for the careless and thoughtless reader to comprehend the above explanation of this interesting miracle, neither is it to be expected that the serious and well-disposed Christian will acquiesce and be perfectly satisfied with its reasonableness, unless he has previously weighed well in his mind the nature of divine speech, so as to discern that when god speaks, He annexes to His expressions ideas very different from those which man annexes to the same expressions. Thus, when god speaks, as in the above instance, of the sea, of a hook, of a fish, of a piece of money, and of giving this piece of money for Himself and His apostle, it is not to be supposed, because it is not reasonable to suppose, that by such language He designs to express the same sentiments which man would express by it, since god must of necessity annex to His language divine and spiritual ideas, as man annexes to his language human and natural ideas. In order then to comprehend in any degree the language of the almighty, it is necessary that the mind of the hearer or reader become spiritual; in other words, become open to the perception of spiritual and eternal realities, as they are contained in and conveyed by natural and temporal images. Thus, and thus only, can it be expected that the mystery of the above miracle will become intelligible, and that the true ground and reason will be discovered why the incarnate god was pleased to send His apostle Peter to the sea, and there to cast in a hook, and take up the fish that first came up, and to open its mouth; and when he had found therein a piece of money, to take and give it for them both. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. From the letter, or literal sense of this miracle, I learn the edifying lesson, that the blessed Jesus, when he sojourned here on earth, paid respect to the laws and customs of civil society, insomuch that He worked a miracle to satisfy the demands of those laws and customs, and thus gave an example to all His followers, never to give offence on such occasions. But from the spirit, or spiritual sense of the same history, I receive additional instruction, and this on a point of the utmost importance to be well understood, namely. what principle in man is free, and what principle serves; and that the spiritual principle in man is of the former description, and the natural principle is of the latter. I am instructed yet further, that when god speaks to man, He always annexes divine and spiritual ideas to all His expressions, so that when He applies, as in the case of this miracle, the natural terms sea, a hook, a fish, a piece of money, He applies them in a sense very different from that in which man applies them, because He uses them as natural images expressive of His own all-wise, instructive and divine sentiments. I am resolved therefore to attend well to the above interesting lessons of heavenly instruction, first, by distinguishing well in my own mind the two principles of freedom and of servitude, until I am led to exalt in myself what is spiritual above what is natural; in other words, to exalt a spiritual end, spiritual objects, and spiritual goods, above natural ends, natural objects, and natural goods; and secondly, by fixing deep in my mind the edifying persuasion, that all the words of god, though expressed according to natural language, must of necessity contain in them divine ideas, and that consequently when He employs natural images, as the sea, a hook, a fish, a piece of money, etc. he does not mean to express by them the mere natural things which they suggest to the natural mind of man, but those spiritual and eternal realities which relate to Himself and His everlasting kingdom. Amen, ======================================================================== CHAPTER 25: 01.24. SIGHT RESTORED A SECOND TIMME TO TWO BLIND MEN ======================================================================== Sight Restored a Second Time to Two Blind Men. Mat 20:29-34 And as they departed from Jericho, a great multitude followed Him; and behold, two blind men sitting by the way-side, when they heard that Jesus passed by, cried out, saying, Have mercy on us, O lord, You Son of David, etc. Q. YOU have already told me, in explaining the miracle recorded in Mat 9:28-32, concerning two other blind men, what is to be understood by spiritual blindness, and by the recovery of spiritual light. Can you now inform me in what particulars the present miracle differs from the former? A. The difference between the two miracles appears to be grounded in the different kinds and degrees of intellectual blindness, and of the recovery of intellectual sight, figured and represented, in each miracle. For, as there are different kinds and degrees of spiritual good and spiritual evil, and as those kinds and degrees have reference in general to good or evil in the human will, and to good or evil in the human understanding, in like manner, and for the same reason, there are different kinds and degrees of spiritual blindness, which is nothing else but spiritual ignorance and error, and also different kinds and degrees of restoration to spiritual sight, which is nothing else but deliverance from spiritual ignorance and error. Accordingly, there is a blindness originating in the understanding, in consequence of false principles and persuasions which have been imbibed by education; and there is also a blindness originating in the will, in consequence of hereditary and natural evil, indisposing man for the reception of heavenly truth, and thus for the restoration of spiritual sight. Suffice it then to observe, that it appears not improbable that the two blind men, recorded in the former miracle, were intended to figure and represent the blindness of the Jewish church, so far as it originated in the understanding, and in the false principles and persuasions inseminated therein by education; whereas the two blind men, in the present instance, were intended to figure and represent the blindness of the same church, as originating in the will, through the prevalence of hereditary and actual evil. And that all this is not improbable, will appear from considering the peculiar circumstances attending each miracle, as first; that the two blind men in the former miracle addressed the blessed Jesus only as the Son of David, whereas in the present miracle, they address Him as the lord, the Son of David; secondly, that in, the former miracle Jesus says to the blind men, Believe you that I am able to do this? whereas in the present miracle; He says, What will you that I should do to you? It deserves also to be remarked, that in the former miracle the two blind men are described as following Jesus, whereas in the present miracle they are described as sitting by the way side. From these distinct circumstances then it is not unreasonable to conclude, that the former miracle had more relation to blindness originating in the understanding, and the present miracle more to blindness originating in the will. For when the blessed Jesus is called lord, it is always in reference to the divine good of His divine love, and of course has more relation to the will, than to the understanding; and when He asks in one case. Believe you that I am able to do this? and in the other case, What will you that I should do to you? it is evident that in the former instance He addresses Himself to the understanding, and in the latter to the will. The same remark will apply to the two expressions, following Jesus, and sitting by the way side, because the term sitting is uniformly applied in the sacred Scriptures to a state of the will or love, and the term following (or walking after) to the understanding or thought. Q. Do you conceive then that the sight restored in the one instance differed from the sight restored in the other instance? A. Yes; it is reasonable to suppose that there are different degrees of spiritual sight, as well as of spiritual blindness, and that the differences in each case depend on the principle in which the blindness or the sight originates, whether it be the principle of the will or of the understanding. For if the sight originates merely in the understanding, and the will or love has no part in it, it is then formed merely from the light of truth, and of course sees and judges of things only from that light, and thus becomes the sight which may properly be called conscience, or the sight of what is right and true; whereas if the sight originates in the will or love, it is then formed not only from the light of truth, but from the relish of what is good, in which case it becomes a sight of another and a higher order, which may be called perception, consisting not only in the knowledge of what is right and true, but in the love and ardent desire of conjunction of life with the supreme good. These two distinct kinds of sight may be illustrated by their application to the spiritual view which every man has in his mind of the divine being. As for example, he who regards the divine being merely from the light of truth in his understanding, regards Him, and cannot help regarding Him, either as a severe Judge, or as a powerful King, or as what is called by the Psalmist, The lord strong and mighty, the lord mighty in battle; whereas he who regards the divine being from the will or love, sees Him no longer as a severe Judge, or as a mighty King, etc. etc.. but as a kind Friend, as a tender Father, as an affectionate Bridegroom and Husband. Thus in the one case the divine being is viewed more as to His external or apparent qualities and character; whereas in the other, case He is viewed more as to His internal and, real qualities and character; for in the one case nothing is seen but His divine wisdom, truth, power, etc. etc, whereas in. the other case the intellectual eye is opened to the more delightful and edifying perception of His essential mercy, love, compassion, and never-ceasing benevolence. And what is thus true in regard to the sight of the Divine Being, is true likewise in regard to the views which different men have of His holy word, and also of their fellow-men, since they, who see from the understanding only, discern nothing in the word of god but its truths, and nothing in their fellow-men but their intellectual talents; whereas they, whose eyes are open to see from the will or love, discover in the word of god, not only its truths, but its infinitely varied goods; and in their fellow-men, not only their intellectual talents, but those higher and more interior qualities of the heart, which connect man with god, and qualify him for the enjoyment of eternal happiness. Perhaps, therefore, it is not an improper idea to suppose, that the almighty is ever in the act of restoring the blessing of spiritual sight to His blind children, because the sight, to which any of His children may have attained, howsoever clear and distinct it may appear, is but blindness, when compared with that to which they may attain, and which their heavenly father is preparing for them. Q. What then is the general instruction which you gather from this miracle? A. I am taught by this miracle again to adore that omnipotence of the incarnate god, which was a second time manifested in the restoration of sight to the blind. I am instructed also, by the same miracle, to distinguish all spiritual sight, or sight of the mind, into two kinds, namely. sight from the understanding, and sight from the will, and to see that the latter sight is beyond comparison more excellent, more extended, more perfect, and more blessed than the former. I am resolved, therefore, to apply to my god and saviour, with all possible earnestness for the invaluable blessing of spiritual sight, that so I may no longer be blind to the view of what so infinitely concerns me to see, viz. god, His word, His kingdom, and His peace. And since this spiritual sight is capable of indefinite improvement, especially when it is elevated and quickened by the will or love, I am resolved further never to rest satisfied with mere intellectual sight, which is formed from the light of truth alone, but to pass forward to the attainment of that higher and more celestial sight, which is derived from the love of god and of my neighbour, and by virtue of which I may be qualified to behold my god, not only as He appears, but as He is, and my neighbour, not only as to his external form and character, but as to those eternal qualities which make Him a child of god and an inheritor of His blessed kingdom. Thus may I hope to find verified in myself what is said concerning the blind men of old, where it is written, So Jesus had compassion on them, and touched their eyes; and immediately their eyes received sight, and they followed Him. amen, ======================================================================== CHAPTER 26: 01.25. THE BARREN FIG-TREE CURSED ======================================================================== The Barren Fig-Tree Cursed Mat 21:18-21 Now in the morning as He returned into the city, he hungered. And when He saw a fig-tree in the way, He came to it, and found nothing thereon but leaves only, and said to it, Let no fruit grow on you henceforward for ever. And presently the fig tree withered away, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by the morning, by returning into the city, and by hungering? A. By the morning, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood the lord’s advent, since as the natural sun rises in the natural morning, to dispense his blessings of heat and light to the natural world, which, if deprived of those blessings, must perish, in like manner in the spiritual morning, the spiritual sun, which is the Sun of righteousness, rises, to dispense also His blessings of spiritual heat and light to the inhabitants of that world, who must otherwise perish in spiritual cold and darkness. It is therefore said, as He returned into the city, because by He is meant the blessed Jesus, by the city the church, and by returning into the city, His advent to the church, for the purpose of instructing, of reforming, of purifying, and of saving it. It is therefore added, He hungered, because by hunger, on this occasion, is not to be understood natural hunger only, but spiritual hunger, which, when predicated of the blessed Jesus, denotes His ardent and divine desire that His church, or people, may become receptive of all the good and blessing of His divine mercy and love. Q. And what do you understand further by the fig-tree which He saw in the way, and by His coming to it, and finding nothing thereon but leaves? A. According to the letter of the history, these words are to be understood literally, because they were literally true; but according to the spiritual sense which is involved in this, and in all other parts of the gospel history, they are to be understood spiritually; and according to their spiritual interpretation, they add a weight of importance and of instruction to a circumstance, which must otherwise appear too trifling to be recorded in the pages of the eternal truth. Q. And in what do you conceive does the importance and instruction of the above circumstance, according to its spiritual interpretation, consist? A. This question can only be answered by the consideration of what is properly signified by a fig-tree in the language of Revelation, and by the discovery that, like all other trees, it denotes some spiritual principle belonging to the church, and specifically the principle of natural good, by which good is not to be understood the good into which man is born, or which he receives hereditarily from his parents, but the good received in the natural principle from a spiritual origin. Accordingly we find frequent mention made in the sacred Scriptures of the fig-tree, both singly, and in connection with other trees, in all which cases, agreeable to its spiritual interpretation, it figures and represents the good above referred to. Thus it is written concerning the perverse church, "I will surely consume them, says the lord: there shall be no grapes on the vine, nor figs on the fig-tree, and the leaf shall fade, (Jer 8:13); again, I found Israel like grapes in the wilderness; I saw your fathers as the first-ripe in the fig-tree, at her first time, (Hos 9:10); again, Fear not, O land; be not afraid, you beasts of the field, for the pastures of the wilderness do spring, for the tree bears her fruit, the fig-tree and the vine do yield their strength, (Joe 2:21-22); again, They shall sit every man under his vine and under his fig-tree, and none shall make them afraid, (Mic 4:4); in all which passages, and in many more which might be mentioned, by fig-tree, is not signified fig-tree, but the natural good above spoken of, which it figures and represents. Hence then the fig-tree in the present instance, as being without fruit, is representative of the Jewish church at that period, as being destitute of natural good; and therefore by Jesus seeing it is spiritually signified divine inspection into the state of the Jewish church as to that good; and by His coming to it, and finding nothing thereon but leaves only, is further denoted divine discovery that all truth was falsified in that church, for the leaves of a barren fig-tree are significative of such falsified truth. Q. But it is written that Jesus said to it, Let no fruit henceforward grow on you for ever — how do you understand these words? A. By Jesus saying to it is to be understood divine judication concerning the church in which was no natural good, and nothing but truth falsified; and by His saying, Let no fruit grow on you henceforward for ever, is further to be understood that the Jewish nation, which is here described by the fig-tree, as being destitute of natural good, would always remain so, and therefore would for ever continue in the same disposition to falsify truth, which prevailed in them at that time, Q. And what do you conceive to be meant by the concluding words, where it is written, And presently the fig-tree withered away. And when the disciples saw it, they marvelled, saying, How soon is the fig-tree withered away? A. According to the letter, or literal sense of the history, by the fig-tree withering away, is to be understood its being deprived of life, and consequently of all power of growth and fruitfulness; but according to the spiritual sense, by the fig-tree withering away is representatively described the future state of the Jewish nation, as being deprived for ever of spiritual life, or of the power of spiritual growth and fruitfulness; and by the disciples marvelling on this occasion, is further to be understood their astonishment at the thought that any nation could be so extremely wicked and foolish, as to deprive themselves of the capacity of receiving and bringing forth the fruit of the eternal truth, and of thus connecting themselves with the supreme good, and with all the happiness of His everlasting kingdom. The same thing is equally marvelous at this day, and must therefore excite the astonishment of all true disciples; and yet it cannot be denied that if selfish and worldly love are suffered to take possession of men’s minds, and thus to prevent the insemination and growth of revealed truth, they then become like the Jewish nation of old, and are awfully figured by the barren jig-tree in the above history, which withered away under divine inspection and judication. Q. But it is written in the gospel according to St. Mark, (Mark 11:13), in recording this miracle, that the time of figs was not yet — was it not then unreasonable to expect to find fruit on a tree before the season was arrived for bearing fruit? A. According to the literal sense of this history, there is such an appearance of unreasonableness as you hint at, and this is a proof how necessary it is, in many cases, to reconcile the sense of the letter by the spiritual sense which is involved in it, and for the sake of which the letter was given. For all this appearance of unreasonableness vanishes, as soon as ever the history is interpreted according to its internal spiritual signification, by viewing it not as the history merely of a fig-tree which was without fruit, but as the history of a people destitute of spiritual life. For if it be regarded merely as the history of a fig-tree, all that Jesus Christ said and did on the occasion will appear as the result of bodily hunger only, and of indignation at not being able to gratify it, and thus when He cursed the tree, it will be difficult to acquit Him of the charge of something worse than unreasonableness, especially when it is considered that the season of the year, rather than any fault in the fig-tree, rendered His expectations vain. But if the history be regarded as a figurative history, describing, under the emblem of a barren tree, a lifeless people dead in trespasses and sins, the whole then will be found reconcileable to every idea both of justice and of reason, and even the declaration that the time of figs was not yet, will then no longer be urged as an objection to the credibility of the history. For when it is said, that the time of figs was not yet, the words are to be interpreted according to their spiritual meaning, like those of the other parts of the history, and agreeable to such interpretation, they mean only that the church was not yet commenced, the fig-tree being a figure of such commencement, according to what is said in the parable of the fig-tree, (Mat 24:32-33). Thus it is evident how necessary it is to explore the internal spiritual sense of the lord’s words, in order to reconcile the apparent inconsistencies and contradictions of the letter. Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from this miracle of the barren fig-tree? A. I learn, from the letter of this miracle, to adore that divine power and operation, which communicates life even to vegetable nature, and suspends and removes that life at pleasure. And from the spiritual sense of this history, I learn a further lesson of edifying wisdom, by which I am taught that Jesus Christ, under external figures, both of animals and of plants, describes spiritual principles relating to Himself, His church and kingdom. I am instructed yet further, by the above interesting history, to reflect on the awful situation of a people destitute of all natural good, and having no show of religion but the mere leaves of speculative opinions and doctrinal tenets, whilst they are totally withered away as to all the life and fruit of heavenly love and charity. I am resolved, therefore, to profit by this awful example, and for this purpose to take heed to myself, that when my lord comes and seeks fruit, He may find in me something more than leaves. Thus may I hope never to have the terrible sentence pronounced against me, Let no fruit grow on you henceforward for ever, but rather to hear the blessed promise, He shall be like a tree planted by the rivers of water, which brings forth his fruit in due season. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 27: 01.26. THE MIRACULOUS DRAUGHT OF FISHES ======================================================================== The Miraculous Draught Of Fishes. Luk 5:4-12 Now when He had left speaking, He said to Simon, Launch out into the deep, and let down your nets for a drain. And Simon answering, said to Him, Master, we have toiled all the night, and have taken nothing; nevertheless at your word I will let down the net, etc. Q. What do you here understand by Jesus saying to Simon, Launch out into the deep, and let down your nets for a drain? A. According to the sense of the letter, the injunction of Jesus to Simon, on this occasion, relates to the catching of fish, and to the extraordinary success, which would attend his obedience to the divine command. But according to the spiritual sense involved in every particular of this history, the above words have relation to another sort of fishes, namely. to that of which the prophet speaks, where he writes, Behold, I will send for many fishers, says the lord, and they shall fish them, (Jer 16:16). This spiritual fishing is also expressly spoken of in the history under consideration, where it is written, that Jesus said to Simon? Fear not, from now on you shall catch men. According then to the spiritual sense of this history, the above words relate to the methods most expedient for the catching of men; in other words, for instructing them in evangelical truths, and thus enclosing them in that spiritual net mentioned in the parable, and of which it is said, The kingdom of heaven is like a net cast into the sea, which gathers of every kind, (Mat 13:47). Q. And in agreement with this spiritual idea of fishing and of a net, what do you conceive to be meant by the divine command, to launch out into the deep, and to let down nets for a drain? A. By the deep is here spiritually to be understood the abyss of the natural and sensual affections and thoughts of mankind, thus all who are under the influence of such affections and thoughts; and by launching out into the deep, and letting down nets for a drain, is further to be under stood application to persons of such a character, together with such an accommodation of heavenly truths to their capacity of apprehension, that they may be persuaded to believe, and may thus be introduced into the Christian church. Q. But it is written that Simon answering, said, Master, we have toiled all the night, and have taken nothing; nevertheless at your word I will let down the net — what do you understand by these words? A. According to their spiritual meaning, these words teach a lesson of weighty instruction to all those, who, like Simon, are called to the high office of catching men; for they teach that whilst man toils in the night of his own self-will and self-love, unenlightened by divine wisdom, and unsupported by divine power, his labour is vain, and he takes nothing; but no sooner does he renounce his own will and wisdom, to place himself under the guidance and government of revealed truth, and it’s god, than he also, like the fishermen in the history, is successful in his labours, so as to enclose a great multitude of fishes; in other words, to introduce a great multitude of men to the knowledge and love of the incarnate god, and His holy word. Q. You are perfectly right in your interpretation, but how will you reconcile it with what next follows, where it is written, that their net break? A. By the net breaking, according to the spiritual idea of a net, as above explained, is to be understood a want of coherence in the truths or doctrines of which the spiritual net is composed, For when man first commences a spiritual fishery by endeavouring to instruct others in the great truths of the gospel, he generally begins to teach from his understanding enlightened and enriched with heavenly knowledge, more than from his will, or from the influence of heavenly love and charity, in which case the net always breaks, because nothing gives to truth its proper consistence and coherence, but the good of heavenly love and life from which it is derived. Accordingly Jesus Christ, on another occasion, requires His disciples to cast the net on the right side of the ship, (John 21:6), because, as was observed in the explanation of a former miracle, by the right side, when distinguished from the left, is represented and signified the above principle of heavenly good of love and charity. The necessity and benefit of this principle is also proved from what immediately follows, where it is written, That they beckoned to their partners who were in the other ship, that they should come and help them. And they came and filled both the ships, so that they began to sink. Q. How do these words prove the necessity and the benefit of the principle of love and charity, to make the spiritual fisher, or to enable Him to teach spiritual truths to advantage? A. By the partners here spoken of, which were in the other ship, are meant James and John, the sons of Zebedee, as appears from ver. 10 of this chapter, and by James and John, as was shown in treating of the miracle of the transfiguration, are figured and represented charity and the works of charity, and therefore by beckoning to them for their assistance is to be understood supplication for the aid of those heavenly principles; that so the understanding might no longer operate under the influence of mere speculative doctrines, but might submit itself to the guidance and government of the supreme good, and thus of the divine father of all good. For such is the case in regard to the great work of regeneration, whether it relate to the church in general, or to an individual member of the church in particular, that it must commence with instruction, which is a kind of spiritual fishing, since without instruction there can be no regeneration. But all instruction, at its commencement, is in the way of truth or knowledge imparted to the understanding, nor at that period is the necessity seen of consulting the higher principles of heaven-born love and charity, by seeking their co-operation. This necessity, however, is soon discovered by the breaking of the net, which is a certain consequence of the separation of truth and its doctrine from their parent good, for when this is the case, truth and its doctrine must of course want coherence and consistency. At this period then it is, that an inversion of the state takes place, so that speculative knowledge is no longer allowed to have the preeminence, but is compelled to submit itself to the guidance and government of higher principles, which are in nearer connection with god and His kingdom. Q. But it is said on this occasion, that both the ships, token they were thus filled, began to sink — how do you reconcile the sinking of the ships with what you have been saying concerning heavenly love and charity, which might have been expected to preserve both the ships, and those who were in them from such a calamity ? A. We have here an additional proof of the divine wisdom contained under the letter of the sacred Scriptures, and of the necessity of exploring that wisdom in order to rescue the sacred volume from the charge of being, in some instances, trifling and insignificant. For, separate from its internal spiritual meaning, what can be the importance of the information here given, that both the ships began to sink? It is necessary then to consider, and to consider attentively, what is here to be understood by a ship beginning to sink, and why a circumstance so apparently trivial should be thought worthy to be recorded in the Book of Revelation. For from such consideration, aided by the light of the eternal truth, we shall be enabled to discover, that by the two ships here spoken of, which were filled with fishes, is figuratively described the lord’s new church, as to the knowledges of good and of truth, at that time about to be established, and that by their beginning to sink is figuratively and forcibly represented the effect of evil in that church, which, at the time, was not subdued and removed. For all evil, it is well known, is in its proper nature heavy, and inclined to sink, because it has always a tendency to decline downwards from god, by immersing itself in the unclean and earthly loves of self and of the world. The effect therefore of this evil is here recorded, in order to teach the salutary lesson, that it is not sufficient for the church and its members to be instructed in heavenly knowledge, and to join to that instruction heavenly inclinations, unless they go on to apply that knowledge and their good desires to the removal of evil, by searching out and combating all the concupiscencies of selfish and worldly love. For until this evil be removed, the ship must sink; but no sooner is that dead weight separated from the sinking vessel, than it presently rises again above all the waves of trial and of danger, and pursues its steady and secure course to the haven of peace. There are therefore three things more especially necessary for man’s salvation:1st, Instruction, which is here signified by letting down the net for a drain. 2dly, Charity, or the affection of good, resulting from instruction, and here figured by beckoning to their partners, who were in the other ship, to come and help them. And 3dly, the Application of both to the discovery and removal of evil, which evil is here represented by the ships beginning to sink. Q. How then do you understand the words which follow, where it is written, When Simon Peter saw it, he fell down at jesus’s knees, saying, Depart from me, for I am a sinful man, O lord ? A. These words confirm the idea above suggested concerning the manifestation of evil, as an effect resulting from instruction in truth, and from the reception of the affection of good which the truth inspires. For the words are evidently words of deep humiliation, under a feeling sense of disorderly and evil propensities, which had not before been discovered, on which occasion it is remarkable that Peter says to his lord, Depart from me. For such is the effect of the first manifestation of evil in the penitent bosom, that it causes pain, which pain is supposed to result, not so much from the evil manifested, as from the heavenly light by which it is manifested, and therefore the sinner is led to supplicate at the time the removal of that light, until he is further instructed that his own corrupt propensities, and not the light, are the cause of his suffering. Thus the history of Simon Peter, in this instance, is a history of the church, in all ages and places, whether amongst nations or individuals, describing its commencement, its progress, and its maturity; its commencement, by instruction in the knowledge of heavenly truth, its progress, by the conjunction of truth with its good, and its maturity, by leading to deep humiliation before Jesus Christ, resulting from a sense of hereditary and actual evil. Q. But it is written, that Jesus said to Simon, Fear not; from now on you shall catch men — how do you understand these words? A. According to the spiritual idea of this miracle, as above unfolded, by Jesus saying to Simon, Fear not, is to be understood the communication of divine strength and confidence, suggesting the consolatory persuasion that man has nothing to fear from evil, whenever it is made manifest, and is regarded according to its proper nature, as contrary to god and His righteousness, since evil is only to be dreaded when it conceals itself, and is not seen in its proper colours of malignity and mischief. It therefore follows in the way of consolation, from hereforth you shall catch men, for to catch men, according to the spiritual idea, is to attain to wisdom and intelligence, as is always the case, whenever the natural evils of selfish and worldly love are seen and removed, under the influence of heavenly truth and heavenly good; Agreeable then to the spiritual idea, there are two kinds of fishing proper to the church in general, and to every individual of the church in particular, viz. first, the apprehension of truth in the way of science or knowledge, both in the memory and under standing; and secondly, the apprehension of truth as a principle of life in the will or love, leading to the discovery and rejection of all evil, because it is contrary to god, and leading further to the love and practice of all that is wise and good, because it is pleasing to god, and conducts to eternal conjunction with Him. The former apprehension of truth is distinguished by catching fish, and the latter by catching men. Q. And what instruction do. you learn from the concluding words of this miracle, where it is said, That when they had brought their ships to land, they forsook all, and followed Him? A. According to the literal sense of these words, they teach the edifying lesson, that when Simon Peter and his partners James and John brought their ships to land, they forsook both their ships and all their other property, that they might become the companions of the blessed Jesus . But according to the spiritual sense, the above words teach a lesson still more edifying, namely. that they who are represented by Peter, by James, and by John; in other words, they who are principled in faith, in charity, and in works of charity, when they have brought their ships to land, or, what amounts to the same, when they are advanced from a state of truth to the good of truth, submit their will and their wisdom entirely to the guidance and control of the divine will and wisdom of Jesus Christ, and thus follow Him In the regeneration, until they become His purified children, and meet for introduction into His heavenly kingdom. For by forsaking all is not to be understood the alienation of worldly property, such as houses, lands, and riches, but the renunciation of mental possessions, such as the faculties of loving, of understanding, of judging, etc. etc.; and by following Jesus is not to be understood association with Him merely as to person, but conjunction as to mind, consisting in the humble grateful acknowledgement that all the above faculties are from Him, and therefore His, thus that they ought to be submitted continually to His holy government and guidance. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above miracle? A. From its literal history I am again taught to adore that omnipotence of the incarnate god, which exercises a control even over the living creatures inhabiting the depths of the sea. But from the spiritual sense of that history, I am taught a lesson still more extended and edifying, because I am instructed that it is the will of Jesus Christ, that all His children should become spiritual fishers; in other words, that they should collect natural or scientific truths, as the means of accommodating spiritual truths to the apprehension of the natural or scientific man. I learn further, that in this descent into natural knowledge or science, there is a danger lest the net should break, or, what amounts to the same, lest truth should lose its consistence and coherence, by being separated from the higher principles of heavenly love and life, and that therefore it is necessary to consult with and exalt those principles on the occasion. I am instructed yet further, that notwithstanding all attainments in knowledge, and in the heavenly affections to which it conducts, the ship will still sink, unless that knowledge and those affections be applied to the discovery and removal of the natural evils of self-love and the love of the world. Lastly, I learn, that when natural evils are thus made manifest and subdued, the ship is then brought to land, on which occasion the true disciples, or they who are principled in faith, in charity, and in the works of charity, forsake all and follow Jesus ; in other words, renounce their own natural will and wisdom, that at all times they may consult and obey the will and wisdom of their heavenly father. I am resolved, therefore, to attend well to the above divine instruction, by applying myself to the attainment of scientific truth, and by taking good heed lest in this application I should at any time separate truth from its good, or knowledge from the life of knowledge, and lest thus my net should break. I am resolved further to apply both truth and its good to the exploration and rejection of all my natural evils of selfish and worldly love, that so my ship may be prevented from sinking, and being brought safe to land, I may arrive at the high honour and happiness of imitating the disciples of old, by forsaking all and following Jesus. amen, ======================================================================== CHAPTER 28: 01.27. THE WIDOW'S SON RAISED ======================================================================== The Widow’s Son Raised. Luk 7:12-18 Now when He came near to the gate of the city, behold, there was a dead man carried out, the only son of his mother, and she was a widow; and much people of the city was with her, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by this dead man who was carried out, the only son of his mother, and she was a widow? A. According to the letter of the history, by the dead man here recorded is to he understood the dead body of a man, and by his being the only son of his mother, who was a widow, is further to be understood what is literally expressed in those words. But by this dead man, according to the spiritual sense involved in this and in all other miracles worked by Jesus Christ, is to be understood a dead principle in the church, which principle is here called the only son of his mother, who was a widow, and therefore denotes the principle of faith or truth, this being the first-born of the church, which church is here called mother, as giving birth, through divine operation, to all heavenly principles ; and widow, as being deprived of the principles of truth, and yet in the desire of conjunction with it. Q. How do you prove that the terms mother and widow have relation to the church.? A. That the term mother has relation to the church, is evident from the following passages in the sacred Scriptures, as in Isaiah, "Where is the bill (or book) of your mother’s divorcement, whom I have put away?" Isa 50:1; and in Jeremiah, "Your mother shall be sore confounded she that bare you shall be ashamed," Jer 1:12 and in Ezekiel, "You are your mother’s daughter, that loatheth her husband and her children? Eze 16:45; and in Luke, " My mother and my children are these which hear the word of God and do it" Luk 8:21: and that the term widow has also relation to the church, which is in the affection of good, but in the defect of truth, is evident from the following passages, as in the Psalms, " A Father of the father less, and a Judge of the widows" Psa 68:5; and in Isaiah, " Judge the fatherless, plead for the widow, Isa 1:17; and in Luke, " I till you of a truth, many widows were in Israel, in the days of Elias, when the heaven was shut up three years and six months, when great famine was throughout the land; but to none of them was Ettas sent save to Sarepta a city of Zidon, to a woman that was a widow" Luk 4:25-26, not to mention many other passages, where widow is mentioned with the fatherless and the sojourner, because by widow are meant those who are principled in good, yet without truth; and by the fatherless, those who are principled in truth without good; and by the sojourner, those who want instruction both in good and truth. Q. But it is written that when the lord saw her, He had compassion on her, and said to her, Weep not — how do you understand these words? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words relate to the blessed Jesus and to the distressed mother, whose history is here recorded; but according to their spiritual sense, they relate to the blessed Jesus and to the church, of which this distressed mother was a representative figure, and to the resurrection of the principle of truth in that church, from death to life. According, therefore, to this latter sense of the words, by the lord seeing her is denoted divine inspection into the state of that church, thus a communication of divine wisdom; and by His having compassion on her, is denoted divine mercy, and a communication of that mercy; and by His saying to her, Weep not, is further denoted the application of divine wisdom and mercy, for the removal of what caused trouble, namely. the removal of dead intelligence by the resurrection of living knowledge and truth in its place. Q. And how do you understand the words which follow, where it is written, that He came and touched the bier, and they that bare him stood still; and He said, Young man, I say to you, Arise? A. By Jesus coming, is to be understood divine presence with love; and by His touching the bier, is to be understood further the communication of the divine truth with those external and natural persuasions, which contained in them lifeless or dead truths; and by those who bare him standing still, is denoted a check given to the influence and operation of those natural and external persuasions; and by Jesus saying, Young man, I say to you, Arise, is lastly denoted the divine word and will of the almighty, that the intelligence of truth should be restored in the church, by rescuing it from its connexion with unclean and earthly loves, and elevating it to conjunction with pure and heavenly loves. Q. But it is added, that he that was dead sat up, and began to speak; and He delivered him to his mother --- how do you understand these words? A. These words declare the effect of the divine omnipotent words of Jesus Christ, both in their literal and spiritual meaning; in their literal meaning, by announcing the resurrection of a dead man to life; and in their spiritual meaning by announcing the resurrection of the intelligence of truth in the church out of the evils in which it was dead, to a participation of the life of love and charity. According, therefore, to this latter sense, by the dead man sitting up, is to be understood the resurrection of the above Intelligence in the will or love, to which principle the term sitting has continual reference, whenever it occurs in the sacred scriptures; and by his beginning to speak, is further to be understood its resurrection in the under standing, to which principle the term speaking has reference, whenever it also occurs in the holy records. It is added, And He (Jesus ) delivered him to his mother, to teach the edifying lesson, that the intelligence of truth is a heavenly gift from the almighty to His church, especially when it is raised out of the death of unclean and earthly loves, and elevated to life by conjunction with pure and heavenly loves. Q. And what instruction do you derive from the concluding words of this miracle, where it is said, And there came a fear on all, and they glorified god, saying, That a great prophet is risen up among us, and that God has visited His people? A. By the fear here spoken of is meant a holy awe and adoration, resulting from beholding the effect of the divine omnipotence; and it is called a great fear, to denote the effect produced in the will or love ; and by glorifying god, is further to be understood the effect produced in the understanding or thought, leading to the devout acknowledgment that the resurrection from the dead, as above recorded, both in its natural and spiritual sense, was the result solely of the divine power and operation of the most high. It is therefore added, that a great prophet is risen up among us, and that god has visited His people. because by a great prophet is meant Jesus Christ as to His humanity, or as to the truth which He taught; and by god is to be understood His divinity, thus the divine origin of that truth. Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from this miracle? A. From its literal sense and meaning, I learn again to adore the omnipotence of my god and saviour, manifested in the resurrection of a dead man to life; and not only His omnipotence, but His divine mercy and compassion, displayed in His tenderness towards a suffering mother and widow. But from the spiritual sense of the history, I am taught a lesson still more edifying and instructive, being led by it to the sight and acknowledgment of the same divine power exercised in the resurrection of truth in the church, from a state of death, whilst it is immersed in unclean loves, to a state of life, in its elevation to an eternal conjunction with its divine origin in the spirit of love and charity. I am resolved, therefore, to profit by both the above views of the operation of the divine omnipotence, and to believe that death, in every sense of the word, is under the absolute control of divine agency. I am resolved also mare especially to regard that agency as exercised in the interiors of my own mind, and particularly to supplicate its powerful aid, whenever I perceive in myself the intelligence of truth attaching itself to any defiled affection, and thus in danger of dying to its true and proper life, the life of heavenly love and charity. Thus may I humbly hope, that in all such spiritual death, the blessed Jesus will come and touch the bier, and say, as He said of old, Young man, I say to you, Arise; and thus, too, may I further hope that His blessed word will be accomplished, and that the intelligence of truth will be raised out of every principle of death and defilement, to an eternal conjunction with Him, His life and purity. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 29: 01.28. THE WOMAN WHO HAD A SPIRIT OF INFIRMITY ======================================================================== The Woman Who Had A Spirit Of Infirmity Luk 13:11-17 And, behold, there was a woman which had a spirit of infirmity eighteen years, and was bowed together, and could in no wise lift up herself, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by a woman which had a spirit of infirmity? A. According to the literal sense of the history, by the woman here recorded is meant a woman, possessed with an evil spirit, by reason of which possession her body was bowed down, and unable to raise itself; but according to the spiritual sense of the history, the miracle performed on this woman involves in it a meaning, which respects the lord’s church and kingdom, like all the other miracles which have been already explained. Agreeable then to such spiritual interpretation, by the woman here spoken of Is represented the church as to the affection of truth, for it is the affection of truth which is a principal constituent of the church, and affection is always figured in the sacred Scriptures by a woman, as intelligence is by a man. When, therefore, it is said of this woman, that she had a spirit of infirmity, it denotes, according to the spiritual idea, that the affection of truth in the church was in disorder, in consequence of being under the influence of infernal disorderly spirits; and when it is added, eighteen years, it is to denote the full state of trial and suffering which had been endured on this occasion; for by years are signified, not the periods of temporal duration only, but states of spiritual life, whether troublous or peaceable; and by the number eighteen is denoted a fullness of trial and suffering, because it results from the multiplication of the two numbers three and six into each other, and by the number three is spiritually denoted what is full and complete; and by the number six a state of trial and temptation, agreeable to what was observed concerning that number, in the explanation of the miracle of the transfiguration. Q. But it is added concerning the above woman, that she was bowed together, and could in no wise lift up herself — how do you understand these words.? A. According to their literal sense, the words relate to the bowing or bending of the woman’s body, in consequence of her infirmity and inability to lift up herself; but according to the spiritual sense, in which the words have reference to the church, by the woman being bowed together, is to be understood that the affection of truth declined downwards, by being disposed to favour earthly loves, in consequence of which declination, the principles of spiritual and natural life were confounded together and mixed, so that they could not be distinguished from each other; and by her not being able to lift up herself, is farther to be understood, that by reason of such declination the affection of truth was incapable of elevating itself to an eternal end, that is to say, to god, His holy word and kingdom. The history, therefore, here recorded, in its internal sense, has relation to that state both of the church, and of the individuals who compose it, in which the affection of truth, through the influence of disorderly spirits, is warped from its proper tendency upwards, by which it was designed to exalt god, His word and kingdom, and at the same time is bent downwards towards selfish and worldly love, by such an impulse, as to be incapable of elevating itself to conjunction with that divine being, whose child it is, and for whose glory it is communicated. Q. And how do you understand the words which follow, where it is written, And when Jesus saw her, He called her to Him, and said to her, Woman, you are loosed from your infirmity? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words relate to the miraculous cure of a bodily infirmity, through the word of the great redeemer; but agreeable to the spiritual idea above suggested, they relate to the cure of a spiritual disorder by the same divine word. According, therefore, to this spiritual idea, by Jesus seeing her (the woman), is to be understood His divine inspection into the state of the church immersed in earthly and unclean loves, and therefore figuratively described by the above woman, who was bowed down, and not able to lift up herself; and by His calling and saying to her, Woman, you are loosed from your infirmity, is further to be understood the energy and application of His divine love and wisdom for the removal of the spiritual disorders which He discovered, calling having relation to the exercise of His love, and saying, to the exercise of His wisdom. It is added in the English translation of this passage, that He called her to Him, but these three last expressions do not occur in the original, in which it is only written, that He called and said, agreeable to a mode of expression common in the sacred writings, where two terms are frequently applied, which appear to signify the same thing, when yet one has reference more to the principle of love in the will, and the other more to the principle of truth in the understanding, it being of the utmost importance to point out the interesting and edifying conjunction of those two principles. Q. But it is added, that He laid his hands on her, and immediately she was made straight, and glorified god — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. By Jesus laying His hands on her, according to the literal sense of the history, is to be understood the application of his bodily hands to the infirmity of a distressed woman.; but according to the spiritual sense, by laying his hand on her, is figured and represented the operation of the omnipotence of His divine humanity in liberating the church from connexion with the powers of darkness, and at the same time from those earthly affections, which bowed her down to the love of temporal things, and prevented her elevation to eternal objects. It therefore follows that immediately she was made straight, and glorified God, because by being made straight, or, as it might be otherwise expressed, being made erect, is spiritually meant the elevation of the will or love to an eternal end, thus to god, His word and kingdom; and by glorifying god is to be further under stood the devout acknowledgment that this elevation was owing solely to a divine power, thus to the omnipotence of the divine humanity of the blessed Jesus. Q. It is written that in consequence of this miracle, the ruler of the synagogue answered with indignation, because that Jesus had healed on the sabbath-day, and said to the people, There are six days in which men ought to work; in them therefore come and be healed, and not on the sabbath-day. The lord then answered Him, and said, You hypocrite, does not each one of you on the sabbath loose his ox or his ass from the stall, and lead him away to watering? And ought not this woman, being a daughter of Abraham, whom Satan has bound, lo, these eighteen years, be loosed from this bond on the sabbath-day?. — what further instruction do you derive from this part of the history? A. From the circumstance of its being the sabbath-day, when the blessed Jesus worked this and other miracles, I am led to reflect on the reason of the preference which He gave to that day above others, for the manifestation of His omnipotence, and by such reflection I am led further to the interesting discovery, that He selected that day for the performance of His mighty works on account of its most holy representation, as being figurative of the divine and heavenly marriage of good and truth, thus of the union of the divine and human natures in Himself, of His conjunction thereby with heaven and the church, and lastly of the conjunction of charity and faith in man. For the mighty works which He performed consisted in general in the removal of bodily distemper and infirmity, by which distemper and infirmity was figured some perversion or other of the principles of good and of truth in the church, thus some breach of the heavenly marriage above spoken of, as represented by the sabbath-day. This day, therefore, was selected above the rest by reason of its holy representation, and as involving in it that state of purity and peace, the restoration of which He had principally in view in all the miracles which He performed. Here then may be seen the true ground and reason of the indignation expressed on this occasion by the ruler of the synagogue. For this ruler, who is afterwards called by the lord a hypocrite, was himself a subject of that very perversion of good and truth, which the blessed Jesus came to remove, and the removal of which was represented by the sabbath day, and therefore it was impossible for him to discover the reasonableness of the lord’s conduct in this instance. We may perceive at the same time the full force and meaning of the Lord’s remonstrance on the occasion, when He says, Does not each of you on the sabbath loose his ox or his ass from the stall, etc. for by this remonstrance, and the significant images which it contains, He meant to teach again the instructive lesson, that it is lawful to do good on the sabbath-day; in other words, that the sabbath-day, as being representative of the eternal conjunction of heavenly good and truth, is the fittest of all days for restoring every principle of the life of man to its proper liberty, for the healing of every infirmity, for instruction in the knowledge of natural good and truth, signified by loosing the ox and the ass for watering, and especially for breaking the bands of wickedness, by which the spiritual affection of good and truth, that true daughter of Abraham in the human mind, is tied and bowed down, that it cannot raise itself up to the possession and enjoyment of god and His blessed kingdom. Q. But it is written in the conclusion, that when He had said these things, all His adversaries were ashamed ; and all the people rejoiced for all the glorious things that were done by Him — what do you learn from these words? A. I learn to note and to adore the double effect of the divine word, as manifested in its operation on its adversaries, and on its friends; on its adversaries, by unveiling to view their evils and their errors, and thus making them ashamed; and on its friends, by discovering to them a mercy and an omnipotence, or a goodness and truth ever near and at hand for the cure of all human infirmity, and thus increasing their joy. In this part of the history, therefore, I am enabled to discover the necessity of His divine word to effect the salvation of mankind, since without it, there is no possibility either that evil or error can be detected, or that any good and truth of heaven can be imparted. Thus I am instructed further, that the word of god commences its salutary operations, first, by making man ashamed of himself and his corruptions, whilst he lives without god, and secondly, by filling him with all joy for all the glorious things done for him, when he becomes a convert to god, and a faithful receiver of His holy word. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. I learn again to adore the omnipotence of the great saviour manifested in the cure of bodily infirmity, and in the removal of the evil spirit who caused it. At the same time I am instructed in the exercise of the same divine power for the cure of spiritual infirmity, and particularly of that spiritual depression, by which the human mind, in its captivity to the powers of darkness, is bowed and bended downwards towards the lower things of time and sense, so as to be unable to lift itself up to the contemplation and enjoyment of eternal objects, I learn further to discover the reason why the blessed Jesus dispensed His healing operation so frequently on the sabbath-day, and thus to discern a connexion between that day, according to its representative meaning, and the cure of all spiritual diseases. I am resolved, therefore, from now on to apply to this great saviour whenever I feel my affections declining downwards towards the lower concerns of time and sense, that so I may never be bowed down by the spirit of infirmity in such a manner as to be unable to lift up myself to higher and more substantial objects. I am resolved further to cherish in my mind a devout sense of the sanctity of the sabbath-day, by recollecting at all times its representative meaning, and how it is a perpetual standing figure here below, of the heavenly marriage, from which alone comes all true rest, peace, and deliverance from every spiritual disease and infirmity. I am resolved also frequently to read and meditate on the word of god, until I become ashamed of all those evils and errors in myself, which are in opposition to its purities and its sanctities, and begin to feel a secret joy from the admission of all its heavenly goods and truths. Thus may I humbly hope to experience, like the distressed object in the above history, the power of that divine word, which said of old, Woman, you are loosed from your infirmity; and thus, too, shall I no longer be of the number of the adversaries of the great saviour, but rather rank in the number of those friends, of whom it is written, That they rejoiced for all the glorious things that were done by Him. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 30: 01.29. THE DROPSY CURED ======================================================================== The Dropsy Cured Luk 14:1-7 And it came to pass, as He Went into the house of one of the chief Pharisees to eat bread on the sabbath-day, that they watched Him. And behold, there was a certain man before Him which had the dropsy, etc. Q. YOU have already told me, in the explanation of a former miracle, what is figured and represented by the sabbath-day, and why, on account of that representation, the blessed Jesus worked so many of His miracles on that day, Can you now tell me what is here to be understood by a certain man which had the dropsy? A. According to the letter of the history, by a certain man who had a dropsy, is meant one who was afflicted with a bodily distemper called by that name, and consisting in a super-abundance of water formed in different parts of the body; but according to the spiritual sense contained in this, as in the other miracles which the lord worked, by a certain man who had a dropsy, is figured the state of the Jewish church at that period, in its perversion of all heavenly good and truth, and particularly in this perversion, that natural knowledge had gained the ascendancy over spiritual, and that thus all spiritual life of love and charity was in danger of being destroyed by the superabundance of mere natural speculation and thought. For such is the correspondence between the natural distemper called the dropsy, and the spiritual perversion of heavenly good and truth here referred to, all the difference between them consisting in this, that the natural distemper is occasioned by a superfluity of natural water, whereas the perversion has its rise in a superfluity of what is signified and represented by water, namely. natural truth; in other words, truth apprehended naturally, and not spiritually. It is said of the above man who had the dropsy, that he was before him (Jesus), denoting, according to the spiritual idea, that the above perversion of all heavenly good and truth in the Jewish church at that period was under divine inspection, being both seen and noted by the divine wisdom. Q. But it is written on this occasion, that Jesus answering, spoke to the lawyers and Pharisees, saying, Is it lawful to heal on the sabbath-day? — what do you conceive to be the force and meaning of the question here proposed by the blessed Jesus to the lawyers and Pharisees? A. By this interesting question it would appear to be the lord’s intention to call the lawyers and Pharisees, and through them all succeeding generations of mankind, to the very important consideration of the sabbath-day, both as to what it is in itself, as to what it figures and represents, and further as to the duties which it requires, that so it might be discovered, agreeable to what was shown in explaining a former miracle, that the sabbath is in itself most holy, as being representative of the divine and heavenly marriage of good and truth, and that therefore the duties which it requires are all such acts of mercy, of charity, of instruction, and of piety, etc. etc. as have a tendency to rescue man from the dominion of the powers of darkness and the influence of selfish and worldly love, that he may be at liberty to pursue and regain his lost life and happiness in the love and favour of His heavenly father. Q. Can you see any reason then why the blessed Jesus, without waiting for an answer to His question, immediately took the man, and healed him, and let him go? A. It was not necessary for the blessed Jesus to be determined by the opinions of men as to the propriety of his own conduct, and therefore, without waiting to know the sentiments of the lawyers and Pharisees on the occasion, He gives the best possible answer Himself to His own question, by manifesting His mercy and omnipotence in the removal of bodily disease, proving thus that it was lawful to heal on the sabbath-day, because that the Son of Man is lord also of the sabbath. Q. And how do you understand the expressions by which this act of mercy and omnipotence is described — He took him and healed him, and let him go? A. According to the literal sense of the letter, these expressions are to be understood literally, as relating to the man who had a dropsy; but according to the spiritual sense, they are to be understood spiritually, as relating to the perversion of good and truth in the church, or to the spiritual dropsy occasioned by a super-abundance of natural knowledge, and of proportionable defect of spiritual life; and agreeable to this latter sense, by taking him is to be understood the application of the divine wisdom or truth, according to what was observed concerning this expression in the explication of the miracle of the loaves and fishes; and by healing him, is further to be understood the application of the divine mercy or love, for all spiritual healing is from that source; and lastly, by letting him go, is to be understood the effect produced in the disordered church by the two-fold application as above, in consequence of which the church was at once relieved from the perversion under which it had laboured, and was enabled freely and of itself to walk in the ways of righteousness, by keeping the commandments of god. Q. But it follows, that when Jesus had thus taken and healed the sick man, and let him go, He then proposed another question, saying, Which of you shall have an ass or an ox fallen into a pit, and will not straightway pull him out on the sabbath-day, — what do you conceive to be the force and meaning of this second question? A. This subject has been already discussed in treating of a former miracle in the preceding chapter, on which occasion a similar question was proposed in these words, Does not each of you on the sabbath loose his ox or his ass from the stall, and lead him away to watering? The only difference, therefore, between the two questions is this, that in the former miracle the inquiry is concerning an ox and an ass to be loosed from the stall and taken to watering, whereas in the present miracle the inquiry is concerning an ass and an ox fallen into a pit. This difference, however, in the letter of the two questions makes no difference as to their spirit and design, since in both cases it is intended to prove the same thing, namely. that it is lawful to do good on the sabbath-day, whether this good be effected in the way of instruction of the natural man, signified by loosing the ox or the ass from the stall, and leading him to the watering, or in the way of rescuing him from the influence of false persuasions, signified by pulling the ass or the ox out of the pit into which he was fallen. It here deserves to be noted, that in proposing the former question, the ox is mentioned before the ass, whereas in proposing the latter question the ass is set before the ox, and though it may not perhaps be easy to assign the true reason for this change of priority, and still less easy to comprehend it if it was assigned, yet we are compelled to acknowledge, that since all the words of the blessed Jesus were the words of an infinite wisdom, there must be a reason, and an important one also, for the above circumstance, however trivial and fortuitous it may appear to those who are not accustomed to reflect that in the word, or speech, of the great and holy god, every expression and mode of expression must of necessity partake of a greatness and holiness similar to that of the divine speaker. Q. And how do you understand the concluding words in the history of this miracle, where it is written, That they could not answer Him again to these things? A. From these words I learn, that the wisdom and the works of god carry with them a reasonableness and an authority irresistible, and such as no wit or talent of thoughtless and wicked men can overthrow. Not that thoughtless and wicked men cannot oppose and endeavour to vilify both divine wisdom, and divine works, for every day’s experience proves that they can. It is only therefore meant to assert, that both the word and the works of the almighty are alike stable and permanent, and that though the heathen rage, and the people imagine a vain thing, yet the counsel of the lord endures for ever, as experience again testifies, by proving that the book of Revelation, called The bible, notwithstanding all the assaults which it is has endured either from the malice or the ridicule of the scoffer, still exists in the church as a fountain of living waters, and will continue to exist there, in like manner as it endures for ever in heaven, (Psa 119:8-9). Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from this miracle? A. From the letter or literal sense of this miracle, I am taught again to adore that divine omnipotence of the incarnate god, which manifested itself so repeatedly in the cure of bodily distempers; and on the present occasion, in the removal of that terrible disease called the Dropsy, I am taught also to reflect that this disease in the human body is an exact figure of a far more dangerous one in the human mind, because it is a figure of a dreadful perversion of the good and truth of god’s most holy word, in consequence of admitting it only into the understanding, and not into the will or love, in which case the mind labours under a super-adundance of mere natural speculation, separate from the graces and virtues of heavenly life. I am instructed yet further by the history of this miracle, concerning the sanctity and true design of the sabbath-day, as being representative of the divine and heavenly marriage of love and wisdom in god, and of goodness and truth in heaven and the church. I am resolved, therefore, to profit by all this blessed instruction, and for this purpose to meditate continually on that divine and heavenly marriage, which the sabbath-day was designed to call continually to my re-collection. And since I myself, like all other men, am exposed to the danger of being afflicted by a spiritual dropsy, I am further resolved to keep diligent watch over myself, lest at any time I should be more eager in acquiring knowledge, than in forming my life according to it, or in speculating on the word of god more than in practising its holy precepts. Yet should it come to pass, that through the frailty of my nature I should still contract the distemper which I dread, I will not still despair, but recollecting the blessed words, He took and healed him, and let him go, I will hasten to my god and saviour to make me the happy subject of the same mercy. So may I hope to become, like the dropsical man in the above history, a monument of the loving-kindness and omnipotence of my god, and being restored to spiritual health and strength by a due and equal reception of the principles of spiritual life, I will sing with the holy one of old, Bless the lord, 0 my soul, and forget not all His benefits; who forgives all your iniquities; who heals all your diseases; who redeemeth your life from destruction; who crowneth you with loving-kindness and tender mercies. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 31: 01.30. THE TEN LEPERS CLEANSED ======================================================================== Luk 17:12-20 And as He entered into a certain village, there met Him ten men that were lepers, which stood afar off; and they lifted up their voices, and said, Jesus, Master, have mercy on us, etc. Q. YOU have already told me, in explaining a former miracle, Mat 8:2, what is spiritually to be understood by a leper, and how the disorder called the leprosy is a figure of the profanation of good and truth, by which profanation is meant the receding from those heavenly principles of life, when previously they have been admitted and cherished. Can you now tell me what is here to be understood by the ten lepers, and by their standing afar off? A. The lepers here are said to be ten, to denote all in the church who were guilty of the above profanation, in like manner as the ten virgins, to whom the kingdom of heaven is likened, Mat 25:1, denote all who are in the church, whether they be good or bad; and as the ten horns of the scarlet beast, Rev 17:7 and Rev 17:12, denote the all of power in what was figured by the beast; and by their standing afar off, is here signified humiliation of heart under a sense of their defilement before the divine majesty, because it afterwards follows, that they lifted up their voices, and said, Jesus, Master, have mercy on us. By standing afar off, according to the spiritual idea, is meant in general, not distance of space, but disagreement in affection, since all distance in the spiritual world is determined solely by the agreement or disagreement of the affections of those who dwell there; but in the present instance it denotes humiliation and adoration of heart, arising from a sense of unworthiness, inasmuch as it follows that they made earnest supplication to their saviour god. Q. How does it appear that these ten lepers addressed the blessed Jesus in such an earnest manner as their god ? A. Their earnestness is manifest from the expression, they lifted up their voices, for to lift up the voice, according to the spiritual idea, denotes an elevation of affection and thought, consequently earnestness in the pursuit of what they wanted; and that they acknowledged the blessed Jesus as their god, is further evident both from their supplicating His mercy, and from the title which they here give Him, which in the original is epistatos, and signifies governor.* * In the original Greek of the evangelical history there are four distinct terms, which in the English version are all alike rendered Master, when applied to the great saviour, The first is Didascalos, which properly signifies Teacher or Master of Letters; the second is Epistatos, the term used in this miracle, which properly signifies a Praefect or Governor; the third is Catthegetes, which properly signifies a Leader or Director in a Way; the fourth is Rabbi, which properly signifies Master. The first occurs in Mat 8:19; Mat 9:11; Mat 10:24-25; Mat 12:38; Mat 17:24; Mat 22:16; Mat 26:18. Mark 5:35; Mark 10:17; Mark 12:14. Luk 3:12; Luk 6:40; Luk 7:45; Luk 8:49; Luk 10:25. John 11:28; John 13:13-14. The second occurs, Luk 8:24; Luk 9:35; Luk 17:13. The third occurs, Mat 23:8-10. The fourth occurs, Mat 26:49. It is to be noted also that a fifth term, via. Kurios, which properly signifies Lord, is sometimes rendered Master, as in Mat 15:27; Mat 26:25. Q. But it is written that when He saw them, He said to them, Go, show yourselves to the priests. And it came to pass that as they went, they were cleansed — what do you understand by these words? A. According to the letter of the history, they are to be understood literally, and were literally true; but according to the spiritual sense involved in this and all the other miracles worked by the lord, they are to be understood spiritually and agreeable to their spiritual signification, by Jesus seeing, is here to be understood divine inspection into the state of profanation which then prevailed in the church; and by His saying to the lepers, Go, show yourselves to the priests, is denoted divine injunction respecting life, that it should always be kept open to communication with the supreme good, that is to say, with the good of heavenly love and charity, this good being represented by the priests in the Jewish or representative church, agreeable to what was shown in the explanation of a former miracle, Mat 8:2-5, where the same injunction is given; and by their being cleansed as they went, is further to be understood that they were delivered from the evil of profanation, in consequence of living according to divine order, and thus keeping their minds open to the influence and reception of heavenly love. Q. And how do you understand what is afterwards written, that one of them, when he saw that he was healed, turned back, and with a loud voice glorified god, and fell down on his face at His feet, giving Him thanks; and he was a Samaritan? A. From the literal sense of these words I learn, that one of the above lepers, under a sense of the mercy which he had received, returned to give thanks to his divine benefactor, acknowledging at the same time that he was both god and man ; for it is said, that with a loud voice he glorified god, and then it is immediately added, that he fell down at His (God’s) feet where by god’s feet nothing can be meant but the lowest principle of His humanity. And from the spiritual sense of the same words, I am further taught a lesson of the greatest importance to be well apprehended, namely. that they, who are principled in the affection of truth, as was the case with this returning leper, are disposed to acknowledge the blessed Jesus, or god in a divine humanity, as the sum and substance of all representatives in the church, and to worship Him accordingly as the All in All, or the fullness and completion of every rite and ceremony, of every type and figure, by which, previous to His incarnation, He had been promised to the world in the book of Revelation. For by this leper turning back, is evidently meant his turning back from going to show himself to the priests; in other words, his turning back from what was merely representative; and by his glorifying god on the occasion, and falling down on his face at His feet, giving Him thanks, is as evidently declared, that from what was representative he turned himself to what was represented, namely. to the manifested jehovah in His divine humanity, confessing Him, and Him alone, to be his deliverer from the evil of profanation, thus his restorer to all the purity, power, and blessedness of heavenly life, and consequently that divine person perfigured under every representative law, ordinance, and rite of the Jewish or representative church. Q. You said that by this returning leper are denoted those who are in the affection of truth, — what proof can you give that this was the case? A. I prove it from the circumstance of his being a Samaritan, for by the Samaritans, in the representative church, were denoted those who were principled in that affection, which is further confirmed by what is said in the parable of the good Samaritan, and also by the discourse which Jesus Christ held with the woman of Samaria at Jacob’s well. Q. And how do you understand the words which follow, where it is written, that Jesus answering said. Were there not ten cleansed? But where are the nine? There are not found that returned to give glory to god, save this stranger? A. These words prove that the sayings of the blessed Jesus contain infinite stores of wisdom, which no thought of angel or of man can fully conceive, and no tongue of angel or man is able to express. For when He asks the significant question, Were there not ten cleansed? it is the same thing as if He had said, Are not all mankind the subjects of my purifying influence? Is there a human being who is not restrained from the perversion and profanation of heavenly good and truth, in one degree or other by my power? Again, when He asks the equally significant question, Where are the nine? it is the same thing as if He had again said, Whence comes it to pass that my purifying power is not generally acknowledged? How is it that mankind do not perceive that they are indebted to me daily for every good affection and thought, by which they are preserved from the perversion and profanation of truth? Why then do they not return to me, to render thanks for my mercies, by expressing a grateful sense of the favours which they continually receive from me ? Again, when He adds, There are not found that returned to give glory to God, save this stranger, it is the same thing as if He had said, I am not acknowledged by those who have received my word, and who ought to have been instructed by its representatives, that I am the thing represented, because I am the Divine Fountain of all life, and wisdom and purity; when yet they, who have not my word, and have not been the subjects of its instruction, are disposed to acknowledge me, by giving me the glory which properly belongs to me. Q. But it is lastly written, that He said to him, Arise, go your way; your faith has made you whole — how do you understand these words? A. According to the sense of the letter, the words relate to the discharge of the Samaritan leper, and to the declaration of the cause of his cure, as originating in his faith; but according to the spiritual sense of the words, they apply to those who are rescued by divine mercy from the guilt of profanation, and contain a salutary counsel on the interesting occasion. For by arising in this case, is to be understood an elevation of the affection and thoughts to a closer and fuller conjunction with the supreme good and supreme truth, thus with the incarnate god in His divine humanity; and by the additional injunction, go your way, is further to be understood the requirement of divine order, that they should form their lives in agreement with such elevation, that so the external man, with all his concerns, may be under the rule and government of heavenly love and wisdom in the internal man; and lastly by the declaration, your faith has made you whole, is to be understood that the perversion and profanation of good and truth can only be removed by faith in and from the incarnate god, thus by a faith not originating in man, but in him who has said, Without Me you can do nothing. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from this miracle? A. From the literal sense of this miracle, I learn again to adore that omnipotence of the great saviour, by which He cured the terrible bodily disease called the Leprosy, in ten several cases at the Same time, and this, when the subjects of that disease were removed from His more immediate presence. And from the spiritual sense of the miracle, I am led again to reflect on that far more terrible mental disease, the profanation of good and truth, of which the leprosy was a striking and awful figure. From the example too of the one leper, who turned back, and with a loud voice glorified god, and whose faith was afterwards commended by that god, I am further taught the instructive lesson, how I ought also to behave under similar circumstances, and on every occasion of receiving any spiritual blessing from the hand of my god. I learn also, that all the representatives in the Jewish or representative church pointed at the great saviour, and were realized in His divine person. From the lord’s significant question also, Were there not ten cleansed? I receive the additional instruction, that He extends to all mankind the healing virtue of His divine presence and operation, for the purpose of preserving them from the great evil of profanation; and from His other equally significant question, Where are the nine? I am led to reflect on that awful state of inconsideration, by which the generality of mankind are blinded to a proper sense of the gratitude they owe to the father of mercies, and thus accept His favours, but without acknowledging the divine bounty from which they flow. Again, when the blessed Jesus adds, There are not found that returned to give glory to god, save this stranger, I am taught to see, that the Gentiles, who do not possess the Word of Revelation, are better disposed in general to acknowledge the incarnate god, and worship Him in His divine humanity, than they who do possess it, and who at the same time profane its truths and sanctities. Lastly, from the concluding injunction to the cleansed leper, Arise, go your way, your faith has made you whole, I learn the important duty of elevating my affections and thoughts to my saviour god under every reception of His mercy, and to form my whole life and conversation in agreement with such elevation, devoutly acknowledging the cure of all my spiritual disorders to proceed from His divine favour, because it is the result of a faith which He alone inspires. I am resolved, therefore, to endeavour to profit by all the above instruction, and especially, in every spiritual purification, to imitate the example of the one in the above history, who, when he saw that he was healed, turned back, and with a loud voice glorified god, and fell on his face at His feet. Thus may I hope, like this blessed leper, to gain the approbation of my god, and to hear from His divine lips the edifying and consolatory words, Arise, go your way. your faith has made you whole. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 32: 01.31. THE WATER TURNED INTO WINE ======================================================================== The Water Turned Into Wine John 2:1-12 And the third day there was a marriage in Cana of Galilee, and the mother of Jesus was there; and both Jesus was called and His disciples to the marriage, etc, Q. WHAT do you here understand by a marriage in Cana of Galilee? A. By a marriage in Cana of Galilee, according to the literal sense of the above history, is to be understood what is literally expressed; but according to the spiritual sense, by the marriage here spoken of, is to be understood a spiritual marriage, which is such a marriage as that mentioned in the parable, and to which the kingdom of heaven is compared, where it is said, The kingdom of heaven is like a certain king which made a marriage for his son. This marriage is the marriage of goodness and truth, thus the marriage of the lord with His church, and with every individual composing the church, and therefore whether we speak of the lord’s church, or of a marriage, it is the same thing, since, as the conjunction of goodness and truth is truly and properly a marriage, in like manner the same conjunction truly and properly constitutes what is called the church. When therefore it is said, There was a marriage in Cana of Galilee, the words spiritually relate to the establishment of the church among the Gentles, for by Cana of Galilee is meant a Gentile city, agreeable to what is written in the prophet, where it is said, By the way of the sea, beyond Jordan, in Galilee of the nations [or Gentiles,] (Isa 9:1). Q. But it is written concerning this marriage, That the mother of Jesus was there, and does Jesus was called and His disciples to the marriage — how do you understand these words? A. These words, like all other parts of this divine history, have both a literal and a spiritual meaning, and according to their literal meaning they imply what they literally express; but according to their spiritual meaning, they involve in them an internal sense, which lies concealed within the letter, as the soul is concealed within its body. Agreeable, therefore, to this internal sense, by the mother of Jesus being there, or at the marriage, is to be understood that the affection of good was there, this affection being always dignified in the sacred Scriptures by the venerable title of mother, inasmuch as all things in the church are derived from that affection; again, when it is added, That both Jesus was called and His disciples to the marriage, the words imply, that in this establishment of the church, conjunction was sought with the divine being through the humanity which he assumed, and conjunction also with all the several orders of good and of truth derived from that being, and represented by His disciples. Q. And what do you understand by the words which follow, where it is written, That when they wanted wine, the mother of Jesus said to Him, They have no wine? A. These words also, according to their literal sense, mean what is literally expressed, and have relation only to the material liquor called wine; but according to their spiritual sense, they have a deeper and more interior meaning, having relation to spiritual wine, or to that wine of which Jesus Christ speaks in another place, where He says, Neither do men put new wine into old bottles, (Mat 9:17); and again, I will not drink now on of this fruit of the vine, until that day when I drink it new with you in my Father’s kingdom, (Mat 26:29). The wine then here referred to, and called new wine, is nothing else than the interior spiritual sense of the Jewish law and ritual, opened by the incarnate God; in other words, it is that interior apprehension of the divine truth contained in the. sacred Scriptures, which Jesus Christ in another place calls His blood, and also the blood of the New Testament, as being distinct from that external apprehension of the same truth which before prevailed, and which He calls old wine. That wine in the sacred Scriptures is spoken of according to a spiritual signification, is evident from the following passages amongst many others, In the hand of the lord there is a cup, and the wine is red, (Psa 75:8). And again, Come buy wine and milk without money, and without price, (Isa 55:1). According then to this spiritual interpretation, by their wanting wine, or, as it might be more properly expressed, When the wine was finished, is to be understood that there was no longer any spiritual apprehension of truth in the church; and by the mother of Jesus saying to him, They have no wine, is further to be understood that this was perceived by the affection of good in the church. Q. But it follows, that Jesus said to her? Woman, what have I to do with you? mine hour is not yet come — what do you conceive to be the import and meaning of these words? A. When the blessed Jesus, on this occasion, applied the term woman, and not mother, He designed to teach the instructive and important lesson, that He was no longer her son, but by nativity, as well as by conception, was the son of god, thus was jehovah manifest in the flesh. It is further to be understood, that in the process of His glorification, or of making His humanity divine, He successively put off the infirm humanity which He received from the mother, and in the same degree put on a humanity-from the father, which He finally made a divine humanity. It is further observable, that in addressing His mother at the time of His crucifixion, He again calls her woman, (John 19:26), to denote a second time that He was no longer her son. Q. And what do you understand by the words applied on this occasion, What have I to do with you? mine hour is not yet come. A. The former part of these words is not expressed in agreement with the original Greek, which might be more properly rendered, What (is it) to me and to you? Still however it is difficult to discover the precise purport of these. words, as applied by the blessed Jesus. Their most probable design appears to be this, that by an apparent refusal to attend to His mother’s importunity, He might put her faith to a trial, in like manner, as He afterwards put to trial the faith of His apostle Philip, by the question, Whence shall we buy bread that these may eat? (John 6:5), on which occasion it is added in the verse which follows, And this he said to prove Him, for He Himself knew what He would do. In the present case, therefore, it is not improbable that He might intend to prove His mother, and consequently those represented by His mother, when yet he himself knew what He would do. It is accordingly added, mine hour is not yet come, because by His hour not being yet come, is to be understood that His humanity was not yet fully glorified, or made divine, and thus that He was not yet in a state to confer on His church all that blessing which He came to confer, by opening the minds of men to an interior or spiritual apprehension of the heavenly truths contained in His holy word. Q. But it is written in the next verse, that His mother says to the servants, Whatsoever He says to you, do — how do you understand these words? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words contain an instruction from the mother of Jesus to the servants attendant at the marriage, to do whatever Jesus required them to do; but according to the spiritual sense above referred to, they contain a dictate from the affection of good in the church to the lower principles of the natural mind, to submit themselves in all things to the order, authority, and precept of the incarnate god. For the church in general may be regarded as an individual house or family, in which goodness and truth are as the husband and wife, whilst the affections of goodness and truth are the sons and daughters, and natural delights with their several sciences are the men-servants and maid-servants. The servants therefore here spoken of are to be regarded according to this spiritual idea. Q. And how do you understand the words which follow, And there were set there six water-pots of stone, after the manner of the purifying of the Jews, containing two or three firkins apiece? A. By the six water-pots of stone, set according to the purifying of the Jews, are spiritually to be understood those things in the holy word, and thence in the Jewish church and its worship, which were representative and significative of divine things in the lord and from the lord, which contained internal things; on which account also they were six and of stone, because the number six signifies all, and is predicated of truths; stone also signifies truth; and the purifying of the Jews signifies purification from sins, thus all things of the Jewish church, for the church regards purification from sins as all that belongs to it, since in proportion as any one is purified from sins, in the same proportion lie is a church. Q. And what do you conceive to be the purport of the next verse, where it is written, Jesus says to them, Fill the water-pots with water, and they filled them up to the brim? A. According to the literal sense of this, history, the above words mean what is literally expressed; but according to the spiritual sense, they have a deeper and more edifying meaning. For according to the spiritual idea, by the water-pots here spoken of are signified, as was above observed, all those things in the word, and thence in the Jewish church and its worship, which were representative and significative of divine things in the lord and from the lord. When the lord then says of these water-pots, Fill them with water, it is to be understood, agreeable to the above spiritual interpretation, that it is the divine will and intention, that the representatives and significatives of the Jewish church should be regarded as the continents of all divine and heavenly truths, and should thus be filled in the minds of all true believers with that living watery of which Jesus Christ speaks in another place, where He says, Whoever drinks of the water that I shall give him shall never thirst; but the water that I shall give him, shall be in him a well of water springing up to everlasting life, (John 4:14). And again, when it is added, that they filled them up to the brim, it is to be understood that the will and intention of the lord was fulfilled by a devout acknowledgement in the church, that all representatives and significatives in the holy word are full of his life, because they have relation to Him and to the things of His eternal kingdom. Q. How then do you understand the words which follow, And He says to them, Dram out now, and bear to the governor of the feast? A. According to the spiritual interpretation above given of this history, by the command, Draw out now, is to be understood divine requirement that instruction from the word should be given agreeable to the idea above suggested of its spiritual contents; and by bearing to the governor of the feast, is further to be understood divine requirement that this instruction shall be imparted to all those who are principled in the knowledges of truth, all such being represented and signified by the governor of the feast; and lastly, by its being added, they bare, is to be understood, that this requirement was fulfilled by those whose office it was to instruct. Q. But it is written further, that when the ruler of the feast had tasted the water that was made wine, and knew not whence it was; but the servants which drew the water knew; the governor of the feast called the bridegroom, and says to him, Every man at the beginning does set forth good wine, and when men have well drunk, then that which is worse, but you have kept the good wine until now — how do you understand these words? A. By the water here said to be made wine, is to be understood spiritually the truth of the external church, such as was the truth of the Jewish church, converted by divine presence and agency into the truth of the internal church, such as is the truth of the Christian church: hence by the lord making water wine is spiritually signified, that He made the truths of the external church truths of the internal church, by opening the internal things which lay concealed in them; and by the ruler of the feast tasting this water made wine, is to be understood that they, who were principled in the knowledges of truth, had a perception of this extraordinary change; and by his not knowing whence it was, but the servants which drew the water knew, is further signified that the cause of this change in the apprehension of truth was not known to those who were in the knowledges of truth, but only to those who were instructors in truth; and lastly, by his calling the bridegroom, and saying to him. Every man at the beginning does set forth good wine, and when men have well drunk, then that which is worse, but you have kept the good wine until now, is to be understood that every church commences from truths derived from good, but closes in truths not of good, and that even now in the end of the church, truth derived from goody or genuine truth, is given, namely, from the lord, who is the true bridegroom. For by the beginning is meant the commencement of a church; and by good wine, the truths derived from good which are then taught in that church; and by that which is worse, truths not originating in good, but received and taught under the influence of self love and the love of the world, at the end of the church; and by the good wine kept until now, the truths derived from good which will again be opened by the lord for the establishment of a new church. Q. And how do you understand the concluding words of this history, where it is written, This beginning of miracles did Jesus in Cana of Galilee, and manifested forth His glory, and His disciples believed on Him? A. By beginning is here to be understood, not only precedency in regard to time, but also in regard to importance, and therefore it here implies, agreeable to the spiritual idea above-mentioned, that the conversion of water into wine, or what amounts to the same thing, a spiritual apprehension of the word of god implanted in the place of a natural one, is the first and chief of miraculous agency; and by manifesting forth His glory on this occasion, is further to be understood the revelation of the internal spiritual sense of His most holy word, this sense constituting what is properly called glory, as in the following passages, The glory which You gave Me I have given them, (John 17:22); and again, father, I will that they also whom You have given Me may he with me where I am, that they may behold My glory which You have given Me, (John 5:24); and again, We beheld His glory, the glory as of the only-begotten of the Father, full of grace and truth: lastly, by His disciples believing on Him, is to be understood their faith in His sole and supreme divinity, as resulting from the manifestation of His glory, or, from the revelation of the interior truths of His holy word, since all faith properly so called is the result of the reception of interior truth seen in its connection with its divine source, the great lord and saviour Jesus Christ. Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from this miracle? A. By the literal sense of this miracle I am taught again to adore the divinity and omnipotence of my god and saviour, so wonderfully displayed in the act of turning water into wine, whilst by its spiritual sense I am taught an additional edifying lesson both of instruction and of comfort. For from its spiritual sense I learn that the blessed Jesus is ever in the act of turning water into wine in the minds of all His true disciples, by raising them out of natural and external views of the truths of His holy word, into spiritual and internal views, and by thus enabling them to see, that His holy word throughout, with all its representatives and significatives, both under the Jewish and Christian dispensation, has respect to Himself, and to the interior spiritual things of His eternal kingdom. Lastly, I learn that every church, at its commencement, is founded on truths derived from heavenly good of love and charity, but that in the process of its decay, those truths are separated from their heavenly source, and are thus deprived of their life, being received and taught under the influence of self-love and the love of the world, I am resolved therefore, through divine assistance, to profit by the above instruction, and for this purpose to keep my eye constantly fixed on the incarnate god, whenever I am admitted to the high honour and happiness of hearing and reading His holy word, that so I may discover that He is the very life and soul of all its sacred truths, and that every type and figure points to him and His kingdom as the great realities in which they originate. Thus may I hope to see my water turned into wine, and in that conversion to behold a new manifestation of my saviour’s glory, which may conduct me finally to the blessed privilege of ranking among those happy ones of whom it is said, That they believed on Him. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 33: 01.32. THE IMPOTENT MAN AT THE POOL OF BETHESDA ======================================================================== The Impotent Man at The Pool of Bethesda. John 5:2-15 Now there is at Jerusalem by the sheep (market or gate) a pool, which is called in the Hebrew tongue Bethesda, having five porches; in these lay a great multitude of impotent folk, of blind, halt, withered, waiting for the moving of the water, etc. Q. WHAT do you understand by these words? A. These words have both a literal and spiritual meaning; and according to their literal meaning they are to be understood as they are literally expressed, though commentators differ about this meaning, some calling it a sheep-market, and others a sheep-gate, whilst others conceive that the adjective sheep ought to be joined to the substantive pool. This difference, however, about the letter, does not affect the spiritual sense and meaning of the words, according to which sense and meaning they have relation, not to a pool of natural water, but to a pool of spiritual water, even to the eternal truth of the word of god, which is called a pool by reason of the knowledges of good and truth which it contains. For the word of god is sometimes called a pool, sometimes a fountain, sometimes a well, and sometimes a river, and all in relation to the several states of its reception in the human mind, being called a pool, when it is received merely in the knowledge of what is good and true; and being called a fountain, when it is received together with the life and love of knowledge; and being called a well, when it is admitted in a state of less purity; and lastly, being called a river, when it is seen in connection with its divine source, or with the fountain of living waters. That a pool denotes the knowledges of what is good and true derived from the word of god, may be confirmed by the following passages, where those knowledges are treated of, The parched ground shall become a pool, and the thirsty lands springs of water, (Isa 35:7); again, I will open rivers on high places, and fountains in the midst of the valleys; I will make the wilderness a pool of water, and the dry lands springs of water, (Isa 41:18). This pool is therefore called Bethesda in the Hebrew tongue, because by Bethesda is meant the house of mercy, and is thus a name fitly applied to the word of god, as containing in it all the fullness of the divine mercy and loving-kindness: it is also said to have five porches, because by a porch is meant what introduces to a house, and when applied to the house of mercy, as in the present case, it denotes those introductory truths, which conduct to heavenly knowledge and life. Lastly, by the great multitude of impotent folk, of blind, halt, withered, lying in those, (porches), and waiting for the moving of the water, are to be understood all those of the human race, who are mad, sensible of their spiritual disorders, whether arising from the want of truth or of its good, and who apply to the word of god as to the only medicine from which they can expect a cure. Q. And what do you here understand by the moving of the water? A. By moving, or, as it is expressed in the next verse, troubling, (or disturbing), is signified to vivify, or to give divine life, which signification is grounded in correspondence, since all motion corresponds to a state of thought, whence progressions, journeyings, and the like, which are acts of motion, in the holy word signify states of life. By moving the water therefore, in the above passages, is signified vivification by acknowledgement and faith, thus also purification by truths; and by healing is represented the restoration of spiritual life. This moving or disturbing of the water is an effect of the divine presence and operation, and accordingly it is written in the next verse, that an angel went down at a certain season into the pool, and troubled (or disturbed) the water, to teach the instructive lesson, that the almighty is always in the act of vivifying, or giving life to, His holy word in the mind of man, by filling it with His own blessed spirit of love and charity. This act of the almighty is here called troubling or (disturbing) the water, because it is attended with trouble or disturbance to the natural mind of man, during the process of His purification from unclean loves, but when that process is ended, by virtue of the healing power of the water, then disturbance ceases, and is succeeded by a state of peace and rest. Q. But it is written, that Whosoever then first after the troubling of the water stepped in, was made whole of whatever disease he had—— what do you conceive to be the force and meaning of these words? A. By stepping into the water, according to the above spiritual interpretation of this history, is to be understood instruction in the knowledges of what is good and true from the Word of god ; and by first stepping in is denoted, not precedence in point of time, but in regard to affection, implying that the first or supreme affection is engaged in that instruction, according as it is said by Jesus Christ in another place, Seek you first the kingdom of god and His righteousness, where by seeking first the kingdom of god and His righteousness is signified the seeking those eternal blessings above all other blessings, thus with the first or supreme affection of the will or love. It is not therefore to be understood, as the sense of the letter appears to suggest, that the virtue of the water extends only to the single person who first steps into it, but it is to be understood, agreeable to the dictate of the spiritual sense, that whoever receives instruction from the word of god, with all his heart and mind, and soul, under an acknowledgment that it is continually vivified by the divine presence and life, is made whole of whatever spiritual disease he had. Q. And how do you understand the words which follow, where it is written, And a certain man was there, which had an infirmity thirty and eight years? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words relate to a man who had a bodily infirmity, though it does not appear of what nature it was, and who had been waiting a long time in one of the porches for a cure; but according to the spiritual sense of this history, the infirm man here spoken of is to be regarded as a representative figure of all those in the church, who labour under spiritual infirmity, and especially under that particular one, which prevents their deriving from the word of god that spiritual strength and support which it was designed to convey. The specific character of this spiritual infirmity is marked in a succeeding verse, where the impotent man answers, Sir, I have no man when the water is troubled, to put me into the pool; but while I am coming, another steps down before me, (John 5:7); for from the spiritual sense of these words it appears, that the impotent man here spoken of was unable of himself to derive proper instruction from the word of god, in consequence of the intervention of some evil principle of self-love or the love of the world, which prevailed at the time over heavenly love, and thus stepped down before it. For such is the case at this day with many people, who even apply themselves with a serious purpose to the word of god for instruction, but who, from the unstableness of their resolutions, suffer selfish and worldly motives to interfere, and either to reject the proposed instruction, or if it be admitted, to pervert and defile it, by connecting it with evil affections and ends of life. Q. But it is written, That when Jesus saw him lie, and knew that he had now been a long time (in that case), he says to him, Will you be made whole? — how do you understand these words? A. According to their literal meaning, these words relate to the impotent man above spoken of; but according to their spiritual meaning, they relate to those in the church, who are represented by this impotent man, agreeable to what has been shown above; and in this view, by Jesus seeing him lie, is denoted divine inspection into the state of such; and by His knowing that he had been now a long time (in that case), is denoted divine omniscience respecting every stage of spiritual infirmity and disorder; and by His saying, Will you be made whole? is to be understood divine exploration of the secret purposes and intentions of such persons, and how far it is the real governing desire of their hearts to enter into a process of spiritual purification, by means of instruction from the word of god. Q And how do you understand the two following verses, where it is written, Jesus says to him, Rise, take up your bed, and walk. And immediately the man was made whole, and took up his bed and walked? A. From the literal sense of these words, I am taught again to adore the mercy and omnipotence of the incarnate god manifested in the cure of bodily infirmity; and from their spiritual sense I learn another most edifying lesson relating to the cure of mental disease. For according to this latter sense, when the blessed Jesus says to the impotent man, Rise, He announced His divine power to elevate the will and affections of mankind to Himself, as to the divine source of all good and when He says further, Take up your bed, He meant to announce the same power ever near and at hand, to elevate the natural mind with all its persuasions to the same source; and lastly, when He adds, and walk, He inculcates the weighty duty of living according to such elevation; for by walking, as was observed in treating on a former miracle, is signified to live. Accordingly, the effect of the divine word instantly followed, for it is said, that immediately the man was made whole, and took up his bed, and walked, where by being made whole is signified purification from evils, through the reception of the cleansing power of the divine truth. Q. But it is lastly written, that afterward jesus finds him in the temple, and says to him, Behold thou are made whole, sin no more, lest a worse thing come to you — what do you here understand by the divine injunction to sin no more, and by the divine caution, lest a worse thing come to you? A. By the divine injunction to sin no more, is meant exhortation to live according to the laws of divine order, which laws are all the holy truths contained in the word of god; and by the caution, lest a worse thing come to you, is denoted the danger of profanation, the worst kind of which consists in first acknowledging divine truths and living according to them, and afterward receding from and denying them, in which case, holy things are mixed with profane in such a manner, that they cannot be separated, and yet they must be separated before the spirit can either be in heaven or in hell. Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from this miracle? A. From its literal sense, i am taught further to adore the mercy and omnipotence of my god and Saviour, displayed in the cure of bodily infirmity, whilst from its spiritual sense I am taught the edifying lesson, that the word of god is ever near and present with man, as a pool of heavenly water, intended for his purification from all his natural evils, and for his restoration thus to all the strength and comfort of spiritual life. I learn further that this pool is in connection with the divine mercy, and is therefore properly called Bethesda, or the house of mercy, so that all who wash in the pool are not only purified from their natural evils, but become at the same time the blessed habitations of the divine compassion and tender pity of the blessed Jesus. I am instructed yet further that all, who are made sensible of their infirmities and disorders, lie in the porches of this house; in other words, apply to the Book of Revelation to be instructed in its holy truths, but that some of these, for want of a fixed purpose to profit by instruction, suffer the evils of selfish and worldly love to prevail, so as to prevent their receiving the full effect of the spiritual medicine which they seek, until they receive strength from the divine presence and operation, together with a caution to be more guarded in future against the influences of disorderly love. I am resolved, therefore, to attend well to the above instructive lessons, and whenever I take my place at the pool of Bethesda for the cure of my spiritual disorders, I am resolved further to watch well over my purposes in applying to the blessed water for purification, that so none but a pure and heavenly purpose may be present, and that no defiled affection may step in, and deprive me of the blessing which I looked for in the word of life. Thus may I hope finally to hear from my god and saviour the consolatory and vivifying words, Rise, take up your bed and walk; and thus too, in obedience to divine command, shall I also, like the impotent man of old, elevate my heart with all its best affections and thoughts to my great creator, and continue to live according to the laws of His divine order, and sin no more, lest a worse thing come to me. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 34: 01.33. SIGHT RESTORED TO THE MAN BLIND FROM HIS BIRTH ======================================================================== Sight Restored To The Man Blind From His Birth. John 9:1-8 And as Jesus passed by, He saw a man which was blind from his birth. And His disciples asked Him, saying, Master, who did sin, this man or his parents, that he was born blind, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by a man blind from his birth? A. According to the sense of the letter of this history, by a man blind from his birth, is meant one who was born blind, or without the use and enjoyment of die organs of bodily sight; but according to the spiritual sense involved in this and all the other miracles worked by the blessed Jesus, by the blind man here recorded, are figured and represented those who are spiritually blind, or those who are destitute of the saving knowledge of heavenly truth; and by being blind from his birth, is further figured and represented the state of the Gentiles, or of- those, who, when they have the faculty of receiving instruction in the knowledge either of moral or religious truth, never receive it, and who consequently are mere sensual men, believing only the testimony of their senses, and acknowledging nothing to be true but what they can confirm by their senses. Q. And how do you understand the reply which the blessed Jesus here makes to the question proposed by His disciples, when He says, Neither has this man sinned, nor his parents, but that the works of God should be made manifest in him? A. It appears from the mode of expression here adopted, as if the blessed Jesus pronounced both the man and his parents free from sin, and thus that He contradicts the testimony of His apostles, one of whom says, All have sinned, (Rom 3:23), whilst another says, If we say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us, (1Jn 1:8), but this appearance arises from separating the ’former part of the above words from the latter, instead of reading them in the connection in which they stand. For if they be read in connection, their combined sense will then be this, Neither has this man sinned, or his parents, (in such a manner or degree), but that the works of god may be made manifest in him, which is the same thing as if He had said, Both this man and his parents may have sinned, but still they are not out of the reach of divine mercy and operation, and therefore their sin may tend to manifest more fully the works of that mercy, in effecting their purification and regeneration, which effects are in an eminent sense the works of God. A similar mode of expression occurs in another evangelist, where the blessed Jesus replies to the mother of Zebedee’s children, "To sit on my right-handy and on my left is not mine to give, but (it shall be given to those) for whom it is prepared of my Father, (Mat 20:23), and this mode of expression has led many into the error of supposing, that to sit on His right-hand and on His left is not His to give, whereas if the former part of the words be connected with the latter, no such declaration is made. For in a connected series, the import of the above words, when read without the interpolation made by the translators, is to this effect, To sit on my right-hand and on my left is not mine to give, but (or except) to those for whom it is prepared of my Father; thus the declaration of the blessed Jesus amounts only to this, that He cannot confer the joys of heaven on those, who are not in a state of purification and preparation to receive them, but only on those who are prepared, and whose preparation is of the Father ; in other words, of what is signified by the Father, namely. the divine good of the divine love; for when the father and the son are spoken of distinctly, by the former is to be understood the divine good of the divine love, and by the latter the divine truth of the divine wisdom. Q. But the blessed Jesus immediately adds, I must work the works of Him that sent Me while it is day; the night comes when no man can work — can you see any connection between these words and those of the preceding verse? A. Yes; the blessed Jesus, in the preceding verse, had been speaking of the works of god, and now He declares in the present verse, that these works must be worked by Himself in the day, and not in the night; in other words, they must be wrought when the principles of goodness and truth are admitted by man, and not when they are rejected. For the principal works of god consist in the purification and regeneration of human minds, and these works cannot be accomplished where evil and error, which constitute spiritual night, abound, but only in the day of the dawning of heavenly goodness and truth. Jesus Christ accordingly teaches in the succeeding verse, that this day comes from Himself, and that consequently He is the god who performs the mighty works of man’s purification and regeneration, for He declares, While I am in the world, I am the light of the world; in other words, I am that divine truth from which and by which all purification and regeneration is effected, for divine truth is light, and by divine truth and life according to it, man is purified and regenerated. Q. And how do you understand the words which next follow, When He had thus spoken, He spat on the ground, and made clay of the spittle ; and He anointed the eyes of the blind man with the clay, and said to Him, Go, wash in the pool of Siloam (which is, by interpretation, Sent). A. These words, like the foregoing, have both a literal and a spiritual meaning, and according to their literal meaning, they are to be understood as they are expressed; but according to their spiritual meaning, they are to be understood in relation to the recovery of spiritual sight, which is the understanding of truth, amongst those who are signified by the man in this history, who was blind from his birth. Agreeable to this meaning, by Jesus thus speaking, is to be understood the declaration which He had just made of His supreme divinity, consequently of His divine humanity, as being the only source of all divine faith; and by His spitting on the ground and making clay of the spittle, and anointing the eyes of the blind man with the clay, is further to be understood the preparation and application of a lower order of truth in His holy word, called sensual truth, or truth adapted to the apprehension of sensual men, or minds, such as have been above described; for by clay made of spittle, such an order of truth is signified and represented. It is remarkable therefore, that, on this occasion, the blessed Jesus does not address this blind man as, on two former occasions, He had addressed other blind men, saying, in one instance, Believe you that I am able to do this? (Mat 9:28), and in another instance, What will you that I should do to you? (Mat 20:32), neither does He touch the eyes, as in the two other cases, but He makes clay with spittle, and anoints the eyes, bidding the blind man Go, and wash in the pool of Siloam, from all which circumstances it is evident that another and distinct kind of blindness is here described, consequently another and distinct kind of restored sight. It is evident also that the blindness here described is of a grosser and more external kind than in the former cases, because in the first place it did not admit of immediate communication with the divine healing power by the touch, and in the second place, it required for its cure a medium of a grosser and more external nature. Such a medium is the clay here described, and which is figurative of that order of truth in the holy word, which may be called sensual truth, because adapted to the sensual mind, and best fitted for its restoration to the blessing of spiritual sight. Of this order of truth are all those passages in the holy word, where divine and heavenly things are described under figures most striking to the senses, as under the figures of crowns, thrones, feasts, music, dancing, etc. The man in the above history is accordingly bidden by his saviour to Go, and wash in the pool of Siloam, because by going, is to be understood living, and by washing in the pool of Siloam, is further to be understood purification from evil by means of the above order of truth, which is called Siloam, or sent, to denote that it proceeds from the divine source of truth the divine humanity of the blessed Jesus, which humanity for the same reason is said to be sent (verse 4), because it proceeded or came forth from the eternal father, (see John 16:28). Q. But it is said of the blind man at the conclusion of the verse, that he went his way therefore, and washed, and came seeing — how do you understand these words? A. In agreement with the spiritual sense of this history, as above described, these words are to be understood spiritually, whilst according to the literal sense they are to be understood literally, and were literally accomplished; and in agreement with the spiritual sense, by the man going his way, is to be understood obedience to the divine counsel, amongst those who are represented by the man; and by washing, is denoted purification from evil in consequence of such obedience; and by coming seeing, is further denoted that they afterwards live according to the understanding of truth, to which their minds were opened. Thus the words taken collectively, denote the full effect produced by that order of sensual truth which had been provided and recommended. Q. In the succeeding part of this history, a long account is given of the agitation and disturbance which this miracle occasioned amongst the Pharisees, and how finally they cast the blind man out (of the synagogue) — what instruction do you learn from this part of the history? A. From the perverseness of the Pharisees on this occasion, I am taught the instructive lesson, that there is no blindness so terrible, and so difficult to cure, as that which arises from a corrupt will, especially if hypocrisy, or an external sanctity, be added to that corruption. The blessed Jesus therefore, at the conclusion of this history, makes the following interesting declaration, For judgement am I come into this world, that they which see not might see, and that they who see might be made blind, from which words I learn that they, who are out of the pale of the church, and are not in possession of the oracles of divine truth, are in a better state to admit the truth, and thus recover intellectual sight, than those within the church, who enjoy the benefit of instruction from the word of god, and who nevertheless do not form their lives according to the purity of such instruction. The truly seeing, therefore, are they, who acknowledge all their wisdom, together with its affection, to come from the god of heaven, whilst the truly blind are they, who believe their wisdom and its affection to be derived from themselves. Q. But it is lastly written, that Jesus heard that they had cast him out; and when He had found him. He said to him, Do you believe on the Son of God? He answered and said, Who is He, Lord, that I might believe on Him? And Jesus said to him, You have both seen Him, and it is He that talketh with you. And he said, Lord, I believe. And he worshipped Him —— what do you conceive to be the import and meaning of these words? A. According to the sense of the letter, these words relate to the blind man, whose history is here recorded; but according to the spiritual sense, they relate to those who are represented by this blind man, namely. the Gentiles, who are without the holy word, and therefore uninstructed, but who afterwards receive instruction, and have the eyes of their understandings opened by the sense of the letter of the Word. In reference, therefore, to these Gentiles, by Jesus finding the blind man, and saying to him, Do you believe on the Son of God, is to be understood divine inquisition into the quality of their faith, and whether it was directed to the lord in His divine humanity; and by the man answering and saying, Who is He, lord, that I might believe on Him? is to be understood inquiry on the part of the Gentiles, concerning the divine humanity ; and by Jesus saying unto him, You have both seen Him, and it is He that talketh with you, is further to be understood that the divine humanity of the incarnate god is discoverable in every truth of the holy word, because the holy word throughout treats of His glorification; and lastly, by the blind man saying, lord, i believe, and afterwards worshiping Him, is to be understood that the Gentiles, when instructed from the holy word, acknowledge the divine humanity of the lord, and adore Him in that humanity as the only god of heaven and earth. Q. In the gospel according to St. Mark, a miracle is recorded, which bears some resemblance to the one here treated of, for it is there written, that they brought a blind man to Jesus, and besought Him to touch him. And He took the blind man by the hand, and led him out of the town; and when He had spit on his eyes, and put His hands upon him, He asked him if he saw aught. And he looked up, and said, I see men as trees, walking. And after that, He put His hands again upon his eyes, and made him look up; and he was restored, and saw every man clearly. And He sent him away to his house, saying, Neither go into the town, nor tell it to any in the town, (Mark 8:22-27). — can you briefly explain to me the spiritual sense of this miracle in reference to the particular circumstances which distinguish it from the miracle above treated of? A. By leading the blind man out of the town, in the present instance, is to be understood removal from former opinions and doctrines of truth; and by the man looking up, and saying, I see men as trees, walking, is further to be understood obscure and general perception of truth, such as is derived from the letter of the sacred Scriptures; and by his being restored, and seeing every man clearly, after that he was touched a second time by the great saviour, is denoted, that the understanding was then opened to the discernment of truth in its internal form or spirit, as well as in its external appearance; lastly, by Jesus sending him away to his house, and saying, Neither go into the town, nor tell it to any in the town, is further to be understood, that the interior perceptions of truth, which had been communicated, should be interiorly cherished and obeyed, and likewise that they should be kept separate from the influence and operation of former persuasions and opinions. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above miracle? A. From the letter or literal sense of this history, I am again taught to adore the divine omnipotence of my god and saviour, exerted in the cure of a man blind from his birth; and from the spiritual sense, I am taught several weighty lessons of instruction relative to spiritual blindness, and to its cure by the same omnipotence. For respecting spiritual blindness, I am taught by the above history, that there is a blindness arising from the want of early instruction, such as is that of the Gentiles, who are out of the church, and consequently receive no instruction from the holy word, and who on this account are sensual men, and believe nothing but what is in agreement with the evidence of the senses. And in regard to the cure of this blindness, I am taught that it is provided in the holy word, and is there to be found in the letter, under the form of sensual truth, which is the clay made of spittle in the above history, and is accommodated to the apprehension of sensual minds, leading them finally to the acknowledgement and worship of the incarnate god in His divine humanity. I am resolved, therefore, from now on to attend carefully to all the sources and consequent qualities of spiritual blindness in my own mind, and to go and wash in the pool of Siloam, whenever I find that the sensual mind prevails, so as to darken in me the light of the eternal truth. Thus may I humbly hope, like the blind man in the above history, to come seeing; and finally, like him, to be enabled to say, lord, I believe, and by believing become a true worshiper of the living god in His divine humanity. AMEN. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 35: 01.34. LAZARUS RAISED FROM THE DEAD ======================================================================== Lazarus Raised from the Dead John 11:1-45 The particulars related in this chapter concerning Lazarus, previous to his being raised from the dead, are so numerous and likewise so important, that it would require a volume to give a full and satisfactory explanation of their spiritual meaning. We must, therefore, be content to pass them by, and proceed immediately to the interpretation of the several circumstances recorded, when the blessed Jesus took His station at the grave of the deceased, and prepared directly for the exercise of His divine omnipotence. Nevertheless it may be proper to remark, as a clue to the elucidation of the introductory parts of the history, that by Lazarus are here represented the Gentiles, as also in the parable, (Luk 16:20), and by his being raised from the dead, is further figured the establishment of a new church amongst the Gentiles, and in every individual; for the establishment of a church, in all cases, implies the communication of spiritual life by the removal of evils and errors; thus it implies also resurrection from the dead, since wheresoever evil and error prevail, there is death. This being premised, the reader will now consider himself as standing at the grave of Lazarus, and will there ask, Q. How are the following words to be understood, where it is written, Jesus again therefore groaning in Himself, comes to the grave: it was a cave, and a stone lay upon it? A. It had been before said, on this occasion, that Jesus groaned in spirit, (John 11:38), therefore when it is now said that He groaned in Himself, it implies a two-fold groaning, and since by groaning, when spoken of the divine being, is meant a vehement emotion of divine principles, by a two-fold groaning, or what is here called again groaning, is to be understood a vehement emotion both of the divine love and divine wisdom occasioned by the circumstances which presented themselves, when viewed both literally and representatively. By His coming to the grave, under this emotion, is further to be understood, not only His divine presence at the tomb of Lazarus, but also at what is here: figured by a tomb, namely. the principles of unregenerate life; in other words, the principles of selfish and worldly love, which entomb the mind of man in its natural state, and prevent its arising to the sense and enjoyment of its proper life in the love of god and its neighbour. It is said of this tomb or grave, that it was a cave, and a stone lay upon it, because by a cave, according to the spiritual idea involved in this history, is denoted an obscure state of faith and of love; and by a stone lying upon it, is further signified that this obscurity was occasioned by false persuasions of the understanding, which darkened the light of truth. For stone, when applied in a good sense, signifies divine truth, and especially the truth which announces the divinity of Jesus Christ, who is accordingly called The stone which the builders refused; but in the opposite sense, the terms stone and stony are applied in the sacred Scriptures to denote false persuasions and the effects thereby produced, agreeable to which meaning it is written of the angels concerning the lord, They shall bear you up in their hands, lest you dash your foot against a stone, (Psa 91:11-12); again it is written of the lord and His vineyard, that He gathered out the stones thereof (Isa 5:2); and again it is said in the prophet, I will take away the stony heart out of your flesh, and will give you a heart of flesh, (Ezek. 35:26). Q. But it is written, Jesus said, Take the stone away — how do you understand these words? A. As applied to the grave of Lazarus, these words are to be understood literally, but as applied to the establishment of a church, and to the regeneration of man, they are to be understood spiritually, and according to their spiritual meaning they contain a lesson of the deepest importance. For according to this meaning, to take away the stone, is to remove from the understanding all false persuasions which are opposed to the eternal truth ; thus all vain thoughts, all foolish imaginations, all perverse judgement, which prevent the voice of the divine wisdom from being heard, and its salutary saving effects from being experienced. Take away the stone, is therefore a primary law and condition of man’s reformation, regeneration, and salvation, since until this is effected, the omnipotent voice of the divine mercy and truth cannot be heard, and the terrible consequence must be that man will remain for ever dead and buried in the grave of impure and defiled affections and appetites. Q. And what do you conceive to be the import of the observation made on this occasion by Martha the sister of him that was dead, who says to Jesus, Lord, by this time he stinks, for he has been dead four days? A. From these words I learn how difficult a thing it is to acquire a right faith in the omnipotence of the great redeemer, for although this redeemer had before said to Martha, This sickness is not to death, but for the glory of god, (see John 11:4).; and although He had before declared, I am the Resurrection and the Life; he that believes in Me, though he were dead, yet shall he live, (John 11:25), still, when her faith is put to the proof, it is found wavering and defective, and she thinks it impossible that life can be restored to a putrid carcase. And just so it is with those who are here represented by Martha, or those who are in the affection of truth, (for Martha and her sister Mary, in this history, are representative of the two affections, of good and of truth), when their faith is put to the proof respecting spiritual resurrection, or the establishment of a new church, which is the restoration of spiritual life to those who have been long dead in trespasses and sins, For on this occasion they see nothing but difficulties and impossibilities, even though they have been previously instructed concerning the Divine omnipotence, and viewing only the principle of evil in its terrible death and defilement they forget that all things are possible to him that believes, and that even the putrid and offensive carcase of human sin and corruption may, in the hour of true repentance, administer to the glory of god, that the son of god may be glorified thereby. Q. And how do you understand the following words which were spoken in reply, Jesus says to her, Said I not to you, that if you would believe, you should see the glory of god ? A. By believing, is here to be understood faith in the incarnate god, or in the divine humanity of that god, in which He reigns as the great father and almighty sovereign of heaven and earth; and by seeing the glory of god in consequence of such a faith, is to be understood a perception of the divine presence, power and operation of the most high in His word and in His works, in His word, by the manifestation of His divine truth, with which its interior contents are filled, and with which they are in perpetual connection; and in His works, by the government of His divine providence in all human concerns however minute, and especially by that interior operation which He exercises continually in the minds of men, whilst He guards them from infernal force and delusion, and through the influence of His holy spirit, purifies, reforms, regenerates, and finally elevates them to conjunction of life with Himself. As therefore a belief in the incarnate god is the duty to which every Christian is, called; so to see the glory of god is the high privilege and distinguished blessing annexed to that duty, and resulting from it. Q. But it follows, that when the blessed Jesus had spoken these words, then they took away the stone from the place where the dead was laid. And Jesus lifted up (His) eyes, and said, Father, I thank You that you have heard Me, and I knew that You hearest Me always ; but because of the people that stand by I said (it), that they may believe that You have sent Me — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. I learn from these words a most edifying lesson in two distinct respects, first, that the stone was then removed from where the dead man lay, as soon as the blessed Jesus uttered the words of eternal truth and power, Said I not to you, that if you would believe, you should see the glory of god ? for by removing the stone, as was above observed, is spiritually signified the removal and dispersion of false principles and persuasions in the natural or unregenerate mind, which can only be effected by the revelation of the eternal truth; secondly, that the blessed Jesus, in His exchange with the father, whether in the way of prayer or of thanksgiving, always addressed Him as a being in and one with Himself, and that if He appeared at any time to address a being out of and separate from Himself, it was for the sake of others, or, as it is here expressed, because of the people which stood by. Thus, on another occasion, when there came a voice from heaven, saying, I have both glorified it, and will glorify it again, Jesus answered and said, This voice came not because of Me, but for your sakes, (John 12:29-30). It is well therefore to be understood, that all the expressions in the evangelical history, which speak of the blessed Jesus as praying to the father, as coming to do the will of the father, and as being sent of the father, and which thus suggest the idea of two separate and distinct beings or persons, are to be interpreted of one and the same being, inasmuch as the father was the essential life and soul of the humanity of the blessed Jesus, whilst that humanity was consequently the body, which, proceeding from that life and soul, was perpetually obedient to it, and by such obedience became finally united with it in such a sort, as to become the first and the last, the alpha and omega, the beginning and the ending of all divine life, power and benediction, consequently god ever all, blessed for ever, (see Rev 1:8, Rev 1:17. Rom 9:5). Q. And how do you understand the words which follow, where it is said, When He had thus spoken, He cried with a loud voice, Lazarus, come forth ? A. By the words, when He had thus spoken, is to be understood, when He had thus proclaimed his one-ness and union with the father, for in the foregoing verse He had been speaking of that one-ness and union: it therefore follows, that He cried with a loud [or great] voice; because crying has reference to the will or love, in this case therefore to the divine will or love; and a great voice is expressive of the divine wisdom of that love; thus by crying with a loud voice is here signified the omnipotence of the divine wisdom proceeding from the humanity of the blessed Jesus in union with His divinity. It accordingly follows, Lazarus, come forth, because the wisdom of the divine love is continually in operation to raise all things and principles out of death into life, thus out of darkness into light, consequently out of misery into bliss, and out of a state of separation from god, into a state of eternal conjunction of life with Him. The divine words, therefore, Lazarus, come forth, apply, on this occasion, not only to the dead body of him who had been four days in the grave, but likewise to all people, nations, and individuals whatever, who are dead in trespasses and sins to the knowledge and enjoyment of their proper life in the love of god and heaven, calling them to the recovery of that life, and with this view to the exercise of those faculties which god has given them, and thus to the elevation of their affections and thoughts out of that grave of selfish and worldly love, in which they had been before entombed. Q. And what do you conceive to be meant when it is said, And he that was dead came forth, bound hand and foot with grave-clothes, and his face was bound about with a napkin? A. According to the literal sense of these words, they relate to the dead body of the deceased Lazarus, and were literally fulfilled by the resurrection of that body; but according to the spiritual sense, the words relate to dead principles, whether in the church in general, or in the individuals who compose it, implying resurrection out of those principles, thus elevation of human affections and thoughts to the great and holy god and His eternal kingdom. Agreeable to this sense of the words, by being bound hand and foot with grave-clothes, is to be understood the imprisonment of all thought both interior and exterior by false principles and persuasions; and by the face being bound about with a napkin, is meant a similar imprisonment of the love and affection, for the face is a representative image of those interior principles, and is accordingly applied in the sacred Scriptures. Q. But it follows, Jesus saith to them, Loose him, and let him go — how do you understand these words? A. The blessed Jesus is not content with calling forth dead men and dead principles to a resurrection to life and blessedness, but His omnipotent voice further operates to the restoration of their spiritual liberty, by breaking the bonds of those false persuasions in which they had been before imprisoned. The divine words therefore, Loose him, and let him go, apply in this case, not only to the deceased Lazarus, but also to all those who have been at any time, or who are tied and bound with the chain of erroneous doctrines, of heretical tenets, of false imaginations, and of perverse thoughts, calling them to break their bonds, by exercising the liberty which god has given them of thinking in agreement with His holy word, and thus of forming their understandings according to the light of the eternal truth, and their lives according to their understandings. It is to be remarked that the words Loose him, have reference to the above liberation of the affections and thoughts, and that the words let him go, relate to the formation of the life according to the truth by which that liberation was effected. Q. And what instruction do you derive from the concluding words of this history, where it is written, that then many of the Jews which came to Mary, and had seen the things which Jesus did, believed on Him; but some of them went their way to the Pharisees, and told them what things Jesus had done? A. I learn from these words how much depends on the temper and disposition of mind, in which people hear and read the word and meditate on the works of god, because in all ages of the world both the word and the works of god have divided the sentiments of mankind, leading some to a full acknowledgement and adoration of the goodness and wisdom of the almighty, whilst they have led others to despise and reject both His wisdom and His goodness. This observation is remarkably verified in the present instance, where the resurrection of the dead Lazarus induces many to believe in the great incarnate god, and some to go and tell it to the Pharisees; thus proving incontestably that no miracle, however well attested, and not even the rising of one from the dead can induce men to believe in a divine agency and operation, unless there be a previous disposition to admit the truth, and to be persuaded by it. So true are those words of the great saviour on another occasion, Every one that does evil hates the light, neither comes to the light, lest his deeds should be reproved; but he that does truth comes to the light, that his deeds may be made manifest, that they are worked in God, (John 3:20-21). Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from the above miracle? A. From the literal sense of this miracle, I am taught again to adore that omnipotent word of my saviour god, which was able to call forth a dead man from his tomb, in which he had laid during a period of four days; and from the spiritual sense of the same history, I am further instructed respecting the boundless power of the same divine word, in raising up to life both churches, and the individuals who compose them, when they also have been long dead in trespasses and sins. I am yet further instructed, that on the occasion of this spiritual resurrection, the first injunction of the eternal truth is to take away the stone; in other words, to remove from the heart and life all those false principles and persuasions, which, having their origin in infernal loves, tend to alienate the soul from god, by rendering it insensible to the blessing of His mercy and truth; and the second is, to come forth; in other words, to elevate the affections and thoughts to an eternal object, by raising them above the shadowy perishable goods of this, lower world, to the possession and enjoyment of a substantial and permanent bliss in the love and favour of the great father of being. I am resolved, therefore, from now on to attend carefully and continually to this spiritual resurrection in my own mind and life, that so I may no longer lie dead and buried in the grave of mere earthly attachments, bodily appetites, and selfish affections, but, listening to the loud voice of my saviour god, may rise to the contemplation and enjoyment of the supreme good in the unfeigned love of Him, and of my fellow-creatures. Thus may I humbly hope to hear, in spirit and in effect, the reviving consolatory words, Lazarus, come forth, and in obedience to the divine command, I also, like Lazarus of old, shall come forth from my dark sepulchre, to be a living monument to all eternity of the divine mercy and omnipotence, and to join in the blessed song, O death, I will be your plagues; O grave, I will be your destruction, (Hos 13:14). amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 36: 01.35. THE RESURRECTION AND ASCENSION OF JESUS CHRIST ======================================================================== The Resurrection And Ascension Of Jesus Christ. Mat 28:1-20. Mark 16:1-20. Luk 24:1-53. John 20:1-31. John 21:1-25 throughout. THE particular circumstances recorded in the evangelical history relative to these two grand events, like those connected with the resurrection of Lazarus, in the preceding miracle, are so numerous and so important, that it would require a volume to give an explanation of each distinctly. It is therefore thought proper, as in the foregoing miracle, to make a selection of the more distinguished parts, which enter into the composition of the above histories, and it is hoped that a satisfactory explanation of them will be found in the following questions and answers. Q. Are you quite correct, when you rank the resurrection and ascension of the blessed Jesus under the class of miracles which He worked? A. Yes; for no one can doubt but that each of those events required a supernatural agency for its accomplishment, consequently that it was miraculous; and it is alike evident that each event was worked by Jesus Christ Himself, and not by any other being, since He Himself declares concerning His resurrection, I lay down my life that I might take it again. No man takes it from Me, but I lay it down of Myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again, (John 10:17-18); and again, Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up. But He spoke of the temple of His body, (John 2:19-21). It is manifest, therefore, from these words, that the blessed Jesus rose again from the dead by His own divine energy, or by virtue of the divinity within Himself, and not only so, but that of Himself He laid down His life, and that consequently the Jews had no power to crucify Him but what He gave them. And as we are thus constrained by the testimony of Jesus Christ to assert, that He raised Himself from the dead by His own divine energy, so are we constrained in like manner to refer His ascension to the same source of omnipotence, and thus, to insist, that no other power but His own was instrumental in effecting it. Q. What do you conceive to be the evidence, on which the grand facts of the resurrection and ascension of the blessed Jesus rest, and by which they are supported? A. The evidence in favour of both these facts is as strong and conclusive, or more so, than that by which any other historical fact whatever is established; for it is an evidence grounded in prophecy, and confirmed by the senses of a great number of witnesses. That it is grounded in prophecy, is manifest from all those various passages in the sacred Scriptures, in which the facts to which it relates are predicted; and that it was confirmed by the senses of a multitude of witnesses, is alike evident from every part of the gospel history in which those facts are recorded-. Thus the blessed Jesus, after His resurrection, was first seen by some pious women, next by some of His apostles, afterwards by them all, and lastly, as St. Paul testifies, by five hundred brethren at once. He did also eat and converse with many of His disciples; and His resurrection was further confirmed by the vision and voice of angelic beings. (See Mat 28:2-8. Mark 16:5. Luk 24:4-8). There cannot therefore remain a single doubt in the well-disposed mind, respecting the undeniable evidence by which the above facts are supported, and on which they rest. Q. Is it to be supposed that the blessed Jesus rose from the grave with His whole body complete, or, as some conceive, that its material part was dissipated in the tomb, and that thus He rose merely in a spiritual body, such as the angels have? A. It is to be supposed that He rose with His whole body complete, and that He left nothing behind Him in the sepulchre, consequently that the material body was not dissipated, but glorified; and this idea seems confirmed by His own words to His disciples after His resurrection. For when, on this occasion, they were terrified and affrighted, and supposed that they had seen a spirit, He said to them, Why are you troubled, and why do thoughts arise in your hearts? Behold my hands and my feet, that it is I myself; handle me and see, for a spirit has not flesh and bones as you see me have. And when He had thus spoken, He showed them His hands and His feet, (Luk 24:37-41). It is evident, therefore, that the blessed Jesus rose from the grave with the same identical body of flesh and bones, which had been laid in the grave, and which might still be handled and seen, consequently that His resurrection-body was not mere spirit, for He says, a spirit hath not flesh and bones as you see me have; and this idea is further confirmed by what He says to Thomas on the occasion, Reach here your finger, and behold My hands, and reach here your hand and thrust it into my side, and be not faithless but believing, (John 20:27), from which words it is manifest that the hands and the side of the lord’s resurrection-body were still the same, and in the same perforated state, as when the body was deposited in the tomb. Q. What then do you conceive to have been the peculiar quality of the lord’s resurrection-body, as distinguished from the bodies of men and of angels ? A. It is perhaps out of the reach of finite intelligences fully to comprehend what was the precise quality of the lord’s body at the resurrection. This only we know of a certainty, that it was derived entirely from the divinity in Himself, and that no particle of it was derived from the mother Mary, for the body which He had from the mother Mary, was successively put off, until He became no longer her Son, as was shown above, in treating of the miracle of water turned into wine at the marriage of Cana of Galilee, on which occasion Jesus calls His mother, Woman, thus intimating that He was no longer her Son. but was by nativity as well as conception the son of god. The body then, in which the blessed Jesus appeared after His resurrection, had an immediate divine origin, being formed successively from a divine soul, and thus partaking of divine qualities, which completely distinguished it from all other bodies, whether of men or of angels. Perhaps divine substantiality is the most characteristic term by which the distinction can be marked, so that whilst the body of a man is called material, and the body of an angel, spiritual, the resurrection-body of the lord may be fitly and properly called a divine substantial body. Q. And what do you conceive further to have been the quality of the lord’s body after the resurrection, as distinguished from its quality when He was alive in the world? A. By the passion of the cross, which was the last temptation endured by the blessed Jesus, it is reasonable to suppose that a deeper humiliation of the humanity was effected, than had before taken place, and thus that hereditary evil, contracted from the mother, was more completely and radically removed. This being the case, it is reasonable to suppose further, that when the divinity began again to operate, as in the tomb, on this entirely submissive and purified humanity, it would take a more entire possession than it had done before, until at length the possession was complete, and the humanity became what may most properly be called a divine humanity. This increase of divine virtue and life in the humanity had been before hinted at and accounted for in those remarkable words of Jesus Christ, where He says, Except a corn of wheat fall into the ground and die, it abides alone, but if it die, it brings forth much fruit, (John 12:24); for the blessed Jesus is here speaking of Himself, His own sufferings, death, and resurrection, intimating by this most significant language, that without sufferings and death, His humanity must have abided alone, or not fully united with its divinity, but that by sufferings and death His humanity became so entirely submitted, as to be capable of entering into the closest union with its divinity, which was its bearing much fruit. The same also is true in regard to man, who, it is well known, when humbled by trials and sufferings, is rendered capable of admitting into Himself more of spiritual life than before, and the only difference between the blessed Jesus and His creatures, in this respect, is, that His creatures by trials and sufferings become more accepting of spiritual life, whereas He became more accepting of divine life, thus of the essential divinity. Q. You say that the passion of the cross was the last temptation endured by the blessed jesus, and you seem to regard it, not as constituting in itself the redemption of man, but only as a process leading to redemption — in what then do you suppose the redemption of man properly consists? A. The redemption of man properly consists in the subjugation of the powers of darkness, in the orderly arrangement of the heavens, and in the consequent establishment of a new church here on earth, all which divine acts were performed by the blessed Jesus during His abode here on earth, through the process of His various sufferings and temptations, which were nothing else but combats against the infernal hosts, for the purpose of removing them from man. It has indeed been generally supposed that the passion of the cross was itself redemption, and that by the vicarious sacrifice there offered for the sins of the world, a full and sufficient satisfaction was made to the offended justice of the almighty, and mankind were thus placed in a state of reconciliation and acceptance with Him. But this idea vanishes at once, when it is considered what is the genuine idea of redemption as above stated, and that the almighty required no satisfaction but to see His creatures made wise, and holy, and happy, which satisfaction He Himself provided for Himself by appearing here below in the flesh or human nature, by combating in that nature and overcoming the enemies of man’s salvation, by giving man access to himself in the humanity which He had assumed, and by finally glorifying that humanity, or making it divine, that so He might keep heaven for ever open to all such as were disposed to enter, by following Him in the same process to glory. Q. What then do you conceive to be the difference between the state of the lord’s humanity at the time of His resurrection and the state into which it entered at the period of His ascension? A. To compare great things with small, the difference was the same, as between a mighty conqueror here on earth, when he has just gained a signal victory over his enemies, and the same conqueror, when he begins to rest from his labours of combat, and to enter into the tranquillity of peace and the fruit of victory. The blessed Jesus therefore, when His divine combats were completed, of which he gave a proof in His resurrection-glory, did not immediately enter into the rest which was the proposed end of those combats, by fully glorifying His humanity, or uniting it fully with His divinity, and therefore, at this period He says to Mary Magdalene, Touch me not, for I am not yet ascended to my Father, (John 20:17). It appears therefore, that the interval of state between the resurrection and the ascension was an interval agreeable to the divine order, which required a marked distinction to be made between the period of spiritual victory, and the period of rest, to which that victory leads, and this with a view to the instruction of man in his spiritual progress, by teaching him the important lesson, that a state of temptation, even though he conquers in it, is always succeeded by a state of fluctuation, and that a further process in that state of fluctuation is necessary, before he enters into the full rest and enjoyment of His conquests. Q. And how do you understand the terms ascending and ascension, as applied to the body or humanity of Jesus Christ? A. According to their literal sense, these terms mean going up on high, but according to their spiritual sense, they mean approaching to what is inmost, that is to say, to the divine being, who is in the inmost of all beings, of all things, and of all principles, and who is therefore called, The highest, because He is the inmost and central life of all existence. When therefore the body or humanity of Jesus Christ is said to ascend; by this expression is to be understood that it entered into the closest union with the divinity from whom it came forth, agreeable to those words of Jesus Christ in another place, I came forth from the Father, and am come into the world; again, I leave the world, and go to the Father, (John 16:28). An external appearance indeed of ascent was exhibited on the occasion to His disciples, who therefore saw him as ascending into the visible heavens, whilst a cloud received Him out of their sight but this is to be understood merely as an appearance, accommodated to the apprehension of the natural man, yet as an appearance grounded and connected with the grand reality in which it originated, which reality was nothing else, but the full and complete union of divinity with humanity, and of humanity with divinity, in the glorified person of the blessed Jesus, until the humanity became a divine humanity, and was thus consecrated to be the eternal abode and living temple of the most high god, having all power both in heaven and in earth, and being the first and the last, the beginning and the ending, which is, which was, and which is to come, the almighty, (Mat 28:18. Rev 1:8, Rev 1:17). Q. But it is written on this occasion in the gospel according to Mark, That Hewas received up into heaven, and sat on the right hand of god, (Mark 16:9). — how do you understand these expressions as applied to the body or humanity of the blessed Jesus? A. By being received up into heaven, is to be understood into the angelic heaven, where angels dwell; and by sitting on the right hand of god, is further to be understood, not sitting at the right hand of another Being separate from Himself, but possessing omnipotence, which is properly signified by the right hand of god; and therefore in another passage, Jesus Christ Himself calls it sitting at the right hand of power, (Mat 26:64). Thus to sit on the right hand of god is only another expression to denote that He had all power both in heaven and in earth, as He Himself testifies, Mat 28:18. Q. What then do you conceive to be the divine purposes, uses and benefits announced to the world by the manifestation of god here below in a body or humanity, also by the sufferings and death of that body or humanity; and lastly, by its resurrection and final ascension? A. The manifestation of god here below in a body or humanity, is an assurance to mankind, in the first place, of the ardency of the divine love towards them, and of the fixedness of the divine purpose to promote their eternal happiness. For by this manifestation, the father of mercies appeared as a man, and thus in a human form made Himself known and visible to His creatures, who had before lost all knowledge and apprehension both of His being and of His attributes. Under this manifestation too He tenderly invited, and even vehemently pressed them to come to Him, that they might receive remission of sins and eternal life. By the same manifestation also He became their instructor, opening to their intellectual view the interior truths of the word of the old testament, and revealing at the same time a new word or testament, which being committed to writing, might stand in His place, and speak with His Voice, as a perpetual instructor to the most remote generations. At the same time, in and by the same body or humanity, He set the world an example of that pure and perfect order of life which leads to. bliss, teaching mankind that as He, as to His body or humanity, was always pressing towards an eternal union with the divinity from whom He came forth, in like manner it is both the duty and happiness of His creatures to aspire perpetually after conjunction with Himself, the supreme good and the supreme truth. Q. And what do you conceive to be the divine purposes, uses and benefits announced to the world by the sufferings and death of this body or humanity? A. By His sufferings and death the blessed Jesus waged a powerful and successful warfare against the enemies of man’s salvation, the devil, the world and the flesh, destroying the dominion of the first, so that whereas he had before gained an undue ascendancy over both the minds and bodies of men, he was now subjugated, and his goods spoiled by one stronger than himself. In like manner, the seductions of the world and of the flesh were forced to confess their conqueror, and mankind were thus set more at liberty from their delusions and enchantments. But this divine warrior was not content with being himself both a combatant and a conqueror. He called also His disciples to follow Him in His warfare and His victories, and at the same time by His divine example He gave them power to follow Him. Thus, all who were wise to repent of their sins, and pant after renovation of life, found a pattern of patience and a renewal of strength in the suffering humanity of the holy Jesus, and supported by His example experienced the truth and comfort, of His. words. You shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy, (John 16:20); And again, A woman, when she is in travail, has sorrow, because her hour is come; but as soon as she is delivered of the child, she remembers no more the anguish for joy that a man is born into the world, (John 16:21). Q. And what do you conceive to be the divine purposes, uses and benefits announced to the world by the resurrection and ascension of the body or humanity of Jesus Christ. A. By His resurrection, Jesus Christ gave a most unequivocal and convincing proof to the world of the existence and operation of a divine power, superior to death and the grave, and to all the powers of hell, of sin, and of darkness, in His rising body therefore we behold the total annihilation of the infidel’s creed, together with the revival of every virtuous hope, and the vivification, illumination, and support of every virtuous energy. Because I live, you shall live also, is now become the Christian’s motto, which he binds for a sign upon his hands, and as frontlets between his eyes, confirming to him the covenant of his god, opening to his delighted view a bright futurity, and encouraging him to run with patience the race that is set before him. Again, by His ascension, the blessed Jesus announces to all His pious followers, that the father of eternity no longer dwells either in inaccessible light, or inaccessible darkness, but in a visible body or humanity, in which He may be at once seen, known, loved, approached, worshipped and enjoyed by an everlasting conjunction with Him in life and purity. The true believer therefore is no longer perplexed about the object of his worship, but drawing near to the glorified or divine humanity of Jesus Christ, in His ascension-glory, and believing that in Him dwells all the fullness of the Godhead bodily, (Col 1:9); and that this is the true god and eternal life, (1Jn 5:20), he experiences deliverance from error, confirmation of faith, consolation of hope, whilst he views his god as a divine man, and hears Him say, Where I am, there shall also my servant be. (John 12:26). Q. Do you regard then the resurrection and ascension of the redeemer’s body as any security for the resurrection and ascension of your own body? A. If by my own body you mean that material body of flesh and blood which I at present carry about me, I do not conceive that the resurrection and ascension of the blessed Jesus are any security for the resurrection of this body, because I am constrained to believe with St. Paul, that flesh and blood cannot inherit the kingdom of god, (1Co 15:50); and further, that it is sown a natural body, and raised ’ a spiritual body, (1Co 15:44). Nevertheless, though I cannot believe that the material body of flesh and blood will ever be raised after death out of its dark tomb of corruption, yet I am fully persuaded that a spiritual body will be raised, and if the life has been formed according to the laws of heavenly truth and order, will be qualified to live for ever in the enjoyment of bliss in the kingdom of god, In this respect, therefore, the resurrection of Jesus Christ differed from the resurrection of other men, inasmuch as He rose again and ascended into heaven with His whole body complete, leaving nothing behind Him in the tomb; whereas other men rise only with spiritual bodies, agreeable to the words of the blessed Jesus to His disciples after His resurrection, A spirit has not flesh and bones as you see me have, (Luk 24:39). Q. Do you recollect any miracle worked by the blessed Jesus between the period of His resurrection and H is ascension? A. Yes; He repeated the miracle of the miraculous drain of fishes recorded by Saint Luke, (ch. v). and explained above. Q. And in what particulars do the two miracles differ from each other? A. The miracle worked after the resurrection differs from the former miracle in these two particulars, First, that Jesus ordered the disciples to cast the net on the right side of the ship, and Secondly, that although there were so many (fishes), yet was not the net broken, (John 21:6 and John 21:11). Q. And what instruction do you learn from these two circumstances of distinction? A. From the divine command to cast the net on the right side of the ship, I learn the important duty binding on all spiritual fishers, or instructors in heavenly truth, to fish, or instruct, under the influence of heaven-born love and charity, and thus to take good heed lest at any time they separate knowledge from the life of knowledge, or truth from its good, or what amounts to the same, the speculative doctrines of faith from the pure and essential life of charity. And from the second remarkable particular of the net not breaking, I learn the further edifying lesson, that if the above command be attended to, the gospel net, in such case, remains entire and unbroken; in other words, the doctrines of evangelical truth preserve their coherence and consistency, no error or heresy can disturb the church, and mankind receive in due measure the light of faith and the life of love, consequently become that blessed church, of which Jesus Christ speaks in another place where He says, The gates of hell shall not prevail against it. Q. Can you see any reason why the blessed Jesus, after His resurrection, performed the above miracle in preference to any other? A. Yes; and the reason appears to be grounded in the representation, or figurative character, of the above miracle, according to which it relates to the formation and establishment of a new church here on earth by the dissemination of evangelical truth or knowledge, which was one great purpose of the lord’s coming into the world. The above miracle, therefore, is in close connection with what He says to His disciples in another place, and this also after His resurrection, Go you therefore and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you, (Mat 28:19-20); for whether we speak of fishing, or of teaching all nations, the meaning is still the same, according to the spiritual idea; and again, whether we speak of teaching all nations, or of establishing a church, the meaning is the same, since the church can only be founded and established by instruction in heavenly truths. It should seem, therefore, that the blessed Jesus performed the above miracle in preference to any other, by reason of its superior interest and importance in regard to that glorious new church which He came to establish, and which He was well aware never could be established, unless the ministers and instructors in that church were attentive to that law of His eternal order, to cast the net on the right side of the ship, or, as the words have been above explained, to teach the doctrines of faith under the influence of charity, and thus to take heed, lest selfish and worldly love, the inordinate desires of human glory or gain, should mix themselves with instruction, and in so doing should break the gospel net, by destroying the consistency and coherence of the truths of which it is composed. Q. But in the history of the above miracle it is recorded, that Simon Peter went up, and drew the net to land full of great fishes, a hundred and fifty and three, (John 21:11). — Do you conceive that there is any particular spiritual meaning involved in the number, a hundred and fifty and three, which is here said to be the number of great fishes which had been taken? A. Yes; there is every good reason to believe, that all numbers mentioned in the sacred Scriptures, or word of god, have a spiritual signification, inasmuch as the word of god throughout must of necessity contain in it spiritual truth, or truth relating to god and His eternal kingdom, and if it did not contain such truth, it could not be the word of god, We are constrained, therefore, to say; that all numbers, which are recorded in the word of god, involve in them something spiritual, and that consequently the number a hundred and fifty and three, which occurs in the history of the above miracle, has a spiritual signification, which applies, not only to the great fishes taken on the occasion, but to those who were signified and represented by the great fishes. Q. And what do you suppose to be the spiritual import of that number? A. The number, a hundred and fifty and three, is composed of three distinct numbers, each of which involves in it the idea of what is full, and complete, for the number a hundred, when mentioned alone, involves that idea, in like manner the numbers fifty and three, when each of them is mentioned separately. The combination then of these three numbers implies what is full and complete in the highest possible degree, and it is accordingly adopted, in the present instance, to denote the full and complete state of the church’s increase, whenever the net is cast on the right side of the ship; in other words, whenever evangelical truth is taught under the influence of heaven-born charity. It is said on this occasion, that Simon Peter went up, because by Peter, as has been observed in treating of a former miracle, is to be understood the principle of faith in the church, and this principle is always elevated, or goes up, whensoever it submits itself to the dominion of charity. For the same reason the fishes here spoken of are called great fishes, because the terms great and greatness, in the word of god, have always respect to the principle of love and charity, communicated from the great and holy god. Unless some internal spiritual meaning, of this description, had been intended to be expressed by the great fishes here spoken of, also by Simon Peter going up, and likewise by the number a hundred and fifty and three, both the size of the fishes, the ascent of the apostle, and the number, a hundred and fifty and three, would have been things too trivial to have found a place in the sacred volume of divine inspiration, the word of the most high god. Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from the two miracles of the resurrection and ascension of Jesus Christ ? A. From these two miracles I am taught to adore the mercy and omnipotence of the incarnate god, manifested in the accomplishment of the most extraordinary and sublime work ever recorded in the page of any history human or divine, I mean the complete victory over death and the powers of darkness announced by the former miracle, and the full and complete union of the, divine and human natures announced by the latter. In the rising Jesus I therefore behold, to mine unspeakable consolation, a practical comment on those prophetical words, O death, I will be your plagues; O grave, I will be your destruction, (Hos 13:14); and also on those words of His own, I am the resurrection wd the life; he that believes in Me, though he were dead, yet shall he live; and whoever lives and believes in Me, shall never die, (John 11:25-26). In the ascending Jesus also I read another practical comment on His own words, where He says, I came forth from the Father, and am come into the world; again, I leave the world and go to the Father, (John 16:28); and in another place, And now I am no more in the world, but these are in the world, and I come to you, (John 17:11). And again, Now is the Son of Man glorified, and God is glorified in Him. If God be glorified in Him, God shall also glorify Him in Himself, and shall straightway glorify Him, (John 13:31-32).In the rising and ascending Jesus therefore, I behold the signing and sealing of the gospel covenant, together with the completion of all the promises of god, because I see death conquered, the powers of darkness subjugated, god made man, and man made god, heaven thus kept continually open in the divine humanity of the glorified saviour, and all admitted, who are disposed to repent of their sins, and to believe in that manifested god who came to deliver them from the power of sin. Here therefore I make the interesting and delightful discovery, that there is but one god in the church, and that the lord and saviour Jesus Christ in His divine humanity is that god, being creator from eternity, redeemer in time, and regenerator to eternity. Here therefore I am admitted by the eye of faith, to a participation of the blessed vision seen by the beloved apostle of old, when, as He Himself describes it, He saw seven golden candlesticks, and in the midst of the seven candlesticks one like the Son of Man clothed with a garment down to the foot, and girt about the paps with a golden girdle. His head and his hairs were white like wool, as white as snow, and His eyes were as a flame of fire; and His feet like fine brass, as if they burned in a furnace; and His voice as the sound of many waters. And He had in His right hand seven stars, and out of His mouth went a sharp two-edged sword; and His countenance was as the sun shines in his strength, (Rev 1:12-17). I. am resolved therefore henceforth to take this god for my god, and thus to approach and worship the invisible father in the visible humanity, which He has been pleased to assume and unite with Himself as the sacred medium, by and through which all His penitent children may have perpetual access to Him, and He to them. I am resolved further to repent me of all my sins, and endeavour to enter into that process of renewed life, to which my saviour invites me both by His precepts and His example. Thus may I encourage the blessed hope, that that saviour will mercifully accomplish in me, in miniature, the same blessed work which He accomplished, when here on earth, in all its magnitude, by first instructing me in the ways of His righteousness, and afterwards conducting ma, through His cross and sufferings, to the subjugation of all sin and the powers of darkness, until finally He arises also from the dead in me, and is exalted in ascension-glory to the supreme dominion in my love and life, by virtue of which exaltation I shall be enabled to join in the song of the ever-blessed, Worthy is the lamb that was slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honour, and glory, and blessing, (Rev 5:12); and again, Now is come salvation, and strength, and the kingdom of our god, and the power of His Christ [the divine humanity,] for the accuser of our brethren is cast down, which accused them before our god day and night, (Rev 12:10). amen, ======================================================================== CHAPTER 37: 01.36. THE MIRACLE OF PENTECOST ======================================================================== The Miracle of Pentecost Acts 2:1-37. And when the day of Pentecost was fully come, they were all with one accord in one place; and suddenly there came a sound from heaven as of a rushing mighty wind, and it filled all the house where they were sitting; and there appeared to them cloven tongues like as of fire, and it sat upon each of them; and they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and began to speak with other tongues, as the Spirit gave them utterance, etc. Q. WHAT do you here understand by the day of Pentecost? A. The word Pentecost is derived from the Greek word Pentecoste which signifies the fiftieth, because the feast of Pentecost was celebrated the fiftieth day after the sixteenth of Nisan, which was the second day of the feast of the passover. The Hebrews call it the feast of weeks, Exo 34:22, because it was kept seven weeks after the passover. On the sixteenth day of the month Nisan, or March, the wave-offering of the first sheaf was to be made, to implore the divine blessing on the ensuing harvest, which began about that time, that climate being so much warmer and forwarder than ours: and fifty days being allowed with that for the getting in all their corn, that is, the remaining fifteen in Nisan, (March), and twenty-nine in Ijar or Zif, (April), the sixth of Sivan (May) would be the day of Pentecost; when they were to hold the solemn festival of thanksgiving, for their participation of the harvest, together with a grateful commemoration of their being delivered from Egyptian servitude, and enjoying their property by reaping the fruits of their labours, Lev 23:10-11, etc. The learned have observed, that the very day of Pentecost was the same day on which God delivered the law from mount Sinai, Exo 19:11, as it was that on which the apostles were filled with the Holy Ghost, and the gospel was attended with remarkable success. Q. And what do you understand by their being all, on this occasion, with one accord in one place? A. In the original Greek there is no mention here made of place, but it is expressed eis to auto, which more properly signifies for this (purpose), to denote that they were all of one mind to celebrate the solemn feast of Pentecost, which was the object of their assembling. Q. And what do you conceive to be here meant by the words, Suddenly there came a sound from heaven, as of a rushing mighty wind, and it filled all the house where they were sitting? A. According to the literal sense of this miracle, these words are to be understood literally, because they were literally true; but according to the spiritual sense, they are to be understood spiritually, and are to be interpreted in agreement with the general law of interpretation, when applied to signs or symbols from heaven. According, therefore, to this law, by a sound from heaven, is to be understood the operation of a principle which affects the will, because sound applies itself to the sense of hearing, and hearing is a sense more subject to and connected with the will of man, as the sense of sight is more subject to and connected with the understanding. By a sound from heaven then, on this occasion, was intended to be expressed the operation of the divine love which prevails in heaven, and which was designed, according to this symbolical language, to prevail on earth, and therefore it is written, that it was as a rushing mighty wind, and filled all the house where they were sitting, because by a rushing mighty wind was figured the powerful influence by which it was felt and perceived; and by its filling all the house where they were sitting, is further denoted its taking entire possession of the minds of those who were assembled in the house. Q. But it is written, There appeared to them cloven tongues like as of a fire, and it sat upon each of them — how do you understand these words? A. These words again are figurative, and the things which they express, as the cloven tongues and the fire, are representative of spiritual things, agreeable to the mode observable in the sacred Scriptures throughout, of expressing heavenly principles by natural images. These images were indeed presented to the view of the apostles in the manner here described, but then it is to be observed that they involved in them spiritual realities, which corresponded with them, Thus, by the image of a tongue was figured its corresponding spiritual reality, which is nothing else but the thought, persuasion, or doctrine, which the tongue is instrumental in uttering; and thus too by the image of a fire, was expressed the principle to which fire corresponds, which is nothing else but the principle of love, whether it be good or evil. Q. Can you mention any passages in the sacred Scriptures which prove, that a tongue and that fire are applied according to the spiritual sense which you here speak of? A. That the tongue is applied to express spiritual thought, persuasion, or doctrine, is manifest from the following passages, Your tongue frames deceit, (Psa 50:14); and again, Their tongue walks through the earth, (Psa 75:9); and again, They have spoken against me with a lying tongue, (Psa 109:2); not to mention many other passages to the same purport, where it must be evident to every attentive reader, that the tongue is applied to express what the tongue utters, namely. a man’s ruling persuasions, or the doctrines which he conceives to be true, for how else can the tongue be said to frame deceit, to walk through the earth, and to be a lying tongue? That fire too is applied to express the principle of love, whether it be good or evil, is alike evident from the following passages, My heart was hot within me, while I was musing the fire kindled, (Psa 39:3); They have cast fire into your sanctuary, they have defiled the dwelling-place of your name to the ground, (Psa 74:7); and again, John the Baptist testifies concerning Jesus Christ, He shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with fire, (Mat 3:11); and again, Jesus Christ Himself says, I am come to send fire upon earth, and what will I if it be already kindled? (Luk 12:49), and again, Every one shall be salted with fire, (Mark 9:49); from all which passages it is most evident, that fire is applied in the sacred scriptures both in a good and bad sense, and that in a good sense it denotes heavenly love, and in a bad sense, infernal love. When therefore it is said, as above, that there appeared cloven tongues like as of fire, by this representation was intended to be figured the doctrine of heavenly truth which was to be taught from that period by the apostles, together with the warmth of heavenly love from which they would teach. Therefore the tongues are said to be cloven, because cloven has respect to the two-fold love from which they were to teach, namely. love towards god, and neighbourly love; in other words, it has respect to the two-fold doctrine which they were to publish to the world, namely. the doctrine of good, and the doctrine of truth, or the doctrine of charity, and the doctrine of faith. Q. And what do you understand by the concluding words of the verse, It sat upon each of them? A. By it is manifestly meant the fire before mentioned, and sitting is a term applied to the will or love of man, agreeable to what was shown in the explanation of a former miracle: by its sitting therefore upon each of them, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood, that the divine love, represented by the fire, conjoined itself with the love of those who are here signified by each of them, that is to say, with the teachers of heavenly doctrine in the new church about to be established. Q. But it follows, that they were all filled with the Holy Ghost, and began to speak with other tongues as the Spirit gave them utterance — what do you conceive to be the import of these words? A. By the holy ghost, or holy spirit, is to be understood the divine operation, or the divine principle proceeding from the divine humanity of Jesus Christ, which He calls the Comforter and Spirit of truth, and of which He says, When he, the Spirit of truth, is come, He will guide you into all truth; for He shall not speak of Himself, but whatever He shall hear, that shall He speak: He shall glorify me; for He shall receive of mine and shall show it to you, (John 16:13-14). The holy ghost therefore is manifestly the divine operation of Jesus Christ, for Jesus Christ says expressly, He shall take of mine, and shall show it to you; and in another place, I will not leave you comfortless; I will come to you, (John 14:18); and on another occasion it is written, that Jesus breathed upon them, and said, Receive you the Holy Ghost, (John 20:22);and in another place, The Holy Ghost was not yet (given), because Jesus was not yet glorified, (John 7:30). By being filled then with the Holy Ghost is to be understood, that they became the subjects of divine operation in such a sort, that their wills were submitted to the divine will, their wisdom to the divine wisdom, and all their intentions, purposes, thoughts, words and works were now on to be under the guidance and government of Jesus Christ ruling, directing and blessing them by His own spirit of love and wisdom. Q. And what do you understand by their speaking on this occasion with other tongues, as the Spirit gave them utterance? A. According to the letter or literal meaning of these words, by speaking with other tongues is to be understood the speaking different languages, or, as some conceive of the miracle, being understood by men of different languages, which amounts to the same thing, and is equally miraculous, since whether we say that the apostles spake different languages, or, (as appears far more probable), that what they said in their own language was heard by strangers in their language, the miracle is the same, and equally declares the mercy and omnipotence of a divine agent: but according to the spiritual meaning of these words, by speaking with other tongues is to be understood the teaching a new doctrine, namely. the doctrine of faith in the incarnate god, of repentance from sin, and of renovation in the gospel spirit, which doctrine is the distinguishing doctrine of Christianity, and therefore is here figured under the symbol of other tongues. This new doctrine, or this new tongue, is spoken of in another place, where Jesus Christ, after His resurrection, says to His disciples, These signs shall follow them that believe; in my name shall they cast out devils; they shall speak with new tongues, (Mark 16:17). It is also alluded to in the word of prophecy, where it is written, In that day shall five cities in the land of Egypt speak the language of Canaan, (Isa 19:18); and in another place, Then will I turn to the people a pure language, (Zep 3:9). This then is the sign which follows every true believer, namely. that he speaks with a new tongue; in other words, that he believes, professes, and practises a new doctrine, by acknowledging the sole and supreme divinity of Jesus Christ, together with the necessity of living according to all His holy precepts, by shunning all evils as sins against him, and by loving, thinking, and doing whatever is good, and wise, and beneficial, because it is from Him, and leads to an eternal conjunction of life and of blessedness with Him. Moreover, the true believer makes the above acknowledgment, and professes to make it, not by any power merely his own, but by a power imparted from above, or from the divine operation, and therefore he speaks with another or a new tongue, not in the pride and vanity of his own self-derived intelligence, but in the humility and meekness of entire submission to divine influence, thus, as the Spirit gives him utterance. Q. But it is written, that they were all amazed, and were in doubt, saying one to another, What means this? Others mocked, and said, These men are full of new wine. But Peter standing up with the eleven lifted up his voice, and said to them, You men of Judea, and all you that dwell in Jerusalem, be this known to you, and hearken to my words, for these are not drunken, as you suppose, seeing that it is but the third hour of the day; but this is that which was spoken by the prophet Joel, etc. — what instruction do you learn from these words? A. I learn from these words, that there have been, and perhaps always will be in the world, three different classes of persons, who are differently affected by extraordinary dispensations of the divine providence, or by what may be called supernatural events, one class wondering and doubting, another mocking, or deriding, whilst a third, like the apostle Peter in this history, confirms the probability and even certainty of such interpositions by the unerring testimony of the word of god, which not only bears witness to the credibility of miraculous agency, but also in some instances, as in the present, prepares mankind for the reception of it by the most accurate prediction. I am cautioned therefore by the above account, to take heed to my-self, how I decide on points of such magnitude and importance, and for this purpose to apply to the oracles of god for the direction of my judgment, that so, in cases of divine interference and operation, I may neither be found amongst those who doubt, or amongst those who mock, but rather amongst those, who, like Peter on the present occasion, justify the ways of god by a judicious appeal to the sure word of prophecy. Q. What then do you conceive to be the great end and design of the descent of the holy ghost, as announced by the extraordinary symbols above recorded? A. The miraculous descent of the holy ghost was a re-publication of the original record, by which the nature and quality of the life of man, and of his internal connection with his maker, was defined, where it is written, The lord god formed man of the dust of the ground, and breathed into his nostrils the breath of life, and man became a living soul, (Gen 2:7). For by this record it is evident, that man was created to be a receiver of life from god, and thus not to possess an inherent life of his own independent of his creator, but rather to possess a life, which he derived continually by influx from its divine source, and for the continuation of which he was every moment indebted to the divine bounty. This law then, which asserts man’s perpetual dependance on his maker for every spark of life, (or rather of lives) which he enjoys, whether it be the life of love in his will, or the life of wisdom in his understanding, or the life of both in his affections, thoughts, words, works, and delights, was re-published, and confirmed by divine authority, on the occasion of the miracle above recorded. For by the descent of the holy ghost, on the memorable day of Pentecost, the communication of life (or lives) from god, which had been closed and obstructed by sin and disorderly love, was intended to be re-opened, so that man might be again restored, not only to the privileges and blessings imparted to him at creation, but also to an increase of those privileges and blessings, in consequence of the redemption worked by the great saviour. For on this occasion, man was to be gifted with new and additional energies, because the light of the moon was to become as the light of the sun, and the light of the sun was to be seven-fold as the light of seven days, in the day that the Lord binds up the breach of His people, and heals the stroke of their wound, (Isa 30:26). Accordingly, Jesus Christ, the divine procurer and bestower of those energies, testifies on the occasion, I am come that they might have life, and that they might have it more abundantly, (John 10:20). When this incarnate god, then, had finished the great work of redemption, by the subjugation of the powers of darkness, and the glorification of the humanity which He had assumed, He now began, from His divine omnipotence, to verify His own declaration, by imparting to all believers that more abundant portion of life, which He came to communicate. Thus the eternal father glorified His name a second time, and by the same act provided for the purification, the reformation and regeneration of His penitent children. Q. What is it I am to understand by the eternal father glorifying His name, and by glorifying it a second time? A. By the father’s name is to be understood, in an eminent sense, the humanity which He assumed here on earth, and therefore Jesus Christ, in speaking of the glorification of His humanity, addresses Himself to the Father in these words, Father, glorify your name, (John 12:28); and by this name being glorified a first time is to be understood that the humanity was made divine, by being fully united with the divinity from whom it came forth; and by its being glorified a second time, is further to be understood its divine operation, by virtue of which it was to rule the church here on earth, as it ruled heaven, instructing, purifying, reforming, and regenerating the hearts and lives of all true believers, thus filling all things, as the apostle expresses it, by becoming the essential life and soul of all that is good and lovely, of all that is wise and intelligent, of all that is holy, pure, and blessed, in the church in general, and in every member of the church in particular. This second glorification of the humanity of the blessed Jesus had been before announced by a voice from heaven in those remarkable words, I have both glorified it, and will glorify it again, (John 12:28). By this second glorification therefore of the great redeemer is to be understood, not only that His humanity was made divine, and thus became the god of heaven and earth, but also that all influx of heavenly life, or, what amounts to the same, of heavenly love, wisdom and blessedness, was to proceed from that divine humanity, and was to be received and acknowledged in the church accordingly. In speaking therefore of the descent of the holy ghost, Jesus Christ says expressly, in agreement with the above idea, He shall glorify Me, for He shall receive of mine and shall show it unto you, (John 16:14). Thus the blessed Jesus cannot be seen in the fulness of His glory, until He be seen by the eye of faith, as He was seen of old by the beloved apostle, in, the midst of the seven candle sticks, (Rev 1:12-13, Rev 1:20); in other words, until he be seen in the inmost centre of what the seven candlesticks represent, namely. the seven churches, or the hearts and lives of all true believers, purifying them from sin, and raising them to a blessed conjunction with Himself by renovation and regeneration, Q. And what am I to understand by what you further said, that by the same act He provided for the purification, the reformation and regeneration of His penitent children? A. This follows as a necessary consequence of the glorification above spoken of, for until Jesus Christ be acknowledged in His divine operation as the alone source of all heavenly life, that is to say, of all heavenly love, heavenly wisdom, and heavenly joy in His church, and until man thus makes confession from the heart that his life is not properly his own, but derived perpetually from another, thus that neither good nor evil are properly his own, only so far as he makes them so, by ascribing them to himself, it is impossible that he can either be purified, reformed, or regenerated, since all purification, reformation and regeneration imply the acknowledgement of divine agency, and particularly of the operation which Jesus Christ exercises in human minds by His holy spirit. But no sooner is this acknowledgment made in the humility and sincerity of a penitent bosom, than all the blessings and graces of purification of reformation, and of regeneration presently follow, because then man begins to acknowledge a divine power continually present and operative in the centre of his own life, and his religion, in such case, consists in bringing every affection, thought, word, and work, into subjection to that power, that so he may be an instrument in its hands of effecting divine purposes, claiming nothing to himself but a feeling sense of his own infirmities and defilements, and ascribing the kingdom, the power and the glory to Him to whom it properly belongs. The great evil therefore of all evils, to which the human mind is exposed, is the inclination to yield to the delusive suggestion of the tempter of old, You shall be as gods, (Gen 3:5); in other words, you shall have an independent life of your own, subject to no control from another, and acknowledging no source but itself. For in whatever mind this suggestion prevails, sin, and death, and misery must inevitably attend it. On the other hand, the good of all goods, or that which conducts to the acquisition and enjoyment of every good, is the inclination to admit and to act upon the sacred and edifying truth contained in those words of the great redeemer, I am the vine, you are the branches, (John 15:5); by the humble grateful acknowledgment, that the life of man is at all times a derived life, and that thus the connexion between him and his maker is like that which subsists between a tree and its branches. In other words, it is a connection worked by the perpetual communication of a vital principle, so that as a tree constantly supplies its branches with renewed life and vigour, without which the branches could not subsist, in like manner the father of mercies constantly supplies His children with his vital spirit, and if His children are deprived of this supply, they then are cast forth as branches, and withered, and men gather them, and cast them into the fire, and they are burned, (John 15:6). Q. What then is the general instruction which you derive from the above miracle? A. From the remarkable signs and symbols manifested on this occasion, such as the sound as of a rushing mighty wind, and the cloven tongues like as of fire which sat upon each of them, I am instructed in the language of representatives, which is a heavenly language, expressing spiritual realities under the most significant natural images, and inculcating thus the important lesson, that between spiritual things and natural there is an exact agreement established at creation, by virtue of which agreement the latter are expressive of the former, and are applied accordingly throughout the sacred Scriptures. I learn further, from the descent of the holy ghost announced by this miracle, to adore with unfeigned thankfulness the mercy and goodness of my heavenly father, who, when He had glorified the humanity which He assumed here upon earth made that humanity the medium of communication with His children here below. In that divine humanity therefore I behold, and rejoice in beholding, the blessed source of all spiritual life, love, holiness, and benediction which god can communicate, and man can receive. I will no longer therefore doubt respecting the divine operation, still less will I be of the number of those who mock on the interesting occasion, but I will rather regard the miraculous descent of the divine spirit as the completion of the counsels of the eternal, the accomplishment of the sure word of prophecy, and a security to the true believer, that he is never for a moment forsaken by his heavenly father, but is ever attended by His divine presence, power and operation in the inmost centre of his own bosom. Above all, I am resolved to take heed to myself, that this holy guest may be ever pleased with His internal residence in my heart and life, for which blessed purpose I will pray and labour earnestly, through His divine aid, that all inordinate and defiled love may be ever removed from me, and that in its place may be implanted the pure love of god and of my neighbour. Thus may I humbly hope, that the blessed Jesus will perform in me the same circle of benediction which He performed for His church when here upon earth; and that therefore after instructing, purifying, reforming, and raising me up to Himself in His resurrection and ascension-glory, He may finally descend, and by His divine operation fill and sanctify all my purposes, affections, thoughts, words and works, that so I, like the apostles of old, may be filled with the holy ghost. amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 38: 01.37. CONCLUSION ======================================================================== Conclusion. Q. JESUS CHRIST says to His disciples before His death, "Verily, verily I say to you, He that believes on me, the works that I do shall he do also, and greater works than these shall he do, because I go to my Father, (John 14:12); and again, He says after His resurrection, These signs shall follow them that believe; in my name shall they cast out devils; they shall speak with new tongues; they shall take up serpents; and if they drink any deadly thing, it shall not hurt them; they shall lay hands on the sick and they shall recover, (Mark 16:17-18). — how do you understand these words, and what is the lesson which they inculcate? A. I understand these words as inculcating on every true believer the absolute necessity of co-operating with Jesus Christ in the great general work of his salvation, which general work includes in it several particular works, called by Jesus Christ greater works than what He Himself did, and distinguished by the several striking characters of casting out devils, speaking with new tongues, taking up serpents, escaping hurt from drinking any deadly thing, and laying hands on the sick, so as to restore them to health. Q. Do you conceive then that man is called to cast out devils, to speak with new tongues, to take up serpents, etc? A. Yes; for Jesus Christ says expressly of every true believer, The works that I do shall he do also, and that these signs shall follow them that believe. Q. And in what sense do you conceive those works are to be done by the true believer? A. The true believer casts out devils, when he opposes and subdues evil in himself, for all evils are in close connection with devils; again, he speaks with a new tongue, when he acknowledges Christian doctrine, especially the doctrine which teaches that Jesus Christ is god, and that evil ought not to be done, because it is opposed to Him and to His life. Again, he takes up serpents, when he elevates his sensual principle, by compelling it to regard an eternal ends. Again, he drinks deadly things and they do not hurt him, when he admits false persuasions into his understanding, but does not suffer them to influence his will and life. Lastly, he lays hands on the sick and they recover, when he applies the truth, which he believes, to the removal of all his natural infirmities, disorders and corruptions. Q. And what do you mean by co-operating with Jesus Christ in these works? A. Man co-operates with Jesus Christ, when he believes the words of Jesus Christ, Without me you can do nothing, (John 15:5); and when he nevertheless exerts himself in the discharge of all his duties freely, as if all depended on his own exertions, yet under the acknowledgement that all his power and exertion is from that great god and saviour. For the conduct of man in regard to saving works is of a three-fold character, since he may, first, either trust to the almighty to do every thing for him without doing any thing for himself, or, secondly, he may depend upon his own exertions without trusting to the almighty, or, thirdly, he may combine his own exertions with divine power, and thus co-operate with that power. Q. And which of these rules of conduct do you think the safest, and most agreeable to the order of heaven? A. I should think the last, because in pursuing the first of those rules, man makes himself a mere machine, and in pursuing the second, he becomes his own god, by resting his salvation on his own powers independent of the power of god, the fatal consequence of which is, that his own activities only tend to separate him more and more from the blessed life of god. Accordingly Jesus Christ, with a view to secure man against the danger of both these rules of conduct, delivered to mankind this important injunction, Abide in me, and I in you, (John 15:4), by which He meant to teach the necessity of a reciprocal conjunction of Himself with man, and of man with Himself, in the discharge of every duty, before that duty can be of any avail in promoting man’s salvation. The law therefore of co-operation with Jesus Christ in the performance of religious duties is grounded in the grand design of all true religion, which is to effect man’s conjunction with his maker, since without co-operation it is impossible that such conjunction can ever be accomplished. Q. Do you conceive then that co-operation with Jesus Christ is necessary in discharging the duty of prayer? A. Yes; I conceive it to be so necessary, that man cannot properly pray without it, since without it, all his prayers are but mere sounds of words, which may more properly be called, Saying a prayer, than praying. For all true prayer implies, not only the sound of words, but heavenly affection and heavenly thought, and how can man possess or exercise either heavenly affection or heavenly thought without assistance from above, or from that divine Being who has said, Without me you can do nothing? Unless man therefore in his prayers looks up to Jesus Christ as the author and giver of heavenly affection and thought, his prayers must of necessity be mere sounds of the voice, and so far from procuring him any blessing, they will but separate him further from its divine source. Thus it is an eternal law of profitable prayer, that it shall not only be directed to Jesus Christ, but also be acknowledged to be from Him. Q. And do you conceive that the same cooperation is necessary in keeping the commandments of the decalogue? A. Yes; for the commandments of the decalogue are laws of spiritual, of civil, and of moral life, being designed of god to effect His conjunction with man, and man’s conjunction with Him in the several degrees of man’s life, which may be called spiritual, civil, and moral. If man then does not co-operate with Jesus Christ in keeping these divine and heavenly laws, he cannot then keep them completely, but only in part, for if he does not co-operate with Jesus Christ in keeping them, he must then keep them, if he keeps them at all, from mere worldly and temporal motives, such as the fear of human laws, the loss of reputation, etc. thus he will keep them as moral and civil laws, but not as spiritual laws, and the terrible consequence will be that not regarding an eternal end in them, that is to say, not abstaining from evil because it is sin against god, consequently not regarding god and His eternal kingdom, these heaven-born laws will effect no conjunction between god and himself, and no radical purification from his natural evils, as they were designed to do, but will leave him as far from god and his life, and as deeply immersed in sin as if he never kept them at all. This was the case, we find, with the young man in the gospel, who had thus kept the moral and civil part of the divine law, but not the spiritual part at the same time, by respecting god in the other parts, of whom therefore it is written, that Jesus beholding him, loved him, and said to him, One thing you lack, (Mark 10:17-23). This one thing lacking was co-operation with Jesus Christ in the rejection of evils, and if this one thing be lacking amongst Christians at this day, the necessary consequence must be, that the commandments will be deprived of their purifying and saving efficacy, so that although man, as to the letter of the law, abstains from murder, from adultery, from theft, and from false witness, yet, not abstaining from these evils in the spirit. or because they are sins against god, he will still be a spiritual murderer, adulterer, thief, and false witness. Q. What then do you suppose Jesus Christ means by the greater works, which the true believer is to perform? A. The greatest of all works, and of all miracles, properly considered, is done by the true believer, when he prostrates himself before his heavenly father, in devout prayer, and keeps the commandments of the decalogue according to the internal spirit both of the lord’s prayer and His precepts, and in co-operation with Him; for in this work both god and man are employed conjointly, since it cannot be effected by either singly. In this work too are combined all the miracles which Jesus Christ ever wrought, when understood according to their real, proper, and spiritual meaning; for by this work, the blind receive their sight, and the lame walk, the lepers are cleansed, and the deaf hear, the dead are raised up, and the poor have the gospel preached to them, (Mat 11:5). Thus by a right use of the lord’s prayer, and a right observance of the divine precepts of the Decalogue, all the infirmities, disorders, defilements, and miseries of man are worked upon and removed, and since these effects are produced by Jesus Christ in His glorified humanity, and by man conjointly, therefore they are called greater works than those performed by Jesus Christ here on earth before his glorification, and without the co-operation of man. Accordingly the reason assigned by Jesus Christ for these greater works is expressed in these remarkable words, Because I go to the Father, which is the same thing as if He had said, Because my humanity will be made divine, and I shall thus be enabled to operate on my children with seven-fold energy, whilst they, in their turn, will be enabled to co-operate with Me to seven-fold advantage, by the reception of a seven-fold increase of faith, and love, and joy. Q. What then is the general instruction which you learn from all the lord’s miracles? A. I learn, in the first place, that the blessed Jesus, from His humanity now made divine, and by the instrumentality of His holy word, is ever willing and purposing to accomplish in the souls of men the same divine works, or miraculous operations, which He accomplished in their bodies, when here on earth. Thus it is still His divine will and purpose, by means of His holy word, to instruct mankind in the knowledge of the eternal truth, which is to deliver them from blindness, by opening their eyes to the blessing of sight. In like manner, it is His will and purpose, by the same means, to render them obedient to the truth, which is to open their ears; also to enable them to profess the truth, which is to unloose their tongues; likewise to dispose them to live according to the truth, which is to make the lame walk; and again, to purify them from their disorderly loves, which is to cure the leper and the sick of the palsy, etc.; lastly, to deliver them from the power of sin, and restore them to the new life of His most holy love and wisdom, which is to raise them from the dead, and elevate them in ascension-glory to conjunction of life with Himself. In the second place, I learn what are the works which I myself ought to accomplish, because Jesus Christ has said of every true believer, The works that I do shall he do also, (John 14:12). It is therefore my duty, as it is my happiness to endeavour to cure my natural blindness, my natural deafness, and my natural dumbness, by reading, meditating on, and practising the word of god. Again, it is my duty, as it is my happiness, to submit all my natural evils, infirmities and disorders to the healing virtue of the eternal truth, that so the leprosy, palsy, and all other diseases which I have contracted through sin, may be cleansed and cured, and all my faculties both of body and mind restored to their proper health and order. Lastly, it is my duty, as it is my happiness, to die daily to my natural evils of an inordinate self-love and the love of the world, that so I may be raised up in resurrection and ascension-glory to the pure love of god, and of my neighbour. In the third place I learn, that to effect these blessed purposes, I must co-operate with Jesus Christ, because this incarnate god has said of those who believe, In my name shall they cast out devils, etc. thus instructing all Christians, that without Him [or His name] they can do nothing, and that therefore they ought to look up to Him with humble dependance on His divine aid, in the performance of every duty, yet at the same time to perform it freely as of themselves. Thus, whether they read the word of god, or are instant with god in prayer, or are employed in worldly callings, or are engaged in combat with their passions and corruptions, or through that combat are elevated to the joy and glory of spiritual victory, they ought in all things to depend on god more than on themselves, yet not so to depend on god, as to neglect their own exertions under that dependance, I am resolved therefore from henceforth to take Jesus Christ and His works for my model, and for the model of my own works, and recollecting that I am called to do the same, and even greater works, I will so endeavour to imitate His blessed example, that He may again live in me the life which He once lived here below, and that I may live ever in Him, and that thus joining my will with His will, my wisdom with His wisdom, and my operation with His operation, as He is disposed to join His with mine, I may recover gradually from all my natural blindness, deafness, dumbness, lameness, palsy, leprosy, and every other infirmity and uncleanness, until I am restored to that pure and happy state of spiritual health and vigour, in which I shall be enabled to sing the blessed song, The Lord is my rock and my fortress and my deliverer; my God, my strength, in whom I will trust; my buckler, and the horn of my salvation, and my strong tower, (Psa 18:2). amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 39: 01.38. PRAYER ======================================================================== Prayer O ALMIGHTY and merciful father, who have been pleased to manifest Thyself to Your sinful creatures, as a man, by assuming a humility here below, and afterwards glorifying it, or making it one with Thyself, for the purpose of giving Your creatures continual access to You, we desire to praise and glorify Your holy name for this Your gracious condescension, and most adorable manifestation of Thyself. We implore at the same time the aid of Your holy spirit, to open our eyes to a right and edifying view of the wondrous works, which You were pleased to perform, during Your sojournings here below, for the benefit and instruction of Your church. Enable us thus to see that all the miracles worked by You on the bodies of men, for the removal of bodily disease and infirmity, were striking representative figures of the infinitely more important miracles which You are ever disposed to work in our souls or spirits. And may this consideration lead us ever to apply to You in Your glorified humanity, for Thy divine and healing virtue, under every pressure of our manifold spiritual infirmities and disorders. Be You our restorer from blindness to sight; from our natural deafness to the faculty of hearing; from our natural dumbness to the faculty of speaking; from the leprosy of polluted and perverted affections, to purity and rectitude; from the palsy of obstructed spiritual life, to its free circulation; from the death and grave of our natural evils and errors, to resurrection-life and ascension-glory, through the communication of Your most adorable love and wisdom! May we thus be taught humbly and gratefully to acknowledge Thee, not only as our best friend, but as our most skilful physician, and not only as the primary cause and source of original life, but as the divine repairer of all its breaches, as our redeemer from sin, and as the divine parent of new and heavenly life in us! Enable us thus to see and to perceive, that of Yours infinite love and mercy You are ever disposed to perform the same works at this day in every individual mind, which You were pleased to perform in Your church, in the days of Your divine ministration here below, by instructing, healing, feeding, strengthening, purifying it, and finally, by raising it from the death of sin to an eternal conjunction with You in the love and the life of righteousness. And may this consideration lead us ever to attend to Your divine presence and operation, and not only so, but also to co-operate with You in all Your mighty works , from a full conviction that such co-operation can alone qualify us either to discern Your works, or to be made sensible of the inestimable blessings involved in them. Thus may we humbly hope to become of the happy number of those of whom You have been pleased to declare, He that believes in Me, the works that I do shall he do also, and greater works than these shall he do, because I go to the Father: And thus too being successively taught, and led, and healed, and nourished, and raised from the dead by Your mercy and omnipotence, we will give You thanks for ever, and will show forth Your praise from generation to generation. amen. Our Father, which art in heaven, etc. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 40: 01.39. TRANSLATIONS FROM ORIGINAL TEXT ======================================================================== Translations from Original Text OriginalThis versionInstances abidethabides1 acceptationacceptance1 acknowledgmentacknowledgement18 admissiveaccepting3 advertedreferred6 appertainingbelonging2 arightright1 artare11 ascendencyascendancy1 bearethbears1 believethbelieves8 betwixtbetween2 bindethbinds1 blasphemethblasphemes1 brakebreak3 bringethbrings5 canstcan2 comethcomes11 commixedmixed1 connexionconnection33 coverethcovers1 criethcries2 deceivethdeceives1 didstdid3 doethdoes5 DostDo2 dothdoes19 DothDoes4 draughtdrain6 drinkethdrinks1 dwellethdwells1 endurethendures2 EzechEzek1 fallethfalls1 fartherfurther4 findethfinds1 forgivethforgives1 framethframes1 from hencefrom here1 fulfilfulfill1 fulfilmentfulfillment1 fulnessfullness9 gatherethgathers1 gavestgave1 goethgoes5 hasthave16 hatethhates1 hathhas34 healethheals3 henceforthnow on21 hitherhere7 howsoeverhowever6 intercourseexchange1 judgmentjudgement4 lackestlack1 liethlies1 like untolike5 livethlives1 makethmakes1 marvellousmarvelous1 meanethmeans1 nighnear3 pleasethpleases1 proceedethproceeds1 raimentclothing6 remainethremains1 rememberethremembers1 saithsays27 seekethseeks1 shaltshall5 shewshow1 shinethshines1 shouldestshould4 sittethsits1 sleepethsleeps2 spakespoke8 steppethsteps1 stinkethstinks1 stripesblows2 supdine6 takethtakes3 theeyou49 TheeYou10 they whichthey who1 thineyour8 ThineYours1 thinkestthink1 thouyou57 ThouYou30 thyselfyourself3 thyyour54 ThyYour22 to-daytoday1 untoto143 viznamely48 walkethwalks1 wastwere2 whatsoeverwhatever10 whensoeverwhenever22 wheresoeverwherever2 whosoeverwhoever3 WhosoWhoever1 wiltwill8 WiltWill2 worshippedworshiped8 worshipperworshiper1 worshippingworshiping1 wouldestwould2 wroughtworked26 yeyou42 YeYou4 not meetnot worthy2 (If you disagree with these translations, please email IJT@biblemeanings.info) ======================================================================== CHAPTER 41: 02.00. THE PARABLES OF JESUS CHRIST EXPLAINED. ======================================================================== THE PARABLES of JESUS CHRIST EXPLAINED. BY THE REV. J. CLOWES, M.A. LATE RECTOR OF ST. JOHN’S COLLEGE, MANCHESTER, AND FELLOW OF TRINITY COLLEGE, CAMBRIDGE. Whoso readeth let him understand.- Mat 24:15. A NEW EDITION. 1851. LONDON : PRINTED AT D. BATTEN’S OFFICE, CLAPHAM COMMON. THE PARABLES EXPLAINED. ***** This module is brought to you by www.DoctorDaveT.com For more eSword modules that are conservative evangelical Bible believing Christ honoring make sure you stop by www.DoctorDaveT.com! We have hundreds of modules easily organized by topics, like these: Old Testament Exposition (topic modules) New Testament Exposition (topic modules) Doctrinal Theology (topic modules) Commentary Modules Dictionary Modules and a whole lot more! Please visit www.DoctorDaveT.com! Dave ======================================================================== CHAPTER 42: 02.000. PREFACE TO THE ESWORD EDITION ======================================================================== Preface to the e-Sword Edition When I first discovered the amazing power of e-Sword, I was connected to the internet with a 56k fax modem. My enthusiasm for the program and its plethora of resources motivated me to stay up all night downloading its riches. I spent the next several days exploring the amazing variety of study material. As a busy preacher, I’ve tried to assemble a classic research library inexpensively. E-Sword immediately added many valuable assets that I hadn’t yet purchased; and those resources that e-Sword duplicated were much easier and faster to use than the paper versions. Since that wonderful first week, I’ve discovered many more treasures through Google searches. Then one day I realized that I owed a debt. I made a contribution to Rick Meyers (Rick - you are the modern day Gutenberg; should the Lord not return in the near future like I believe He will, you will do for Bible study the next 100 years what Gutenberg did in the 1500’s), and then started looking for public domain resources to convert to .topx files. And so my personal journey has come full circle: from the excitement of discovering e-Sword to the excitement of creating .topx files for others. Like Rick quotes from Mat 10:8, "freely ye have received, freely give." Thank you, Michelle, Jeremiah, Isaiah & Micah, for understanding my debt and graciously tolerating my near compulsive computer use for hours on end. My thanks to the creator of e-Sword, Rick Meyers - www.e-sword.net. Thank you, John Clowes, for converting your studies to eternal print. Thanks to the nice folks at http://biblemeanings.info for making this ebook available. And of course - most importantly - my thanks to the Lord Jesus who saved my soul for all eternity. This Edition There have been no changes to Clowes’ work, except for the following: Scripture references have been converted to Scripture hyperlinks using the "Format Scripture ToolTip." A few obvious Scripture reference errors have been corrected, as well as some obvious spelling errors. The copy and paste process has unfortunately removed most of the italicized print. While the words have not been changed, some of Clowes’ emphasis may be missing. It is with regret that I have not taken the time to correct this. The sense is still accurate. [By the way - would you understand this paragraph without italics? Of course!] Also, the italicizing of the foreign words have been lost. It is my hope that the reader will be able to follow the flow regardless of these flaws. They - the flaws - are mine, not Clowes’. I am quite sure my edition of Clowes’ work is rather imperfect. I pray that, nonetheless, it will be productively useful in the study of God’s Word. Finally Feel free to contact me with comments. You can reach me via e-mail at DoctorDaveT@gmail.com Also, if you convert a classic resource to e-Sword .topx file (or .dctx, .cmtx, etc.), send me your work! I’d love to utilize it! Visit my website at www.DoctorDaveT.com for hundreds of other conservative, Bible believing Bible study modules - just like this one. May the Lord bless you as study His word. Dr. David S. Thomason Florida, USA 2011 ======================================================================== CHAPTER 43: 02.01. MAT_7:24-28 -- THE WISE AND THE FOOLISH BUILDER ======================================================================== Mat 7:24-28 -- The Wise and the Foolish Builder Therefore, whoever hears these sayings of mine, and does them, I will liken him to a wise man, who built his house upon a rock; and the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell not: for it was founded upon a rock. And every one that hears these sayings of mine, and does them not, shall be like a foolish man, who built his house upon the sand; and the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell: and great was the fall of it. By the sayings of Jesus Christ are to be understood the words which he spoke, and which contained the whole of his Divine Love and Wisdom in close conjunction. Thus the sayings of Jesus Christ are to be regarded as the complex of all divine good and divine truth, intending to form in man the divine image and likeness, by opening in him the kingdom of Heaven, by purifying him from all his natural evils, by restoring him to the form and order of Heaven, and by finally leading him to an eternal conjunction of love and of life with the God of Heaven. A distinction is made in the above parable between hearing and doing. Let us examine the ground and meaning of this. By hearing the sayings of Jesus Christ is to be understood their reception in the memory and understanding, where they appear and are stored up under the form of truths; but by doing them, is to be understood their reception in the will, or love, and their consequent operation on the thoughts, words, and works of the devout receiver of them. Thus hearing the sayings of Jesus Christ denotes their admission into the external man or mind only, by virtue of which the external thoughts, words, and works are in a measure directed and controlled; whilst doing the sayings of Jesus Christ denotes their admission into the internal man or mind, by virtue of which admission, interior evils are seen and combatted, interior goods are manifested and exalted, and thus the whole man, both internal and external, is brought into submission to, and conformity with the divine love and wisdom. All the comparisons applied by Jesus Christ are to be regarded not as mere comparisons only, but as agreements or correspondences between the things compared; which agreements or correspondences were established at creation, and are the results of the relationship subsisting between things spiritual and things natural, in consequence of the derivation of the latter from the former, and thus of their constant connection with each other. The comparisons, therefore, applied by Jesus Christ, differ from other comparisons principally in this respect, that they are comparisons, or agreements and correspondences, between things natural and things spiritual; whereas other comparisons are comparisons only between things natural, which bear some kind of resemblance to each other. When Jesus Christ therefore says, I will liken him to a wise man which built his house upon a rock, he means to declare the existence, not only of a similitude between the two cases, but of a real agreement or correspondence, and this of such a nature, that, when considered in reality and truth, the things compared are the same. Thus, in the present instance, the things compared are a person who hears the sayings of Jesus Christ and does them, and a person who builds his house upon a rock. When, therefore, Jesus Christ says, that these persons are like each other, he intended to mark, by the most significant terms, the proper character of the person who hears and does these sayings, and to say, not only that he resembles a person who builds his house on a rock, but also that he really and virtually is such a person, which will be further evident from the consideration of what is to be understood by building a house upon a rock. By the house here spoken of, is manifestly to be understood a spiritual house, which is no other than the interior and exterior mind of man, who is called a house in consequence of being the habitation, not only of the man himself, that is to say, of his supreme love, with all its derivative affections and thoughts, but also of the Lord himself, with his divine love and wisdom, together with all the angelic host, who constitute his eternal kingdom. This house is said to be built upon a rock, whenever man opens his mind to the reception of the divine truth of the Most High, and especially to that highest and most sublime truth, the manifestation of God in the flesh, or his revelation of himself in the Divine Humanity of Jesus Christ. For in the Sacred Scriptures all truth is called a rock, by reason of its consistency and durability, and the term is applied pre-eminently to Jesus Christ as being the Supreme Truth, agreeably to his own declaration, where he says, I am the way, the truth, and the life (John 14:6). The first step, therefore, towards building this spiritual house is to believe in Jesus Christ as the Supreme God, and thus, as the source and fountain of all divine truth, and the building is afterwards advanced and perfected, in proportion as man forms his mind and his life in agreement with the precepts of Jesus Christ, and especially of that most edifying and purifying precept, to shun all evil as sin against that Great and Holy God. But it is said that the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house. The rain, the floods, and the winds, here spoken of, are to be understood spiritually, or according to a spiritual idea, because they are here mentioned as beating upon a spiritual house; and by rain, according to a spiritual idea, is meant the assault of false principles and persuasions in their opposition to the truths and precepts of the revealed wisdom of the Most High; by floods, a destructive accumulation of those principles and persuasions; and by winds, the infernal influences with which they are in continual connection, and from which they derive all their activity, force, and overwhelming operation. By rain, indeed, and by wind, when applied in a good sense, as the terms frequently are applied in the Sacred Scripture, is to be understood the descent of the heavenly doctrine of truth and wisdom, operative under the influence of the power and spirit of the Most High; but in the present instance the two terms are manifestly applied in an opposite, or bad sense, and accordingly denote, as was said above, the assault and operation of false and destructive principles and persuasions infused by the powers of darkness. The term beating, has relation to the assault made by false principles and persuasions against the principles and persuasions of heavenly truth in the human mind, and therefore it relates to a state of trial or temptation, which is necessary for all to undergo, before the principles and persuasions of heavenly love and wisdom, or, what is the same thing, of heavenly goodness and truth, can be fully fixed and confirmed in the mind and life of man. It is afterwards said of the house, when thus beaten by the rain, the floods, and the winds, that it fell not, for it was founded upon a rock. By falling, applied to a spiritual house, is to be understood the separation or disjunction of the house, and of all things contained in it, from the divine love and wisdom of Jesus Christ: for when this is the case, the house then of necessity falls, since it is then placed only under the rule and government of selfish and worldly love, which love, in respect to heavenly love, is grovelling and debased, and destitute besides of all order, strength, and consistency necessary for the support of a spiritual building. When, therefore, the house, as in the present case, is said not to fall, the expression was intended to denote, that what is signified by the house was still kept in conjunction with the divine love and wisdom of Jesus Christ, and consequently, that the trial, or temptation, signified by the beating of the rain, the floods and the winds, had produced no other effect than to strengthen the foundations of the house. For such is the nature of all opposition from the powers of darkness, when exercised on the well-disposed mind, that, instead of destroying, it strengthens the heavenly principles which it assaults, by bringing those principles more into exercise, by leading man into deeper humiliation, and by thus elevating him to a closer conjunction with the powers of heaven and their God than could otherwise have been effected. The Almighty, therefore, permits such opposition on account of the end which is accomplished by it, and which is no other than the more radical purification and regeneration of his children, agreeably to his own declaration, where he says, You shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy (John 16:20). By the rock, as was shown above, is to be understood the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, or the Incarnate God, together with all the truth, or wisdom, which proceeds from him; and the nature of man’s connection with this Lord and Saviour is such, that if he be wise to open his mind to the reception of him, and of the heavenly principles of life and love which proceed from him, by renouncing all the evils which are in opposition to those principles, he then connects himself with the Omnipotence of that Great God and Saviour, and thus cannot perish, since none is able to pluck him out of that Saviour’s hand (John 10:28). Whenever, then, man is wise to build his house upon this rock, he may console himself with the blessed conviction, that it can never fall, but is that house not built with hands, of which it said, that it is eternal in the heavens (2Co 5:1). We have now considered what is meant by the sayings of Jesus Christ, and what by hearing and doing them. The meaning, therefore, of hearing and not doing them is plain: but we have yet to seek the reason why the man, who hears them, and does them not, is like a foolish man who built his house upon the sand. He is like a foolish man, because he is a foolish man, agreeably to what is said above concerning the Lord’s comparisons; and therefore the Lord would here teach that this is the essence of all folly, to hear his sayings and not to do them; in other words, to acquire speculative knowledge of holy things in the memory and understanding, without suffering that knowledge to influence the life and conversation. And this folly Jesus Christ further marks by the significant expression of building the house upon the sand. For sand, we know, is a strong substance, without coherence and consistency, and therefore is an exact representative figure of all that truth in the human mind which is not reduced to practice, by being allowed to govern and control the love and the life, in which case, being deprived of the heavenly conjoining spirit of love to the Lord, and neighbourly love, it has nothing to give it consistence and coherence, consequently, nothing to give it strength and stability. As, therefore, a material house must soon fall, if it has no other foundation for its security than material sand, in like manner, a spiritual house must soon fall, if it has no other security than spiritual sand; in other words, if it be built on mere speculative truths, or knowledges, which, being separated from heavenly life and love, are of consequence disjoined from each other, and therefore incapable of supplying a firm and durable foundation. It is accordingly said, that when the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house, it fell, and great was the fall of it, to denote, that in time of spiritual trial or temptation, truth alone cannot stand; in other words, that the man of the church cannot be supported under spiritual conflicts, only so far as knowledge is formed into life, speculation brought into practice, and the whole man thus, both internal and external, restored to an eternal connection and conjunction of life with the divine fountain of all good and truth, whose high and holy name is Jesus Christ. The fall is called a great fall, to distinguish it from lesser falls, and to teach the edifying and awful lesson, that the greatest fall to which the spiritual house of man is exposed, results not from ignorance, but from the knowledge of heavenly truth received in his understanding, when it is not suffered to operate and produce its proper fruits in the will and life, by purifying man from all his natural evils, and restoring him both internally and externally to the love and the practice of heavenly good. Jesus Christ therefore says, in another place, If the light that is in you be darkness, how great is that darkness! (Mat 6:23). to instruct us, that great darkness does not result from mere ignorance, or the want of spiritual light, but that it results from spiritual life itself, when it is either perverted, suffocated, or rejected, - in consequence of not applying it to the purposes for which it was given, namely, purification, reformation, and regeneration of the heart and life. The same truth is again inculcated in these words of Jesus Christ, That servant, which knew his Lord’s will, and prepared not himself, neither did according to his will, shall be beaten with many blows. But he that knew not, and did commit things worthy of blows, shall be beaten with few blows (Luk 12:47-48) From this parable then, we learn, in the first place, the distinguishing marks and characters of wisdom and folly, and what it is which properly constitutes the essence of each. For we are taught that the proper mark and character of wisdom, is both to hear and to do the sayings of Jesus Christ, whereas the proper mark and character of folly is, to hear only, and not to do. A man therefore cannot properly be called wise, merely because he has much knowledge, or because he abounds in the science even of things the most heavenly and sublime, but he becomes wise in proportion as he suffers such knowledge and science to elevate his love and affections, to raise him above his corruptions, and to conjoin him with the Father of his Being, the High and Holy God. Neither can he be properly called foolish on account of any defect in knowledge or science, but he becomes foolish by the possession of knowledge or science unpractised, in consequence of not suffering it to convert him from the love of evil to the love of good, and thus to influence his life and conversation. We are instructed yet further by the above parable, that in building our spiritual house, we ought both to hear and to do the words of Jesus Christ, and thus to lay the foundations on a rock; in other words, we ought to believe in the incarnate God, and to form our life in obedience to his heavenly precepts of love and charity, in which case our house can never fall, because it will ever be kept in connection with the Eternal, and under the support of his Omnipotence; whereas, if we only hear, and do not, we shall then build our house on the sand, and when trial or temptation assaults us, it will fall, and its fall will be the greater, because we knew our duty and did not practise it. Let us endeavour, therefore, from now on, to acquire the blessed character of true wisdom, and for this purpose, both to learn what our Heavenly Father requires of us, and also to practise it, that so, when the hour of trial and temptation comes, we may stand steadfast and unmoved, and may enter into all the comfort of the blessed declaration, It fell not, for it was founded on a rock. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 44: 02.02. MAT_9:16-18 -- THE PARABLE OF A PIECE OF NEW CLOTH ======================================================================== Mat 9:16-18 -- The Parable of a Piece of New Cloth On An Old Garment, &c. No man puts a piece of new cloth upon an old garment; for that which is put in to fill it up takes from the garment, and the rent is made worse. Neither do men put new wine into old bottles, else the bottles break, and the wine runs out, and the bottles perish; but they put new wine into new bottles, and both are preserved. Jesus Christ here speaks by correspondence, and thus represents spiritual things under natural images, agreeably to His usual mode of speaking. The word new, is, in the original Greek, unwrought; and since cloth, according to its spiritual correspondence, signifies truth, inasmuch as it is applied to cover, defend, and keep warm the body, as truth is applied to cover, defend, and keep warm the spirit of man; therefore, by the un-worked cloth, here spoken of, is signified the truth of the Gospel, or the spiritual truth of the Christian church, as opposed to the old garment, or old truth, of the Jewish or representative church. Jesus Christ, therefore, here teaches, and warns his hearers of, the difficulty and the danger of imbibing the truths of the new Christian church, whilst the truths of the old or Jewish church, which were external and representative truths, were suffered to prevail, and to influence the persuasions and the conduct of their adherents. He says, therefore, that that which is put in to fill it up takes from the garment, because the truths of the new Christian church, which are internal spiritual truths, if mixed with those of the old representative church, rob them of their importance and influence, on which account, He adds, the rent is made worse, since there is no agreement between the precepts and commandments delivered by the Lord himself, and the statutes and judgements of the Jewish church, which were principally concerning sacrifices and representative worship. By the new wine is again signified the truth of the new Christian church, in like manner as by the unwrought cloth above, but with this difference, that by new wine is signified a more internal order of truth, than by unwrought cloth, because wine is for inward nourishment, whereas cloth is for outward covering; still, however, the sense is the same, as denoting that the internal truths of the new Christian church, do not accord with the external truths of the Jewish church, which external truths are here called old bottles, of which it is said, that if new wine be put into them, the bottles burst, and the wine runs out, and the bottles perish. By the bottles bursting, if new wine be put into them, is denoted, that the truths of the Jewish church, which principally relate to sacrifices and representative worship, have no coherence with the truths of the Christian church; and by the wine running out, is further to be understood, that interior spiritual truth is dissipated, when representative truth is alone seen and acknowledged; and, lastly, by the bottles perishing, is denoted, that the external laws relating to sacrifices and ordinances are done away as soon as ever the things which they represent are fulfilled. The new wine, as was shown above, is the internal spiritual truth of the Christian church, which was opened by the manifestation of God in the flesh, on which occasion all the representatives of the Jewish church were fulfilled and realised; and by putting this new wine into new bottles is denoted, that this interior spiritual truth was to be taught, and admitted into human minds, by doctrines which were in agreement with it, and derived from it, thus by doctrines which would tend at once to promote its reception and perpetuity, on which account it is added, that both are preserved, namely both the truth and its doctrine, for doctrine is what contains and conveys truths, and is distinguished from truth as the bottle which contains wine is distinguished from the wine itself. When, therefore, doctrine is in agreement with truth, then both are preserved, because truth gives life and consistency to doctrine, whilst doctrine, in its turn, gives determination and support to truth. The old garment and old bottles will apply, as apt figures, to the persuasions and sentiments of the old or natural man, in his unconverted state, before he begins to taste the new wine, and to put on the new garments of evangelical truth and righteousness. According to this application, the parable also teaches a lesson of important instruction and caution, by pointing out the extreme danger of mixing the principles of truth with those of error, or of imbibing heavenly knowledge, whilst the life and love of earthly science, and of vain imaginations, remains in its full force, unmortified and unsubdued. In this case, too, the divine declaration, that new wine must be put into new bottles, is full of wisdom and weighty obligation, enforcing on man the eternal law, that the persuasions dictated by the love of evil ought first to be combatted and removed, before the new wine of the everlasting Gospel is received, and that thus, new opinions, new persuasions, new principles, should be formed, capable of admitting and preserving the saving truth communicated from above. The general instruction we gain from this parable may be thus summed up: we are taught by it, in the first place, that the truths of the Jewish church, which related principally to sacrifices and external ordinances, do not accord with the truths of the Christian church, which inculcate principally the law of love and charity, and thus the observance of internal worship, and that, consequently, the former are not to be mixed with the latter. We learn, in the second place, that the truths of the Christian church, being all of them from Heaven, are internal, spiritual, pure, and holy truths, and therefore require that the persuasions, sentiments, and ruling maxims of mankind should be in some sort of agreement with them, otherwise they will be dissipated, defiled, and destroyed. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on, to form our whole minds and lives according to the wisdom contained in the above parable, and whilst we venerate the law of the Jewish rituals, as being a law of divine revelation, and the best accommodated to the temper of the Jewish people, for whose use it was given; we need not conceive ourselves bound to observe it according to its letter, now that we are favoured with the interior spiritual law of the Christian dispensation. Let us resolve further, now that we have begun to put on the new garment, and to drink the new wine of evangelical truth, to lay aside the old garment, and discard the old bottles of our former mere natural ideas, sentiments, and persuasions, so that no rent may be made in the new garment, and the new wine may not run out. Thus may we hope that the Eternal Wisdom will obtain a safe and undefiled reception in our hearts, and, connecting itself with persuasions which are in agreement with itself, will conduct us to all that security and happiness announced by the Great Redeemer, when He says. They put new wine into new bottles, and both are preserved. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 45: 02.03. MAT_11:16-17 -- CHILDREN SITTING IN THE MARKETS ======================================================================== Mat 11:16-17 -- Children Sitting in the Markets But with what can I compare this generation? It is like children sitting in the markets, and calling to their fellows, and saying, We have piped to you, and you have not danced; we have mourned to you, and you have not lamented. For John came neither eating nor drinking, and they say, He has a devil. The Son of man came eating and drinking, and they say, Behold a man gluttonous and a drunkard, a friend of tax collectors and sinners. But wisdom is justified of her children. According to the letter, the expression, this generation, means the people who lived at that time in Judea; but according to its spiritual sense, it means the state of the church among that people, in regard to their reception of the eternal truth, for such is the spiritual idea of generation, whenever the term occurs in the Word of God, inasmuch as that Holy Book treats only of spiritual generations, which are those of goodness and truth, and not of natural ones, which relate only to this world and the flesh. This generation is said to be like children sitting in the markets, because, by children, or, as it is expressed in the original, infant boys, are not here to be understood children, or infant boys, but the things signified and represented by them, which things are nothing else but the truths of innocence, which were at that time revealed from Heaven to the Jewish people, in order to make them a church, or the people of God. These children, or infant boys, are represented as sitting in the markets, because by the markets are figured natural minds, or the common states of the life of natural men, which are therefore called markets, because all the goods and truths contained in the Word of God are there presented for purchase, and every one, who is so disposed, may there become a purchaser, and thus acquire the eternal possession of those heavenly blessings. It is on this account that mention is again made of a market-place in the parable of the householder who hired labourers into his vineyard, where it is written, that he saw others standing idle in the market-place, for by standing idle in the market-place, is signified, that they neglected to cultivate the natural mind, by preparing it for the insemination and growth of the Eternal Truth. In the present, parable, however, it is not said that the children were standing idle in the markets, but that they were sitting there; because, by the term sitting, whenever it occurs in the Sacred Scriptures, is always expressed a state of the will, or love, as the term standing is uniformly applied to express a state of the understanding or thought. It is further written of these children, or infant boys, that they were calling to their fellows and saying, We have piped to you, and you have not danced; we have mourned to you, and you have not lamented. The term here rendered fellows, is expressed in the original by a word which properly signifies companions; and companions, according to the spiritual idea, are all such as are associated with each other by knowledge and acquaintanceship, but not so much by love and friendship. When, therefore, the children are represented as calling to their fellows (or companions), it is to denote that they addressed themselves to the intellectual principle, in order to secure its attention to the truth of innocence, of which they were the representative figures. It is therefore written, that they called and said; because, calling is an expression which relates to the will-principle, or love, as saying is an expression which relates more to the understanding, or truth, and therefore the two expressions are combined, with a view to point at that heavenly marriage of love and wisdom, or goodness and truth, which constitutes the very life and soul of the Revealed Word, and is accordingly marked, even in the letter in numberless instances. The term piping, is expressive of the affection of good with which truth is taught, and which it is intended to excite. For such is the spiritual signification of all instruments of music, whenever they are mentioned in the Word of God, that they are all applied to denote affection, but with this difference, that the wind instruments are applied to denote the affection of good, and the stringed instruments to denote the affection of truth. Thus, when it is said. Praise Him with the sound of the trumpet; praise Him with the psaltery and harp; praise Him with the timbrel and pipe; praise Him with stringed instruments and organs; praise Him upon the loud cymbals; praise Him upon the high-sounding cymbals-(Psa 150:3-5) - it is to denote that the Lord is to be worshipped from every affection, both of good and of truth. The piping, therefore, above spoken of, has relation to the heavenly affection which influenced the truths, signified by the children; and when it is added, you have not danced, it is to denote further, that a reciprocal affection had not been excited in those to whom the truths were addressed. For dancing, according to its literal signification, is a motion of the body, corresponding with the musical sounds by which it is excited, and thus, according to its spiritual signification, it denotes an affection of the mind, corresponding with the affection by which truth is addressed to it, agreeably to which sense of the word it is written, Let them praise his name in the dance, (Psa 149:3). to teach the instructive lesson, that man ought to glorify His Maker by receiving the truths of His Holy Word with a corresponding affection. To the same purpose it is written in another place, You have turned for me my mourning into dancing, (Psa 30:11). denoting that heavenly truth was received with the heavenly affection which it is calculated to inspire. When, therefore, it is said, as in the present case, You have not danced, nothing else can be meant, according to the spiritual idea, but that the truths of Heaven had not excited a correspondent affection. These words, We have mourned to you, and you have not lamented, are contrasted with the foregoing; and, therefore, as by piping was signified the heavenly affection with which truth was communicated from above, and as by not dancing was denoted that it had not been received with correspondent affection, so by mourning is signified truth communicated without affection, and by not lamenting is further denoted that the truth so communicated had not produced reciprocal and correspondent mourning. Jesus Christ explains the nature and quality of this kind of truth in his illustration of this parable, where he says. For John came neither eating nor drinking, and they say, he has a devil. For John, as a teacher of truth, represented the Holy Word, but then he represented it as to a lower or more external order of truth than what was afterward taught by the Incarnate God; on which account he bears this witness concerning himself, I indeed baptise you with water to repentance; but He that comes after me is mightier than I, whose shoes I am not worthy to bear: he shall baptise you with the Holy Ghost, and with fire (Mat 3:11). For it deserves well to be noted, that the written Word of God contains truth of several orders and degrees, adapted to different minds, and to different states of the same mind, answering to the several instruments in husbandry, by which also those orders and degrees are expressed in the Sacred Records, such as the plough, the harrow, the sickle, the threshing instrument, the fan; all of them useful in their several places, because all of them serviceable for the production of heavenly love and charity, and its incorporation in human minds. John the Baptist was a representative figure of one of these orders of truth, namely, the lowest, or most external, adapted to the state of natural minds, to convince them of sin, and lead them to repentance, but not fitted to communicate any heavenly good with interior truth; on which account it is said of John that he came neither eating nor drinking, to denote that by this order of truth, no interior good of heavenly love and charity, with its attendant truth, could be appropriated. Jesus Christ, on the other hand, opened a new order of interior truth, which, being more closely connected with heavenly love and charity, gained more interior admission into human minds, and communicated to them a measure of the heavenly Spirit in which it originated; on which account it is said of Him, that He came eating and drinking, to denote that both the good and its truth might be incorporated into the life of man. It is written, that of John they say. He has a devil, and of Jesus Christ they say. Behold a gluttonous man and a drunkard, a friend of tax collectors and sinners. These words are another proof how difficult it is to adapt heavenly truth to the general reception of mankind, and how prone men are to frame excuses against admitting it, by vilifying both it and its teachers. Thus, in the present instance, the apparent severity of the truths taught by John the Baptist, is imputed to a diabolical agency, whilst the more consolatory and cheering doctrines delivered by the Great Saviour, are reprobated as allowing too many indulgences, and giving too much liberty to offenders against its sanctities. Nevertheless, the Divine remark which closes this parable, that Wisdom is justified of her children, must for ever remain true; because the children of wisdom are all those who are born of wisdom, not according to a figure of speech only, but in the greatest truth and reality, inasmuch as they are born of God, or of what the Apostle calls incorruptible seed, by the word of God which lives and abides for ever (1Pe 1:23). These children, therefore, are taught by their Divine Parent to see that truth is of several orders and degrees, which may, in general, be distinguished into two, namely, truth of judgement, and truth of comfort, or, to express it otherwise, truth opposed to, and combating, evil, and truth cherishing and communicating good; the former being apparently harsh and severe, thus apparently separated from good, whilst the latter is soft and consolatory, and thus apparently nearer to good. Accordingly, as in the building of a house, there are variety of workmen, and an equal variety of tools or implements of workmanship employed; so in the building of that most grand and magnificent of all houses, the House of God, or His Church here on earth, a like variety of spiritual artificers are employed, and likewise of spiritual tools and implements of building, agreeably to what is written in the Prophet, So the carpenter encourages the goldsmith, and him that smoothes with the hammer him that beat the anvil, saying, It is ready for the soldering. He fastened it with nails that it should not be moved (Isa 41:7). The children of wisdom, therefore, justify their Divine Parent in this application of a variety of tools to effect her own blessed purposes, and especially in her adapting the two distinct dispensations of truth above referred to, namely, the piping and the mourning; the one figurative of the consolatory doctrine delivered by the Great Redeemer; and the other, of the apparently more severe and austere doctrine taught by His forerunner. We are taught by this parable, that the Almighty applies a variety of instruments to effect His saving purposes, and that His Holy Word is accordingly stored with a variety of heavenly truths, suited to different persons, and to the same person at different times. We learn, further, that this variety may be distinguished, in general, into two orders of truth; one of which is attended with the love and joy in which it originates, and which it is calculated to inspire; whilst the other appears harsh, austere, and, so far from promoting joy, is productive rather of sorrow and severe suffering. We are instructed yet further, that, in a corrupt state of the Church, both these orders of truth are unattended to and rendered ineffectual, but that by the children of wisdom they are seen to be alike profitable, because proceeding from the same divine mercy, and productive of the same divine effects. Let us resolve, therefore, to attend carefully to these two distinct orders of truth, and to keep our ears ever open to their heavenly sound, whether it be that of piping or of mourning, that so, in the one case, we may be found dancing, and in the other lamenting. Thus will each order of truth become a friend and benefactor, whilst by the piping we receive consolation and support, and by the mourning are led to a more vigorous repentance and sorrow for our sins: and thus, finally, may we hope to rank amongst those pure and heavenly beings, of whom it is written, Wisdom is justified of her children. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 46: 02.04. MAT_13:3-10 -- THE SOWER ======================================================================== Mat 13:3-10 -- The Sower And he spate many things to them in parables, saying, Behold, a sower went forth to sow; and when he sowed, some seeds fell by the way-side, and the birds came and devoured them up: some fell upon, stony places, where they had not much earth; and forthwith they sprung up, because they had no depth of earth; and when the sun was up, they were scorched; and, because they had no root, they withered away: and some fell among thorns; and the thorns sprung up and choked them: but others fell into good ground, and brought forth fruit, some an hundred-fold, some sixty-fold, some thirty-fold. Who has ears to hear, let him hear. The Sower is the Son of Man, or Jesus Christ, in His Divine Humanity. He is called the Sower, because the seed sown is the Eternal Truth, or the Word of God, and all Truth, properly so called, is from Jesus Christ, who on that account calls Himself the Truth. By sowing, when spoken of Jesus Christ, is to be understood the insemination and implantation of His Divine Truth, or Word, in the understandings and lives of men; this is effected by man’s hearing, or reading, the Word of God, by his meditating on what he hears or reads, but, above all, by the application of what he hears, or reads, to the purpose of reforming his life, by separating from himself all evil ends and purposes, and by loving, thinking, and doing those good things which the Word of God teaches to be good. Mankind, then, differ in the way of receiving and admitting the Eternal Truth, and this difference is described in the parable to be four-fold, which four-fold reception is distinguished in the parable, first by some seed falling by the way-side; secondly, by some falling upon stony places, where they have not much earth; thirdly, by some falling among thorns; and, lastly, by some falling into good ground. The first distinction, described by some seed falling by the way-side, includes all those who receive the Word of God, or the Eternal Truth, without affection. Every one receives the Word of God without affection who hears it, and reads it, and yet is not interested in what he hears and reads, having his affections immersed merely in the things of time and of sense, without any elevation to the great things of Eternity. The second distinction, described by the seeds which fell upon stony places, where they have not much earth, includes all those who hear, or read, the Word of God, and imbibe its truth, yet not from a genuine affection for that truth, but from some external affection which regards only the gain and glory of this world: thus they love the truth, not for its own sake, but for the sake of their own temporal interests, which they think to advance and secure by means of the knowledge of truth. The third distinction, described by the seeds which fell among thorns, includes all those who hear, or read, the Word of God, without any desire to remove the cravings of evil, and who thus are desirous to become intelligent in heavenly knowledge, but not for the purpose of purifying and reforming their own hearts and lives in the sight of God. The last distinction, described by the seeds which fell into good ground, includes all those who receive the Word of God, and its Eternal Truths, with a genuine and devout affection, at the same time applying them to the purposes for which they are given, namely, the purification, reformation, and regeneration of their hearts and lives in the sight of God. Let us now consider the effects of these different receptions of the Word of God in the minds of men. The first effect is described in these words. The birds came and devoured them up. By the birds, in this passage, are to be understood all false persuasions of doctrine and of life, which always occupy the minds of those who are destitute of affection for the Eternal Truth; and by devouring up the seeds of truth is to be understood, that where the Word of God is received without affection it cannot produce its proper fruits, because it is liable to be perverted and destroyed by false persuasions, which occupy the natural mind of every man before he admits with affection the light of the Eternal Word. The next effect of a wrong reception of the Word of God, is described in these words, Forthwith they sprung up, because they had no depth of earth; and when the sun was up, they were scorched; and because they had no root, they withered away. This is to denote, that where the Eternal Truth is received from an affection not genuine, that is to say, from an affection grounded in worldly gain or glory, in that mind an appearance is presented of the growth of truth, but then it is a growth in the memory and understanding only, and not in the will, or love; therefore, it is said, because they have no depth of earth, for the earth, in this case, relates to the will, or love, and its depth has relation to the inmost principle of each. The sun, as applied in the Holy Scriptures, is used both in a good and bad sense, according to the subject treated of; and in a good sense, it relates to the Lord Himself, and to the Divine Love and Wisdom which proceed from Him; but in a bad sense, it is applied to denote the destructive principle of self-love, when it is exalted in the human mind above the love of God and Heaven. By the seeds being scorched, then, is to be understood, that where the truth is not received with a genuine affection, or for its own sake, in that mind it is withered and destroyed by the influence of self-love, which will not allow it to take its proper root, and bear its proper fruits; therefore, it is added, because they had no root, they withered away, to teach the important lesson, that where self-love is predominant it is impossible that the Eternal Truth should gain a place in the natural mind of man, so as to produce all its blessed and saving effects. The third effect of a wrong reception of the Word of God, is described in these words. The thorns sprung up and choked them. By the thorns are to be understood the cravings of evil, which Jesus Christ, in his explanation of the parable, calls the cares of this world, and the deceitfulness of riches, by which are meant, all those anxieties, concerns, and affections of the merely external man, who prevail over the better desires of the internal man; and by choking the seed of truth, is to be understood, all that suffocation of the pure knowledge of God, and of His Holy Word, which must of necessity take place in that mind, where the appetites of the body, and the cravings of animal life, are suffered to exalt themselves above the higher interests to man’s spiritual and eternal life; therefore it is added, by Jesus Christ, that such a mind becomes unfruitful, because the fruitfulness of heavenly truth can only be found in its effects upon the natural man, by purifying his ends of life, and forming him to every good thought, word, and work; in case, therefore, that the operation of heavenly truth is resisted by the natural mind, it is impossible there can be any fruitfulness of truth in the natural man. The fourth effect resulting from the reception of the Eternal Truth is described in these words, It brought forth fruit, some an hundred-fold, some sixty-fold, some thirty-fold. By fruit is to be understood, all the good of love and charity, that is to say, of love towards God, and charity towards our neighbour; and by bringing forth this fruit is to be understood, that this good of love and charity manifests itself in the natural man in all good thoughts, words, and works, of a holy and useful life, agreeably to those words of Jesus Christ, where He says, Let your light so shine before men that they may see your good works, and glorify your Father which is in Heaven: (Mat 5:16). and in another place, If you know these things, happy are you if you do them (John 13:17). It is, therefore, said in the parable, that other seed fell into good ground, to denote that the reception of truth, in this case, was an interior reception, or, a reception in the inner man; that is to say, in the will, or love, as well as in the understanding and memory. Therefore, Jesus Christ, in explaining this reception of the Eternal Truth, says, He that receives seed into good ground is he that hears the Word and understands it, to instruct us, that a right and profitable reception of the Eternal Truth is a reception both in the will, signified by hearing, and in the intellect, signified by understanding; and to instruct us yet further, that all fruitfulness of the Holy Word is the result of this two-fold reception, or what may be properly called the heavenly marriage of good and truth, and not from the single reception of either of those principles separate from the other. The distinctions expressed in the parable by hundred-fold, sixty-fold, and thirty-fold, are intended to express the different degrees of fruitfulness of the Eternal Truth in human minds, which will ever depend upon the degree in which good and truth are united, or in which the will and understanding are conjointly affected. As, therefore, in some cases, this conjunction may be less perfect than in others, in like manner it is to be supposed, that the fruitfulness will vary, and this agreeably to the distinctions here mentioned of an hundred-fold, sixty-fold, and thirty-fold. Jesus Christ concludes this parable by saying, He that has ears to hear, let him hear; teaching us by these words, that He intended his instruction only for those who were in a disposition to receive it, and not for those who were in no disposition. For by those who have ears to hear He meant to describe all sincere and upright minds, which are desirous, both’ to receive and profit by the lessons of the Eternal Wisdom, therefore He says of these, let them hear, in other words, let them understand and receive, because to them it is given, to know the mysteries of the Kingdom of Heaven, inasmuch as they are in a right state of mind to profit, by those mysteries: whereas, to others it is not given, since others are not in a state to profit by them, and, therefore, if such mysteries were made known to them, they would but profane and defile them, and thus increase their condemnation, agreeably to those words of Jesus Christ, This is the condemnation, that light is come into the world, and men loved darkness rather than light, because their deeds were evil (John 3:19). The general instruction then to be derived from this parable is, that men ought to be very careful in hearing, or reading, the Word of God, to note the affection from which they hear and read, and to see that this affection be pure and genuine, resulting from the love of truth, for its own sake, and not for any earthly ends of temporal gain and glory. We learn, yet further, from this parable, that the Eternal Truth can never produce its full fruitfulness in the mind and life of man until it operates conjointly on his will and understanding, that is to say, on his love and thought; but that when it is attended with this double operation, it forms in man the true heavenly marriage, by virtue whereof he has eternal conjunction with Jesus Christ and His kingdom, and through that conjunction is formed to every good thought, word, and work. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 47: 02.05. MAT_13:24-31 -- THE WEEDS IN THE FIELD ======================================================================== Mat 13:24-31 -- The Weeds in the Field Another Parable put he forth to them, saying. The Kingdom of Heaven is like a man which sowed good seed in his field; but while men slept, his enemy came and sowed weeds among the wheat, and went his way. But when the blade was sprung up, and brought forth fruit, then appeared the weeds also. So the servants of the householder came and said to him. Sir, did you not sow good seed in your field! From whence then has it weeds? He said to them. An enemy has done this. The servants said to him. Will you then that we go and gather them up? But he said. Nay; lest, while you gather up the weeds, you root up also the wheat with them. Let both grow together, until the harvest; and in the time of harvest I will say to the reapers, Gather you together, first the weeds, and bind them in: bundles to burn them, but gather the wheat into my barn. The Kingdom of Heaven is the government of the divine love and wisdom of Jesus Christ, and therefore, wherever this divine love and wisdom is allowed to have rule, whether it be in heaven or on earth, there is the Kingdom of Heaven. It is likened to a man sowing good seed in his field, because it begins from a seed, which, like other seeds, increases and multiplies after its kind, and brings forth fruit, which also contains new seeds, and thus is capable of indefinite increase. The seed is the Word of God, which is the Divine Truth of the Divine Love; and the Man that sows it is Jesus Christ, or God in his Divine Humanity, because all Divine Truth, which is of the Divine Love, proceeds from that Incarnate God, and is implanted by Him in the hearts of true believers. The seed is, therefore, called good seed, to denote that the Divine Truth, represented by the seed, is always in connection with the Divine Good of the Lord’s mercy and love. By the field is meant the Church here on earth, or the congregation of all good people who believe in Jesus Christ, and receive the seed of His Holy Word in sincere and devout hearts. This field is, therefore, called His field, because the Church is His, inasmuch as it is formed from those eternal principles of heavenly love and wisdom which proceed from Him, and which properly constitute Him. By sleeping, according to a spiritual idea, is to be understood, the leading a natural life, separate from spiritual life, which life, in the Sacred Scriptures, is always called sleep, as spiritual life is always called a state of wakefulness. By the enemy is meant the Devil, or the Spirits of Darkness, who are always present with man, watching and labouring to destroy the good seed of the kingdom. The weeds denote all evil principles and false persuasions arising from selfish, worldly, and corporeal loves, which choke all the plants of heavenly growth, springing from the seed of the divine love and wisdom. By the enemy going his way, is to be understood, his concealing himself, and appearing to be at a distance; for so it seems to the natural man, nor can he be persuaded to believe, until he becomes spiritual, that his spiritual foes, the Powers of Darkness, are always near at hand, and ready to do him the greatest mischief. It is said, that when the blade sprung up and bare fruit, then appeared also the weeds. By the blade is meant the first appearance of truth in man’s understanding, and by its springing up, is meant its growth in the understanding; for the seed of the Eternal Truth is first sown in man’s memory, where it remains as a mere seed, until man begins to feel a concern about it, on account of his eternal salvation, in which case he is led to meditate on the great truths of God, which were deposited in his memory, and in consequence of such concern and meditation, those truths are exalted to an interior place in the mind, where it appears as a blade. This blade bearing fruit denotes a still further reception and exaltation of the Eternal Truth, which takes place when truth begins to affect the will, or love; for spiritual fruit is love and charity, love towards God, and charity towards our neighbour; and this fruit never appears until man, from a deeper concern about his salvation, is led to form his life according to the truths which he has admitted into his understanding, and thus to obtain a new will, capable of loving God above all things, and his neighbour as himself. The reason why the weeds should then appear, that is, when the blade sprang up and bare fruit, and not before, is, because the weeds, as was said, denote all evil principles and false persuasions of selfish, worldly, and corporeal loves, and these weeds do not show themselves until there is some growth of the heavenly principles of love and wisdom in the human mind, for error can never be seen but from truth, neither can evil be seen but from good, and therefore, until some degree of good and of truth is formed in the mind, errors and evils do not appear. By the servants of the Householder are signified those who are principled in true knowledge of truth, because all such knowledge is called a servant, in the Sacred Scriptures, as administering to the higher principles of the good of love and charity, this being the great use and design of all knowledge; and by their coming and saying to the Householder, Lord did you not sow good seed, is signified their perplexity and concern at finding evil mixed with good, and error with truth, and their anxious inquiry concerning the cause. For nothing is more perplexing to the human mind than the origin of evil; and therefore instruction from heaven is solicited on this occasion, and in consequence of such solicitation, is imparted. For God never excites any inquiry in the regenerate mind, but with a view to gratify it, and he excites it for this purpose, that it maybe gratified. Mention is now first made of a Householder, who was before called a Man. Both the Man and the Householder relate to Jesus Christ, - who is called a Man from the principle of Divine Truth, during its insemination in the human mind. But when this truth begins to spring up, and bear the heavenly fruit of love and charity, He is then called a Householder, because a house, whenever it is mentioned in the sacred Scriptures, has relation to love and charity, and since all love and charity are from Jesus Christ, and under his continual government and protection; therefore He is called a Householder. The enemy is that principle in the human mind which opposes God, by Pot submitting its judgement and determination to the Divine Will and Wisdom; and on this account, the Devil is called the great enemy, because he is always opposing the will of the Most High. And here we may discover the true origin of all evil, and also of the evil one himself, called in the Sacred Scripture, the Devil, and Satan. This origin is not from God, because from God can come nothing but good, inasmuch as He is essential goodness; but it is from the determination of human minds, in the abuse of that freedom of will in which they are created, and without which they could not be men. From the moment, therefore, that the human will inclines to call anything a good, separate from God, from that moment it creates evil, which, in itself, is nothing else but a good so separated. We read that the servants said to him, Will you then that we go and gather them together? But he said, Nay; lest, while you gather together the weeds, you root up the wheat together with them. Let both grow together to the harvest, and in the time of the harvest I will say to the reapers, Gather together the weeds, and bind them in bundles to burn them, but gather the wheat into my barn. The reason of this delay on the part of the Householder, in separating the weeds from the wheat, or the evil from the good. He explains himself, when he says, Lest, whilst you gather together the weeds, you root up the wheat together with them. The Householder teaches by these words, that it is dangerous to attempt the entire extirpation of things evil and false in the human mind, until the principles of goodness and truth from Heaven are fully formed. The Divine Law, therefore, on this occasion, is, that man should labour for the implantation and formation of those heavenly principles in himself, bearing patiently with the opposition arising from contrary principles; in which case those contrary principles will assist him, by their opposition, and the spiritual combats to which he will thus be exposed, in effecting a more perfect reception of heavenly principles, and their deeper entrenchment in his mind and life. When, therefore, the opposing principles have thus fulfilled their appointed purpose, they are separated, but not before. The harvest denotes the full formation of goodness and truth in the regenerate mind, and in this case, the separation of those principles of life which are in opposition, and cause combat and disturbance. By the reapers is to be understood the angelic heaven, inasmuch as the Lord, by and through the angelic heaven, effects such separation. The weeds mean all evil and false principles of life; and to bind them in bundles, denotes that such principles are in arrangement one under another, and are thus connected one with another. The Divine wisdom, in effecting the separation of those principles, first discovers to us that such arrangement and connection exists, and that the general principle of what is evil and false in man consists of innumerable evil and false principles, which thus make a one, which one can never be separated until it is thus viewed minutely and distinctly as to the varieties of which it is composed. The wheat, it has been already seen, signifies all heavenly principles of goodness and truth; and the being gathered into the barn, is signified being brought into heaven, because heaven is the grand receptacle of all those principles. The barn, therefore, is here called my barn, that is to say, the Lord’s barn, because heaven is from the Lord, and in continual connection with Him; as are also all the principles of goodness and truth, which constitute heaven. We learn from this parable, that man is placed here below between two kingdoms, the kingdom of light and the kingdom of darkness, and that Jesus Christ, from his kingdom of light, is always endeavouring to inseminate in the human heart, the eternal principles of His own most pure love and wisdom, whilst the Spirits of Darkness, from their kingdom, are endeavouring to inseminate their own wicked principles of evil and of error. We learn, further, that the principles of evil and of error can never be discovered until the contrary principles of heavenly love and wisdom, or, what is the same thing, of heavenly goodness and truth, begin to grow and produce their proper fruit. We are instructed, yet further, not only concerning the origin, but also concerning the separation and removal of evil and of error from the regenerate mind, being taught to expect that these effects cannot be produced suddenly, but in the divine order are of gradual operation. We are, therefore, lastly instructed, that we ought to run our Christian course in patient submission to the Divine Will, during the contest between good and evil, being well aware, that in such contest the opposition of evil is made to administer to the fuller implantation and fructification of good, and that, finally, through the Divine Mercy, the entire separation will be accomplished, when all of evil and of error will be put down into its own kingdom, and all of heavenly love and wisdom will be exalted to conjunction with Jesus Christ and the eternal happiness of His kingdom. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 48: 02.06. MAT_13:31-32 -- GRAIN OF MUSTARD SEED ======================================================================== Mat 13:31-32 -- Grain of Mustard Seed Another parable put he forth to them, saying, The Kingdom of Heaven is like a grain of mustard-seed, which a man took and sowed in his field: which indeed is the least of all seeds; but when it is grown it is the greatest amongst herbs, and becomes a tree, so that the birds of the air come and lodge in the branches thereof. We have already seen that by the Kingdom of Heaven is meant the government of the Divine Love and wisdom of Jesus Christ. This kingdom is here likened to a grain of mustard-seed, which a man sowed in his field, because the growth of the divine love and wisdom in man is from a small beginning, inasmuch as man, under the first reception of heavenly truth, is led to suppose that he can do good from himself, and not from the Lord, when yet such good is nothing but evil: but whereas, he is in a state of regeneration, there is something of good, but the least of all. By this least of all seeds, when it is grown, being greater than herbs, and becoming a tree, is meant, that as faith is conjoining to love, the growth becomes greater, answering to that of the herb, until at length, when faith and love are fully conjoined, it acquires a full growth, answering to that of a tree. By the birds of the air are to be understood things intellectual, or truths exalted into the higher or inner region of the understanding; and by the branches of the tree, the scientifics of those truths, or truth as it is received from the letter of the Word, when it first enters the memory, and is there deposited, as mere science of heavenly things; and by the birds making their nests in these branches, is denoted, that when faith and love are fully conjoined, then truths, or things intellectual, continually multiply and increase their kind in scientifics, which are of the memory. We learn, generally, from this parable, that the Kingdom of Heaven, in man, who is the government of the Divine Love and Wisdom, is small at its beginning, because man, under the first reception of truth, supposes that he does good from himself. We are instructed further, not to be discouraged under these small beginnings, because, if we proceed patiently to acquire faith and love, there will be a gradual increase of heavenly good; until at length, when the conjunction is complete, the tree of righteousness will grow to its full size; in which case, things intellectual, which are heavenly truths exalted in the inner man, will be connected with the scientifics of truth in the outward man, and, by virtue of such connection, will multiply and increase immensely after their kind, until the human mind is restored to the order of heaven, through the reception of heavenly truth in all its degrees. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 49: 02.07. MAT_13:33 -- LEAVEN ======================================================================== Mat 13:33 -- Leaven Another parable spoke he to them: The Kingdom of Heaven is like leaven, which a woman took and hid in three barrels of meal, till the whole was leavened. By the Kingdom of Heaven, as was observed in the former parable, is to be understood the government of the Divine Love and Wisdom. This government is like leaven, because by leaven is effected fermentation, and consequent purification of the bodies with which it is mixed. Leaven, as being a fermenting substance, denotes all false principles of the understanding and life, and the three measures of meal denote all principles of heavenly truth in the regenerate mind. The comparison, therefore, here used by Jesus Christ, was intended to remind us of the combats which take place in such a mind, between false principles and true, with a view to the purification of the latter. For the effect of such combats is, to exalt in man the principles of heavenly love and charity above those of mere speculative truth and knowledge; and when man begins to act from the former principles, then the latter become purified, which they never can be so long as man acts from them alone, and not from the principles of heavenly love and charity. By the woman is meant the Church, which is called woman, from the affection of truth, which makes the Church. We learn from this parable, that the Kingdom of Heaven can never be opened and formed in man, until truth is purified from what is false, and that such purification cannot be effected without combat, by which is produced a kind of spiritual fermentation, in which case, good is conjoined with truth, and then all false principles are separated like dregs. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 50: 02.08. MAT_13:44 -- TREASURE HID IN A FIELD ======================================================================== Mat 13:44 -- Treasure Hid in a Field Again, the Kingdom of Heaven is like treasure hid in a field; which when a man has found, he hides, and for joy thereof goes and sells all that he has, and buys that field. By the field is here meant the Church; and by the treasure hid in it is understood the Divine Truth in the Word of God, which lies concealed under the letter. A man finds this treasure of the Divine Truth of God’s word, when he is enlightened to see the distinction between the letter of the Word and the Spirit, and how the latter opens to him the Kingdom of Heaven, being in continual connection with Jesus Christ and His angelic kingdom. He is said to hide the treasure of the Divine Truth when he stores it up in his interior mind, where it remains concealed from the observation of others, and even of himself, except when he is called to some particular notice of it; in which sense the Lord is said to feed him with the hidden manna (See: Rev 2:17). But it is said, that for joy thereof goes and sells all that he has, and buys that field. By the joy is meant the delight arising from the affection of truth; for all joy comes from some affection, and spiritual joy from the affection of good and truth. His going away denotes that he applied himself to live and act in agreement with the Divine Truth which he had found; and by selling all that he has, is meant that he renounces his own self-love, which had before led him to regard his faculties and possessions as his own, independent of God, and that he now discovers that he possesses nothing properly his own, because all things are God’s. To buy, is an expression used in the Sacred Scripture, to denote the procuring of spiritual property; and, therefore, by buying that field, is meant the procuring to himself the spiritual treasure of the Divine Truth which was hid in it: and this is the case whenever man renounces self-love, and exalts the Divine Truth in his own heart and life, as the blessed source of all that can be good, and wise, and happy for him. This parable teaches us that in the Word of God is stored up the eternal treasure of the Divine Truth, and that when a man is wise to discover this treasure, he stores it up in the interiors of his mind, and suffers it to guide and govern him in all his affections, thoughts, words, and works. We learn further, that through this treasure he is led to renounce his self-love, and to acknowledge all his faculties and possessions, not only to be the gifts of God, but also continually to be God’s, and that by this acknowledgement he procures to himself all the blessing, protection, guidance, and government of the Eternal Truth, which is of Jesus Christ, and in continual connection with his Divine Life and Love. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 51: 02.09. MAT_13:45-46 -- MERCHANT SEEKING PEARLS ======================================================================== Mat 13:45-46 -- Merchant Seeking Pearls Again, the Kingdom of Heaven is like a merchant-man seeking goodly pearls: who, when he had found one pearl of great price, went and sold all that he had, and bought it. A merchant-man, in the spiritual sense of the word, means one who procures to himself the knowledges of truth and of good, and thus attains intelligence and wisdom, agreeably to which idea, it is said, in the book of Proverbs, that the merchandise of wisdom is better than the merchandise of silver, and the gain thereof than fine gold (Pro 3:14). By goodly pearls are meant the knowledges of truth, and by seeking those pearls is meant the affection of truth for its own sake, because nothing but such an affection can properly discover the truth. In the same sense, we are called to seek the Kingdom of God and his righteousness, to teach us that we ought to be affected with the Kingdom of God and His righteousness above all other things. By the one pearl of great price is meant the knowledge of Jesus Christ, and especially of the union of His Divine Nature with the human, and of the human reciprocally with the Divine, until He became, even as to His humanity, the only God of heaven and earth. This pearl is called a pearl of great price, because the knowledge of Jesus Christ is the most precious and blessed of all other knowledges, being the essential life of all others, insomuch that without this knowledge, all other knowledges are comparatively as dead, having no connection with their living source. Man is said to find this precious pearl of spiritual knowledge when, from the affection of truth, for its own sake, he seeks it in the Word of God, and discovers its brightness and value in his understanding: and he is said to find the knowledge of Jesus Christ when, from the same affection, he delights in the discovery from the Holy Word, that Jesus Christ is the Most High God, because in His Divine Person the Father and the Son, or the Divinity and Humanity are made eternally One, and constitute the Supreme and Sole Object of all Christian worship. By the man’s going is meant that he formed his life according to the knowledge of truth which he had discovered; and by his selling all that he had and buying it, is meant that he submitted all things of his natural life to be governed and guided by the Lord’s life, that is to say, by His Divine Love and Wisdom. We learn from this parable that every man ought to consider himself as a spiritual merchant-man, sent into the world to seek the goodly pearls of the Eternal Wisdom, which are the bright knowledges of heavenly truth, procured by devout affection from the Word of God. We learn, also, that in seeking these heavenly pearls, if he be sincere in his search, he is sure, sooner or later, to discover the one pearl of great price, which is the saving knowledge of Jesus Christ. And, lastly, we learn, that when he has found this pearl, he goes and sells all that he has and buys it; in other words, he renounces self-love, that he may submit all his affections, thoughts, words, and works, to the mild and gentle government of the Divine Love and Wisdom of Jesus Christ. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 52: 02.10. MAT_13:47-50 -- NET CAST INTO SEA ======================================================================== Mat 13:47-50 -- Net Cast into Sea The Kingdom of Heaven is like a net, that was cast into the sea, and gathered of every Kind: which, when it was full, they drew to shore, and sat down, and gathered the good into vessels, cast out the bad away. So shall it be at the end of the world: the angels shall come forth, and sever the wicked from among the just, and shall cast them into the furnace of fire: there shall be wailing and gnashing of teeth. The Kingdom of Heaven is here like a net cast into the sea; because by a net cast into the sea is figured and represented a gathering together of natural men to be instructed in the knowledge of the truth, and therefore the Apostles were called fishers of men, because they so collected and instructed them. By this net bringing together of every kind is to be understood the collecting and instructing of all, both the good and the evil; for amongst natural men there is a difference, some being disposed to receive the Eternal Truth, and, by such reception, to become spiritual men, whilst others are disposed to reject the truth, and, by such rejection, to remain natural men. The net is said to be full when full instruction has been received, or when all who are in the Church have imbibed the knowledges of truth. By drawing it to the shore is meant a new state, when all who have received instruction are to be judged according to the use they have made of it in attaining, or not attaining, to the good of instruction, for the end of all instruction is, that man may attain the Eternal Good of Love and Charity. Sitting, in the language of the Sacred Scriptures, is an expression used to denote a state of the will, or love, united with its proper wisdom; and since judgement is here treated of, or the separation of the evil from the good, therefore sitting down is here spoken of, because all such judgement is effected from the union of Love and Wisdom, or of Goodness and Truth. By gathering the good into vessels, and casting the bad away, is to be understood the accomplishment of a work of judgement, or separation, when a fullness of instruction has been received; on which occasion, they who are principled in heavenly Good of Love and Charity, are gifted with all convenient truths and knowledges, by which the life is perfected to all eternity; whilst they who are principled in evil of selfish and worldly love, are deprived of all truth and knowledge, and left to perish in the fire of their own cravings. From this parable we learn that all mankind, whether they be good, or evil, receive instruction from Heaven, in one degree or other, whereby they may be saved, and that such instruction is first received in a natural state. We learn further, that after instruction succeeds another state, which is that of exploration, or judgement, concerning the use which has been made of instruction. And, lastly, we learn, that they who have profited by instruction, so as to attain by it to a state of heavenly Love and Charity, are then gifted with new truths and knowledges in great abundance, for their further purification and regeneration; but that they who have not profited by instruction, by removing the evil of selfish and worldly love, and attaining to heavenly Love and Charity, are, in the Day of judgement, deprived of all the knowledge of truth, and left to be consumed and tormented by their own evil lusts. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 53: 02.11. MAT_13:52 -- INSTRUCTED SCRIBE ======================================================================== Mat 13:52 -- Instructed Scribe Therefore, every Scribe instructed to the Kingdom of Heaven is like a man that is an Householder, which brings forth out of his treasure things new and old. A Scribe instructed to the Kingdom of Heaven is one who is initiated into the goods and truths of the Word of God, from which the Kingdom of Heaven is derived. The Householder is the Lord Himself, because He is the sole proprietor of all things in the Grand House called Heaven and the Church. Every one becomes like this Householder, in other words, every one becomes an image and likeness of God, that is to say, of Jesus Christ, by the reception of His Wisdom and Love, Wisdom being an image, and Love a likeness, and a likeness particularly in this respect, that man in such case wills and acts freely as from himself, as God wills and acts freely from himself; but yet under the full acknowledgement that the all, both of will and action, is from God. The treasures of the Great Householder, Jesus Christ, are all the Divine Goods and Truths of His own Most Holy Word; and the things new and old, which He brings out of those treasures, are the interior and exterior Goods and Truths which He dispenses to mankind; the interior things of the Holy Word being called new, and the exterior things being called old, because the interior things are always filled with new life from their Living Fountain, whilst the exterior things, being more remote from that Life, are, comparatively, called old. We learn from this parable, that in receiving into our minds and lives the Goods and Truths of God’s Most Holy Word, we ought to imitate the Divine Giver of that Word, by not separating the letter from the spirit, nor the spirit from the letter; in other words, by not dividing between the internal and external sense of the Divine Law. Thus we learn, that we ought to cherish Goodness and Truth, in all their degrees, both internal and external, and to apply them to the regulation of our lives, since internal Good and Truth, without external, are imperfect and powerless, as external Good and Truth, without internal, want their life and fullness. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 54: 02.12. MAT_13:52 -- SUMMARY OF THE ABOVE ======================================================================== Mat 13:52 -- Summary of the Above THE SUMMARY OF THE INTERNAL SENSE OF THE FOREGOING PARABLES, IN THEIR CONNEXION WITH EACH OTHER. When viewed in a connected series, these parables express and describe the whole process of regeneration, commencing with the first reception of Heavenly Truth from the Word, and advancing through all gradations of its growth to the full maturity of heavenly love and life. The first parable of the Sower, describes the first insemination of Truth, which is the first step towards the regenerate life: the second parable of the Weeds of the Field, describes the manifestation of Evils and Falses in consequence of such insemination, which is a second step, and an effect of the first: the third parable of the Grain of Mustard Seed, describes the small increase of heavenly life, whilst man supposes that he does good from himself alone, and not from the Lord, which is a third state in the regeneration: the fourth parable of the Leaven, &c., describes the temptations consequent on the reception of heavenly truth and good, which is a fourth state: the fifth parable of Treasure Hid in a Field, describes the further effect of the reception of heavenly truth and good, in leading man to renounce his proprium, or his own proper life, that he may appropriate the life of heaven, signified by selling all that he has, and buying that field, which is a fifth state: the sixth parable, speaking of the Merchant-man seeking Goodly Pearls, describes the effect of heavenly truth in leading man to the acknowledgement of the Lord, as the alone source of all good and truth, and to the consequent renunciation of self-love and its guidance, which is a sixth state: the seventh parable of a Net cast into the Sea, describes the last effect of the reception of heavenly truth and good, in accomplishing a full and final separation between Goods and Evils, and between Truths and Falses, so that Goods and Truths are brought into conjunction with Heaven, whilst Evils and Falses are cast down into Hell, and this is the seventh and last state of the regenerate life. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 55: 02.13. MAT_15:10-11 - WHAT DEFILES A MAN ======================================================================== Mat 15:10-11 - What Defiles a Man And He called the multitude, and said to them. Hear and under stand: not that which goes into the mouth defiles a man, but that which comes out of the mouth, this defiles a man. Of the two expressions called and said, the first has relation to the divine love, the second to the divine wisdom; and, therefore, both expressions are used, in order to mark the heavenly marriage of love and wisdom, or of goodness and truth, which pervades every part of the Word of God, and from, and according to which, the Blessed Jesus on all occasions spoke. Again, the term hear has more respect to the will, or love of man, as the term understand has more respect to the intellectual principle, or the understanding of man, and, therefore, the two terms, like called and said, are applied in reference to the heavenly marriage above spoken of, and to point out the necessity, on the part of man, of receiving and cherishing the Eternal Truth, both in his will and understanding, or with his affection and thought, before he can fully comprehend, and rightly profit by it. By those things which enter into the mouth, in the sense of the letter, are meant foods of every kind, which, after use in the body, pass off through the stomach into the drain; but in the spiritual sense, by those things which enter into the mouth are signified all things, which, from the memory, and also from the world, enter into the thought; these things also correspond to food, and those which enter into the thought, and not at the same time into the will, do not render man unclean, for the memory, and hence the thought, are to man only as an entrance to him, inasmuch as the will is the man himself; those things which only enter into the thought, and no further, are rejected, as it were, through the belly into the drain; from which considerations it is evident, that by that which enters into the mouth, in the spiritual sense, is signified what enters into the thought from the memory and from the world; but by that which goes forth out of the mouth, in the spiritual sense, is signified thought derived from the will, or from the love; for by the heart, from which it goes forth from the mouth, and out of the mouth, is signified the will and love of man; and inasmuch as the love, or will, constitute the whole man, hence those things which go forth from the mouth, and out of the mouth, render man unclean. In the Gospel according to St. Mark, where this same parable is recorded, we read, that what enters into the belly, and goes out into the drain, purges all meats (Mark 7:19). The reason why the belly is said to purge all meats is, because by the belly is signified the thought of the understanding, as was said above; and by meats are signified all spiritual nourishments, and the thought of the understanding is what separates unclean things from clean, and thereby purges. It is also added, for out of the heart proceed evil thoughts, murders, adulteries, fornications, thefts, false witness, blasphemies, - by which we are to understand not only natural evils, but the spiritual evils which they signify; thus, by evil thoughts, or, as it might be better expressed, evil reasonings, are to be understood all oppositions in will and understanding to heavenly truth and good, whence come, first, murders, or the different modes of destroying charity; secondly, adulteries, or the perversions of good; thirdly, fornications, or the perversions of truth; fourthly, thefts, or the persuasions that life is self-derived; fifthly, false witness, or the confounding of good with evil, and of what is true with what is false; sixthly, blasphemies, or denials of the Lord’s Divinity, and, thus, of all Divine Influence. By the words which follow, and which conclude this parable, these are the things which defile the man; but to eat with unwashed hands defiles not the man; Jesus Christ would teach, that man cannot desist from thinking evil, but from doing it; and that as soon as he receives evil from the thought into the will, in this case it does not go forth, but enters into him, and this is said to enter into the heart, and the things which thence go forth render him unclean, because what a man wills, this goes forth into speech and into act, so far as external restraints do not forbid; this, therefore, defiles, but to eat with unwashed hands does not defile, because to eat with unwashed hands, according to the spiritual idea, is to receive and cherish heavenly good, before purification has been effected by means of heavenly truth. In the relation of this parable, as it is given in the Gospel according to St. Mark, the evils enumerated, as proceeding from the heart, are not only more numerous, but also stand in a different order from those enumerated in the Gospel according to St. Matthew; for thus it is written, in the former Gospel, on the occasion, for from within, out of the heart of men, proceed evil thoughts, adulteries, fornications, murders, thefts, covetousness, wickedness, lasciviousness, an evil eye, blasphemy, pride, foolishness. Thus, in the Gospel according to St. Mark, thirteen different classes of evils are enumerated, and the evil of murder is reckoned after the evils of adultery and fornication; whereas, in the Gospel according to St. Matthew, only seven classes of evils are enumerated, whilst the evil of murder precedes the evils of adultery and fornication. Perhaps it is impossible for any finite intelligence to discover, and still more so to comprehend, all the depths of the divine wisdom involved in the difference here alluded to. Yet, if we are not allowed to see and apprehend the whole, it may still be granted us to investigate a part of the hidden treasures, at least, to form some conjecture concerning their nature and their value. May we not, therefore, without presumption, suggest the following query, namely: Whether the two distinct classes of evils, as above enumerated by the two Evangelists, may not be referred to the two grand, but distinct, fountains of all evil, namely, self-love, and the love of the world? Certain it is, that all evils originate in those two polluted fountains; and it is equally certain that, according to their origin, they take rank in a different order, which may account for the difference, in this respect, in the Evangelical history. It is remarkable, too, that in the relation of the parable given by both Evangelists, evil thoughts, or, more properly, evil reasonings, are placed at the head of the catalogue; by which is plainly implied, that all evils have their birth from perverse love in the will, confirmed by perverse thought in the understanding. But the term evil, here annexed to thought, is differently expressed in the original Greek of the two Evangelists; for, in St. Matthew, it is expressed by the adjective poneroi, and, in St. Mark, by the adjective kacoi, which is a further proof that the perverse love in the will is of a different quality, and from a different source in the two cases. But, whatever uncertainty there may be in the above conjecture, there can be no doubt of this, that all evils originate in perverse love, confirmed by perverse thought; and that whether this perverse love be the love of self, or the love of the world, the progeny derived from its conjunction with its favourite false reasonings and persuasions is both numerous and frightful, closing either in blasphemy or in foolishness, thus, either in the total denial of all divine influence, or in a total blindness, as to all the certainties and consolations of the divine wisdom. We learn, then, from this parable, that there is a correspondence, or agreement, between the body and the spirit of man, and all the parts and principles of each, for in speaking of the thought and understanding of man, Jesus Christ expresses it by the mouth; and, again, in speaking of the will, or love, of man. He expresses it by the heart, which is a manifest proof that there is an agreement, or correspondence, between those bodily organs and those mental principles; so that what is true of the former, in regard to the body, is true of the latter, in regard to the spirit. We learn, further, that the evil which enters into man’s thought, and is there rejected, so as not to be allowed admission into the will, or love, does not defile him, and that it only acquires the faculty of defiling- when it is cherished in his will, or love, and is suffered to proceed thence into act or operation. We learn, lastly, that there are several distinct genera, or species, of spiritual evil, which have all of them their origin from a perverse will and a perverse understanding, and which may be reduced to two distinct classes, namely, those which are derived from the love of self, and those which are derived from the love of the world, when those loves become predominant loves. Let us resolve, therefore, to profit by all this divine instruction, and, for this purpose, to beg of Jesus Christ the illumination of His Holy Spirit, to enable us to discern, not only that the body of man is in perpetual connection with his spirit, and derives from it all its life, but likewise that all the parts of In’s body are exact representative figures of the several principles in his spirit from which they proceed, and which they are intended to express. Let us resolve, further, to supplicate His divine grace, to enable us to discern the true and only source of all human defilement, until we discover clearly that this source is not in the thought or understanding, but in the will, or love; and to enable us farther to take heed, lest at any time we be found cherishing evil in this latter principle of mind and life, since in such case it must of necessity burst forth into manifestation, and cause defilement. Lastly, let us resolve to refer all evils to their two grand fountains, self-love, and the love of the world, and, especially to guard against the thoughts, or reasonings, derived from those two corrupt sources, when they become predominant; since from such thoughts, or reasonings, all evils are generated, which either defile or destroy mankind. Thus may we humbly hope, that the mind, or spirit, with which we have been gifted, instead of becoming the filthy den of the unclean affections of murder, of adultery, of fornication, of theft, of false witness, and of blasphemy, will become the clean and consecrated abode of charity, of purity, both in will and thought; of justice, of truth, and of devout acknowledgement that Jesus Christ, in His Divine Humanity, is the Father and Fountain of all life, love, peace, and benediction. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 56: 02.14. MAT_18:23-35 -- KING ACCOUNTS SERVANTS ======================================================================== Mat 18:23-35 -- King accounts Servants Therefore is the Kingdom of Heaven like a certain King, who would take account of his servants. And when he had begun to reckon, one was brought to him, which owed him ten thousand talents. But for as much as he had not to pay, his Lord commanded him to be sold, and his wife and children, and all that he had, and payment to be made. The servant therefore fell down and worshipped him, saying, Lord, have patience with me and I will pay you all. Then the Lord of that servant was moved with compassion, and loosed him and forgave him the debt. But the same: servant went out, and found one of his fellow-servants, which owed him an hundred pence: and he laid hands on him, and took him by the throat, saying, Pay me that you owe. And his fellow-servant fell down at his feet, and besought him, saying. Have patience with me, and I will pay you all. And he would not; but went and cast him into prison, till he should pay the debt. So when his fellow-servants saw what was done, they were very sorry, and came and told to their Lord all that was done. Then his Lord, after that he had called him, said to him, O you wicked servant, I forgave you all that debt, because you pleaded with me: should not you also have had compassion on your fellow-servant, even as I had pity on you? And his Lord was angry, and delivered him to the tormentors, till he should pay all that was due to him. So likewise shall my heavenly Father do also to you, if you from your hearts forgive not every one his brother their trespasses. By the King is here meant Jesus Christ, as to His Divine Wisdom, or Truth, and by taking account of his servants is to be understood, the exercise of judgement from that Divine Wisdom, or Truth, so as to discover the qualities of each. The ten thousand talents denote the immense debt which every man owes to his Creator for all the mercies of creation, preservation, redemption, and regeneration, which he has received at his hands. No one is able of himself to pay this immense debt, nor even to take account of it, because of its immensity, therefore it is said he had not to pay. By his Lord commanding him to be sold, and his wife and children, and all that he had, and payment to be made, is meant, that the man was brought into trial and exercise in his own mind, from a consciousness that, unless he paid the debt which was owing, he could not escape condemnation. The first effect produced by this trial and exercise on the part of man, was humiliation, signified by the man falling down: the second effect was acknowledgement of the Lord, His Divine Love, Wisdom, and Providence, signified by worshipping him: the third effect was intercession for a such a measure of patient endurance, as might enable him finally to discharge the debt by a full acknowledgement of the mercies he had received. By the Lord being moved with compassion, is meant the tenderness of the Divine Love towards His penitent children, when brought into judgement concerning trespasses, and especially concerning that immense debt which they owe to the Divine Being. By loosing him, is to be understood that his Affections were set at liberty to pursue an eternal object, in consequence of the spiritual trial and exercise through which he had passed. For such is the nature and effect of spiritual trial, that by it the powers of evil, to which the mind had been before subjected as a miserable slave, are disturbed and removed, in which case the soul regains its proper liberty, and being loosed from the bands of worldly and selfish attachments, regains its native freedom, to choose and pursue the eternal good for which it was created in the kingdom and favour of its Great Creator. The debt which every man owes to God is forgiven, or remitted, whenever man is brought into true humiliation of heart and life, because, in such case, he is disposed gratefully to acknowledge that all his faculties, both of body and mind, are from God, and are God’s; consequently, that all his happiness, and even all his temporal property, are from the same Divine Source. It is said of the servant that he went forth and found one of his fellow-servants, who owed him an hundred pence, and that he took him by the throat, saying, Pay me that you owe; and that his fellow-servant fell down at his feet, and besought him, saying, Have patience with me and I will pay you all. And he would not; but went and cast him into prison, until he should pay the debt. From this part of the parable we learn that, notwithstanding the operation of the Divine Love and Mercy in the inner man, the outward man was not yet reduced to obedience, so as to comply with that operation by correspondent acts of kindness and charity; in other words, the external man was not yet brought into entire submission to the law of the divine life and spirit in the internal man, as it ought to have been. By fellow-servants are meant the dictates of heavenly truth, in the external man; and by their seeing what was done, is to be understood, that all things in the external man are under the view, or instruction, of the Divine Truth; and by their being exceedingly sorry is meant, the contrariety subsisting between the dictates of heavenly truth, and the unpurified affections of the natural mind before it is regenerated; and by their telling to their Lord the things which were done is meant, the influx and communication of the Divine Truth itself with those dictates. By the Lord calling him is to be understood, the Divine Truth itself, which has its abode in the inmost principles of every human mind; and by what the Lord says to the servant, on this occasion, is to be understood, the influx of that truth into lower principles, reproving them for not attending to the operations of the Divine Mercy respecting them, and teaching that it is the intention of this mercy to produce its saving and blessed effects in the external, or natural, man, as they are manifested in the internal, or spiritual, man, that so the whole man may become a living operative form of that mercy. By the Lord being angry is to be understood, the contrariety subsisting between the Divine Truth and the natural propensity of the unregenerate man; and by delivering him to the tormentors is meant, the pain experienced on the occasion in the consciences of those who are about to be regenerated. It is said, until he should pay all that was due to him, from which words we learn, that the pain of trial and temptation is continued until a total surrender is made of the human will to the Divine, attended with the grateful acknowledgement, that all of saving Mercy, Love, Wisdom, Peace, and Protection are from God, and nothing at all from man’s self; and, further, that man ought to extend in himself the operation of those Divine Virtues and Graces, by being kind, compassionate, and merciful to others, as God is to him. The general instruction which we learn from this parable, is, that every man, from Creation, and also from Redemption, owes an immense debt to his Great Creator, and that the only method by which he can discharge this debt, is to forgive the debts of his fellow-creatures; in other words, to cherish towards them the spirit of heavenly Charity, by which he will be taught that, instead of their being indebted to him, as he must of necessity suppose in his natural and unconverted state, the truth is, that he is indebted to them, and that there is no human being to whom he does not owe obligation, more or less. We learn, further, from this parable, that it is the great intention of God to bring the internal and external man into agreement and conjunction, that so the Divine Love and Wisdom, in the internal man, may operate freely, and produce their proper fruits in the external man; but that this intention of the Divine Mercy cannot be accomplished without trials and temptations, by which the natural opposition of the external man to the Divine Rule may be overcome, and the whole man may finally be reduced to a state of total submission. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 57: 02.15. MAT_20:1-16 -- HIRED LABOURERS ======================================================================== Mat 20:1-16 -- Hired Labourers For the Kingdom of Heaven is like a man that is an Householder, which went out early in the morning to hire labourers into his vineyard. And when he had agreed with the labourers for a penny a day, he sent them into his vineyard. And he went out about the third hour, and saw others standing idle in the market-place, and said to them; Go you also into the vineyard, and whatsoever is right I will give you. And they went their way. Again he went out about the sixth and ninth hour, and did likewise. And about the eleventh hour he went out, and found others standing idle, and says to them. Why stand you here all the day idle? They say to him. Because no man has hired us. He says to them. Go you also into the vineyard; and whatsoever is right, that shall you receive. So when evening was come, the lord of the vineyard says to his steward. Call the labourers, and give them their hire, beginning from the last to the first. And when they came that were hired about the eleventh hour, they received every man a penny. But when the first came, they supposed that they should have received more; and they likewise received every man a penny. And when they had received it, they murmured against the owner of the house, saying. These last have worked but one hour, and you have made them equal to us, who have borne the burden and heat of the day. But he answered one of them, and said, Friend, I do you no wrong: did not you agree with me for a penny? Take what is yours, and go your way: I will give to this last, even as to you. Is it not lawful for me to do what I will with mine own! Is your eye evil, because I am good? So the last shall be first, and the first last: for many be called, but few chosen. The Householder signifies Jesus Christ, as to his human and divine nature, who is so called, as being the Source and Preserver of all Goods and Truths, which make Heaven and the Church. Early in the morning denotes the first state of the Church, when the light of the Divine Truth, which makes the Church, first begins to be manifested; and by going out early in the morning is signified, the first dawn of the influx of the Divine Good and Truth into the men of the Church. By the vineyard is meant the Church, which is called a vineyard, from its being planted with vines, or heavenly truths, derived from Jesus Christ, who is the True Vine; and by the labourers in this vineyard are to be understood, all those who cherish in heart and life the above Goods and Truths of the Word of God, preserving them from all those natural evils and false persuasions which have a tendency to destroy them; and by hiring these labourers is to be understood, the blessed recompense of heavenly and eternal life, proposed to all such faithful labourers. It is said, that when the Householder had agreed with the labourers for a penny a day, he sent them into his vineyard. By a penny a day is to be understood, the recompense given and procured under every particular state of the reception and growth of heavenly truth; and by agreeing with the labourers for this penny is to be further understood, conjunction of life with Jesus Christ, which is the result of that reception and growth. Sending, when applied to the Divine Being, denotes the putting forth, or emanation, of His own Divine Power; and, therefore, by sending the labourers into his vineyard is to be understood, the communicating to them Divine Power from Himself, by which they might be enabled ’to cherish, in their own hearts and lives, the heavenly goods and truths of His Most Holy Word. By the Householder going out is to be understood, the Divine Influx into the men of the Church; and by his going out about the third hour, is to be understood, a successive state of natural life with the men of the Church. The market-place signifies a state of the natural life in which man is capable of procuring to himself the Goods and Truths of Heaven and the Church; and by the Householder seeing others standing idle in it is to be understood, the Divine inspection exercised on those who were not yet converted from a natural state of life to a spiritual state, having never done the work of repentance from a sincere desire to attain regeneration through conjunction with the Divine Love and Wisdom. All such are said to be idle, because they have never applied themselves to that one thing needful, which is the great work for which they were sent into the world. But the Householder said to them, Go you also into the vineyard, and whatsoever is just, I will give you. By saying to them is meant, a Divine dictate in their hearts and consciences; and by go also into the vineyard is meant, the object of that dictate, in instructing them that it is the Divine Will, grounded in the Divine Love and Mercy, that no human being should stand idle, but that every one should endeavour to cultivate, in his own heart and life, those heavenly graces and virtues which the Father of Mercies is desirous to implant in the minds of all his children, for their eternal happiness and salvation. By the words, whatsoever is just I will give you, the Householder would instruct the idle, that they have a just God to deal with, who rewards every one according to his works; in other words, who imparts the grace of His own Love and Wisdom to every one, in proportion to his desire of it. The sixth and ninth hour signify successive states of the natural life before man becomes spiritual; and by doing likewise is meant the same thing as hiring labourers into his vineyard; that is to say, the recompense of eternal life, proposed to all those of the Church, who are faithful and diligent in cultivating the graces of the Divine Love and Wisdom. We now come to the eleventh hour, which is mentioned in the succeeding verse. Jesus Christ distinguishes the period of human life into twelve hours, when he says, Are there not twelve hours in the day? By the eleventh hour, therefore, is to be understood, the last period of natural life preceding its completion; in other words, preceding the period of final decision, either for eternal happiness or misery. The Householder now first proposes the question, Why stand you here all the day idle? to the intent that he might lead those to whom it was addressed, to make the profitable inquiry in themselves concerning the causes which withhold them from cultivating the graces, and bringing forth the fruits of the Divine Love and Wisdom in their own minds and lives. For such is the design of all inquiry proceeding from the Most High. It is not made for his own sake, or for his own information, but for the sake and for the information of others, by suggesting to them the spirit of inquisition which may conduct them to a right knowledge of God and of themselves, by leading them to explore their own secret intentions and purposes, and thus to discover the interior operations of their own minds. From the answer, Because no man has hired us, we learn, that the true reason why mankind, in general, live carelessly, and with indifference to their eternal concerns, is, because they have never been brought to reflect, in their own minds, on the inconceivable happiness reserved in heaven for all those who have cherished in their hearts and lives the graces of heaven; that is to say, the graces and virtues resulting from a right reception of the Divine Love and Wisdom. It is said, that when evening was come, the Lord of the vineyard said to his steward. Call the labourers, and give them their hire, beginning from the last to the first. By the evening is meant in this passage, the termination, or final period, of man’s natural life, when he enters upon the great realities of another world, and becomes associated with spiritual beings in that world, agreeing with the interior state of his own mind, whether it be good or evil. The Lord of the vineyard properly denotes the Divine Good of the Divine Love; and His steward, therefore, denotes the Divine Truth of His Wisdom; hence, as a steward administers to his Lord, so the Divine Truth administers to the Divine Good. Moreover, all man’s spiritual recompense is dispensed from the Divine Good by, or through, the Divine Truth; and, therefore, the Lord of the vineyard here says to his steward: Call the labourers, and give them their hire; because the hire of the labourers denotes their spiritual recompense, and all spiritual recompense is from the Divine Good, in conjunction with the Divine Truth. It is said, beginning from the last to the first, because the subject relates to recompense, and all recompense has reference to joy, delight, and happiness; and this recompense commences, first, in the natural principle, which is the last, or lowest, and then advances to the higher, or first principles of the human mind, called spiritual and celestial; nor is it full till it is communicated conjointly to all the principles. By a penny, it has been already shown, is meant the recompense given and procured under every particular state of the reception and growth of heavenly truth; and, therefore, by receiving each a penny, is to be understood, that each received a recompense of heavenly joy and delight, proportioned to the reception and growth of heavenly truth in his own mind and life. By the first supposing that they should receive more than a penny, it was intended to point out what is the general mistake and misapprehension of mankind in regard to future recompense. For it is commonly supposed, that what is called the recompense of the righteous will be dealt out hereafter, either according to the arbitrary mercy of the Almighty, or in the way of payment for particular acts of service done by his creatures, just as a master here on earth pays his servant wages for the work which he has performed. Whereas, the real truth is, that every one is rewarded hereafter, according to his reception of heavenly life; and since all heavenly life is of love and charity, therefore, every one is rewarded hereafter according to the state of his mind, in regard to those two heavenly principles, namely, Love to the Lord, and Charity towards his neighbour. It is, moreover, to be observed, that all heavenly joy and delight spring from, and are connected with, those two heavenly loves, and, therefore, it is impossible for any one to attain heavenly joy and delight, which is the pure recompense of the righteous, only so far as, by the cultivation of heavenly truth in his mind, and its fructification in his life, he is rendered receptive of the full influence and operation of the above two heavenly loves. These first, therefore, likewise received every one a penny; in other words, they received happiness according to the state of their love and affection. But it is said, that when they had received it, they murmured against the Householder, saying, These last have worked one hour and you have made them equal to us who have borne the burden and heat of the day. This murmuring denotes, that they had not worked in the vineyard from a right principle, but rather to establish their own merits; in other words, they had done good with a view to recompense, and not from the love and affection of doing good; and they had imbibed truth for selfish or worldly ends, and not from the genuine affection of truth for its own sake. And, where this is the case, it is always attended with a desire of pre-eminence and distinction, even in spiritual things; whereas, the love of goodness for the sake of goodness, and of truth for the sake of truth, is always accompanied with that spirit of self-humiliation and charity towards others which takes delight in seeing others exalted even to the highest state of happiness, whilst it is content itself to take the lowest place. And the reason is, because true love and charity find all their happiness in seeing others happy, and in serving them to promote their happiness. The burden and heat of the day are expressions to denote spiritual labour, or the difficulties which man has to surmount in the work of regeneration. Two distinct expressions, therefore, are made use of, to denote the two distinct sources of such difficulty, namely, error in the human understanding, and evil in the will, the former being called a burden, and the latter heat. To bear the burden and heat of the day, then, is to endure patiently the opposition arising from the natural false persuasions in the understanding, and the natural cravings or perverse desires in the will. The day, according to its spiritual meaning, denotes every successive state in the regenerate life. But the Householder answering, said to one of them, Friend, I do you no wrong: did you not agree with me for a penny? In the original language of the New Testament, the labourer is not here called friend, but companion; and this latter term is very well adapted to express the relationship subsisting between him and the Householder, which the term friend does not express. For a companion is one with whom we have acquaintance indeed, but this not of any very intimate sort, such as marks the connection of friendship. In the language of God, therefore, every man is called His companion who has gained any acquaintance with Him, through the knowledge of His Word and Kingdom; but he is never called a friend, until he obeys that knowledge, so as to find a delight in obedience, and in the application of what he knows to the purification and reformation of his life. The Householder says to the labourer, I do you no wrong, by which he meant to instruct him, and, through him, all the generations of men, that His ways, as being the God of the universe, are ways of justice and of judgement, and that He deals with all His children, and cannot but deal with them, according, to the most exact measure of what is right and equitable resulting from those divine principles. He meant, therefore, to teach further, that none of his children have any reason to complain of the dispensations of the Divine Providence towards them, because the wrong, or injustice, is always on their part, and not on God’s, from whom nothing can proceed but what is grounded in the purest love and mercy, directed by an infinite and unerring wisdom. The Householder further says to the labourer, Did you not agree with me for a penny? thus instructing him, that he had no reason to complain of injustice, when he had received the recompense which had been previously agreed upon; and, through him, instructing all labourers in the spiritual vineyard, that they always receive reward in proportion to their labour; in other words, that the good of heavenly love is always communicated to them in proportion to the earnest desire with which they seek it, and the sacrifices which they make of their self-love in order to attain it. In the next verse the original has it. Take your own, and go; by which is meant, that man ought to be content with that measure of the divine grace and mercy which is imparted to him by his Heavenly Father, because in all such grace and mercy, to whomsoever it is given, there is contained an infinity of blessing, and, therefore, he has no occasion either to be discontented at his own lot, or to envy another’s, because it is impossible that he himself should receive more than an infinite good, and it is alike impossible that any one else should receive more, consequently, every receiver has reason to be fully contented with the promised recompense. Again, I will give to this last even as to you, is expressed in the original, I am willing to give to this last, even as to you; and, therefore, the Householder meant to instruct the labourer, and, through him, all other spiritual labourers, that God is ever willing, out of His adorable and inexhaustible mercy, to communicate Himself, and all that He has, to the least and lowest of His creatures, and that the only limit set to such communication, is the capacity of his creatures to receive. He meant, therefore, to improve that capacity, by exciting in his creatures such a devout sense of His fatherly tenderness and loving-kindness, as may dispose them to exert all possible earnestness in rendering themselves suitable to receive and to co-operate with His Divine Love and Wisdom. The Householder then proposes these two significant questions to this murmuring labourer:- Is it not lawful for me to do what I will with mine own? Is your eye evil, because I am good? The purport of the first question cannot be understood, until a correction be made in its expression; for, in the original tongue, it is not said with mine own, but in mine own, and according to this mode of expression the sense is plain and obvious, teaching that the Almighty has all power in His own kingdom, and in his own people, to mould and form them after His own image and likeness, but with an endless variety, according to the several capacities and degrees of reception in each. It was intended, therefore, to teach further, that man’s highest duty consists in preparing himself to be a humble and thankful receiver of the Divine Mercy and Truth, because, in such case, he admits into his mind a measure of the Divine Omnipotence, to which he attaches himself, and in connection with which he finds the Scripture fulfilled, which says, All things are possible to him that believes. The question, Is your eye evil because I am good? involves in it two points of the greatest moment, to be well considered by every.intelligent mind. The first point is, that God is the purest goodness, and, consequently, that from him no evil can come of any sort or degree. The second point is, an inquiry concerning the origin of evil, and particularly concerning the origin of a perverse understanding, or judgement, signified here by an evil eye. The Almighty, therefore, by this significant question, intended to lead all his children to explore in themselves, so as clearly to discover, the origin of all that corruption of the will, or heart, and that perverseness of the understanding and thoughts, which are so manifestly at variance with His Divine Love and Wisdom. He meant thus to lead them to see that all evil originates in a perversion of good, and, therefore, is nothing else but a good separated from its divine source, by being supposed to belong to man as his own, and not to be derived continually from God. The parable concludes with these words. So the first shall be last, and the last first, for many are called, but few chosen, by which is meant, that they who have cherished humble and lowly sentiments of themselves, shall be exalted in the divine favour and mercy; in other words, they shall become receptive of that favour and mercy in a degree proportioned to their humiliation. On the contrary, they who have cherished high ideas of their own merits, and have thought to gain the highest place in Heaven, in the way of recompense for their good works, will be last and lowest in the divine estimation, and that because by their high opinion of their own merits they have separated themselves from a right reception and acknowledgement of the divine mercy and favour, and have thus been led to impute salvation to themselves, more than to God. The called, are they who receive the knowledge of God in their understandings; and since this is the case with the generality of those who possess the Sacred Scriptures, or Word of God, therefore they are said to be many: but the chosen, are they who receive the love of God in their wills, together with the truth of God in their understandings, for these are they whom God always chooses, as being in most agreement with the purities of His own love and mercy: and since this love of God is a plant of rarer growth than the knowledge of God, therefore, these are said to be comparatively few. We learn generally from this parable, that the Almighty in His infinite mercy, is at all times desirous to communicate to man His own eternal truth, for the purpose of reformation and regeneration, and that with this view He invites man to co-operate both with his will, his understanding, and his works, that so all those principles of his life may be formed according to the truth, and rendered productive of its heavenly fruits of love and charity. We are instructed further, that different persons are called, at different periods of life, to this great work, and that some, therefore, enter upon it at an earlier period, and some at a later, but that the recompense promised to all is the same, namely, that every one shall be gifted with heavenly love and wisdom in proportion to his desire of those heavenly graces, and in proportion also to the sincerity with which he labours to remove all opposite principles from his heart and life, and to bring all his natural affections, thoughts, and delights, into subjection to the spiritual ones in which they originate. We are, further, instructed to guard against all that selfishness of our spirit, which would incline us either to seek to establish our own merits, and thus to be greater in the Kingdom of Heaven than others, or to seek to depreciate the merits of others, and thus to love to see them below ourselves. And, lastly, we learn that we ought thus to abase ourselves, and to exalt others, from a feeling sense and apprehension of that divine inexhaustible mercy, which is always willing to make others happy out of itself, and which thus finds its own greatest bliss in imparting bliss to others. Thus may we humbly hope to become the greatest in the Kingdom of Heaven, whilst we are seeking to be the least, and not to be found amongst the called only, but amongst the chosen also, whilst we labour to bring our whole will, understanding, and operation, into an entire conformity and submission to the Divine Will, Wisdom, and Operation of Jesus Christ. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 58: 02.16. MAT_21:28-32 -- MAN WITH TWO SONS ======================================================================== Mat 21:28-32 -- Man with Two Sons A certain man had two sons; and he came to the first, and said, Son, go work today in my vineyard. He answered and said, I will not: but afterward he repented, and went. And he came to the second, and said likewise. And he answered and said, I go, sir: and went not. Whether of those two did the will of his father? They say to him, The first. Jesus says to them, Verily I say to you, that the tax collectors and the harlots go into the kingdom of God before you. For John came to you in the way of righteousness, and you believed him not: but the tax collectors and the harlots believed him: and you, when you had seen it, repented not afterward, that you might believe him. In the original, it is said, a man had two sons, the word certain being added by the translators; and by the term man is here meant, the Lord in His Divine Humanity, who is, properly, the Only Man, whilst all other men are men by derivation from Him, or in consequence of the life which He continually imparts. By the two sons, therefore, of this man, are figured and represented two distinct classes of people, comprehending the whole human race; one of which classes, as it afterwards appears, is principled in an obedient will, but not so much in an enlightened understanding, whilst the other is in possession of an enlightened understanding, but is deficient in the point of obedience, or of a submissive will. It is written of the above man and his two sons, that He came to the first, and said, Son, go work today in my vineyard. Two distinct expressions are here employed to denote the two distinct principles of the divine love and the divine wisdom; the former of which is involved in the term came, whilst the latter is involved in the term said. Thus the two terms combined denote the marriage-union of those two divine principles, and inculcate, further, the edifying lesson, that before the Almighty can address man to advantage with His divine wisdom, He must first come, and move man’s affections by the presence of His divine love; in other words, man must begin to regard an eternal end, before he can be qualified to understand the eternal truth. By the vineyard is spiritually understood the Lord’s Church here on earth, agreeably to what is written in the Prophet, The vineyard of the Lord of Hosts is the House of Israel (Isa 5:7). And the Church is a vineyard in consequence of cherishing the principles of heavenly truth from Jesus Christ, who, as being the divine fountain of truth, calls Himself the true vine (John xv). To go, then, and work in this vineyard, is the important duty binding on all the children of men, as implying a life in conformity to the truth, signified by the term go, and also co-operation with Jesus Christ in opposing those affections, appetites, and passions, which are contrary to the truth, signified by the term work. It is said today, because by today, according to the spiritual idea, is meant, to eternity, and, therefore, the expression is used in order to instruct mankind, that they ought for ever to cherish in their minds the principles of heavenly life, by combating all contrary principles, and thus rendering themselves receptive, to all eternity, of the divine love and the divine wisdom. The reply and consequent conduct of the first son involve in them two distinct considerations; first, that the understanding of this son was not in agreement with his father’s requirement, which disagreement is marked by his saying, I will not; for saying has reference to the thought or understanding-: and, secondly, that the will of this son was not opposed to the father’s command, on which account it is said, that afterwards he repented and went. By this son, therefore, as was above hinted, are represented and described all those of the human race, who externally, or in thought, oppose divine counsels, but who yet inwardly, or in affection, do not oppose; thus by this son are represented and described specifically the Gentiles, who are not in possession of the Word of revelation, and who, consequently, cherish thoughts, ideas, and persuasions, which are not in agreement with that Word, but who, yet, notwithstanding this disagreement in their intellect, are still, by reason of their simplicity and sincerity, disposed to admit the Eternal Truth for the rule and government of their lives. The reply and consequent conduct of the second son involve in them the true state of his mind, which was such, as to enable him to discern clearly what his duty was, and how he ought to comply with his father’s will, whilst, at the same time, his own will was inclined to act contrary to his father’s, and also to oppose his own sense of duty and obligation. Thus, this second son is a representative figure of all those of the human race, whose understandings are enlightened to see what line of conduct is good and right for them to pursue, but whose inclinations lead them in a contrary direction, in consequence of being opposed to all the dictates of truth and equity. He is more specifically a representative figure of the Jewish nation, who, being in possession of the eternal truth, as made known in the Word of revelation, and having their understandings thus enlightened with the knowledge of God, and of His Holy Laws, were yet disinclined, in will, to conform to that knowledge, and to obey those laws. As, therefore, the first son specifically represented the Gentiles, so the second son specifically represented the Jews. In the question, Whether of those two did the will of his father? the Blessed Jesus makes an appeal to the common sense- and reason of mankind, under the full assurance, that the answer would be such as is here recorded, where it is written, They say to Him, the first. Thus the Blessed Jesus would instruct us that the common sense and reason of mankind, if they were fairly consulted, would favour the great design of religion, which means nothing else but to call man to the discharge of the important duties which he owes to his Heavenly Father, because common sense and reason must see the miserable infatuation of all those, who profess one thing with their lips, whilst in their hearts they pursue another, or, what amounts to the same, who have their understandings enlightened with the knowledge of truth, whilst their wills are defiled and misled by the love of evil. In the concluding application of the parable the Blessed Jesus confirms the observation above made, that by the first son, there mentioned, are to be understood the Gentiles, or those who have not formed their understandings in agreement with the Eternal Truth; and that by the second son are to be understood the Jews, or those who were in possession of the Holy Word, and were thus acquainted with the laws and precepts of the divine wisdom. For, by the tax collectors and harlots, are manifestly meant the Gentiles, and the term you, with equal clearness, designates the Jews. In the above words, therefore, the Blessed Jesus evidently teaches the important lesson, that they who are principled in simplicity and sincerity of will; in other words, who are disposed to do the whole of their duty uprightly, and in the fear of God, although the knowledge of that duty is very incorrect, are better qualified to admit the Eternal Truth, than those who are acquainted, intellectually, with the measures of their duty, and yet, in heart and affection, are not inclined to perform it. Accordingly, he declares, that the former go into the kingdom of God before the latter; because, by going into the kingdom of God, the same thing is meant as receiving the Eternal Truth, inasmuch as the reception of the Eternal Truth opens and forms in man the kingdom of God, and, consequently, man goes into the kingdom of God so far as he admits the Eternal Truth to enlighten his understanding, and regulate his love and life. Jesus Christ, therefore, adds, John came to you in the way of righteousness, because, by John is represented the Holy Word, or the Eternal Truth; and by his coming in the way of righteousness, is described the presence and influence of that Word in the human mind, and also the principles which constitute it, namely, the principles of wisdom and of love; for, by the way of righteousness, or, as it might be more properly expressed, the way of justice, both those principles are intended to be expressed, inasmuch as the term way, when applied in the Sacred Scriptures, has perpetual reference to truth, or doctrine, as righteousness, or justice, has reference equally constant to the principles of love and charity. When, therefore, Jesus Christ tells the Jews that they believed him not, that is to say, believed not John, it is the same thing as if He had said, that they received not the Eternal Truth; and when He adds, that the tax collectors and harlots believed him, it is again the same thing as if He had said, that they, who are signified by tax collectors and harlots, received the Eternal Truth. Lastly, when he concludes in these words. And you, when you had seen [it], repented not afterwards that you might believe. He teaches the additional important lesson, that they who are principled in the knowledge of the truth, but are not obedient to its dictates, finally reject the truth, because they are unwilling to renounce these evils which the truth makes manifest, or, as it is here expressed, They repent not that they might believe. It is said, when you had seen [it], and it is next said, You repented not afterwards that you might believe, plainly teaching that there is an essential difference between seeing the truth and believing it, and that there can be no proper belief, only so far as there is a desire to forsake sin, or to repent. For it is possible that truth may be seen by the understanding, to be truth, when yet the will, or love, is not affected by it, but it cannot be believed in, until the will, or love, becomes so affected as to be led to reject all evil as sin against God, thus to repent. We therefore learn from this parable, that all the families of mankind may be referred to two classes; one consisting of those who, in understanding, are acquainted with their duty, but who, in their wills, are not so well-disposed to practise it; and the other, consisting of those who are inclined to do their duty, but who are not so well instructed in the particulars which that duty requires. We learn, further, that each of these classes of mankind are called, by their Heavenly Father, to work today in his vineyard; in other words, to cherish eternally, in their minds and lives, all the principles of heaven-born truth, that so they may bring forth to all eternity the blessed fruits of heaven-born love and charity. Lastly, we learn, that they who have the light of knowledge in their understandings, but not the love of that light in their wills, make fair professions of obedience to the above call, whilst, in reality, they are disobedient, because they do not allow the light to remove their natural evils, and conduct them thus, in the way of repentance, to a state of purification and regeneration; and that, on the other hand, they who are well-disposed in will, but not so much enlightened in understanding, although they make no professions of obedience, are still obedient, because they suffer the little truth with which they are acquainted to control their natural evils, and bring their lives under the regulations of heavenly order. Let us now ponder well on the distinct characters of these two classes of people, until we see clearly that sincere obedience to the divine law, though attended with little knowledge of its particular requirements, is infinitely preferable to much knowledge, if unattended with love and practice. Let us further consider seriously, that our Heavenly Father is continually saying to us, as he says to his two sons in the parable, Son, go work today in my vineyard, and that our eternal happiness will depend on our obedience to the call, because our eternal happiness must of necessity depend on the measure and degree in which we admit and cherish in our mind and life the blessed principles of heaven-born love and wisdom. Lastly, through the grace and mercy of our Heavenly Father, let us repent sincerely of all our sins, that so we may no longer be like the proud Pharisees of old, who were acquainted with the law of salvation, and yet were disobedient to that law; but may rather be of the blessed character of those of whom it is written. They enter into the kingdom of God before you. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 59: 02.17. MAT_21:33-41 -- PLANTING A VINEYARD ======================================================================== Mat 21:33-41 -- Planting a Vineyard There was a certain Householder, which planted a vineyard, and hedged it round about, and dug a winepress in it, and built a tower, and let it out to tenants, and went into a far country; and when the time of the fruit drew near, he sent his servants to the tenants, that they might receive the fruits of it. And the tenants took his servants, and beat one, and killed another, and stoned another. Again, he sent other servants more than the first: and they did to them likewise. But last of all he sent to them his son, saying, They will reverence my son. But when the tenants saw the son, they said among themselves, This in the heir; come, let us kill him, and let us seize on his inheritance. And they caught him, and cast him out of the vineyard, and slew him. When the Lord therefore of the vineyard comes, what will he do to those tenants? They say to Him, He will miserably destroy those wicked men, and will let out his vineyard to other tenants, which shall render him the fruits in their seasons. The Householder is the Incarnate God, whose name is Jesus Christ, and He is called a Householder because He is All in All in His house, which is Heaven and the Church. By Jesus Christ being All in All in Heaven and the Church, is meant, that Heaven and the Church, or, what is the same thing, the angels of Heaven and men of the Church, are formed from, and sustained by, His divine love and wisdom, so that there is nothing in Heaven and the Church but what is under the guidance and government of those divine principles, consequently, under the guidance and government of Jesus Christ Himself. That Heaven and the Church may with propriety be called the house of Jesus Christ is evident from this consideration, because they are so called in the Sacred Scriptures. For the temple built by Solomon is sometimes called a temple, and sometimes a house; and this is the case, too, with the temple seen in vision by Ezekiel. And since there is every reason to believe that both these temples, or houses, were types or figures of Heaven and the Church, therefore, there can be no impropriety in calling Heaven and the Church the Lord’s house. Moreover, a house means a place to dwell in, and, according to this meaning, Heaven and the Church may fitly be called the house or habitation of Jesus Christ, inasmuch as He dwells in angels and men, agreeably to his own words, where he says, If a man love me he will keep my words, and my Father will love him, and we will come to him, and make our abode with him (John 14:23). It is said of this Householder that he planted a vineyard. A vineyard is a place where vines grow; and by a vine is signified spiritual truth, which is the truth of God’s Most Holy Word, spiritually understood, according to which sense, Jesus Christ calls Himself the True Vine. The vineyard, therefore, here spoken of, denotes the reception of such truth by the men of the Church; and, therefore, the men of the Church, or the receivers of such truth, are called by the Prophet, The vineyard of the Lord of Hosts, where it is written, The vineyard of the Lord of Hosts is the house of Israel, and the men of Judah his pleasant plant; (Isa 5:7). for by the house of Israel and the men of Judah are meant the men of the Church. As the vineyard, here spoken of, manifestly denotes a spiritual vineyard, so the hedge, by which it is encompassed, must denote a spiritual hedge; the meaning of which may be discovered from the use of a natural hedge; the latter, as every one knows, is for defence, and also to distinguish a garden, a field, and vineyard, from that which is not a garden, a field, and vineyard. In like manner, a spiritual hedge is for the defence of a spiritual garden, field, or vineyard, and also to distinguish it from that which is not a spiritual garden, field, or vineyard. The principles of mind and life which constitute this spiritual hedge are all those principles of heavenly love and wisdom which lead man to distinguish clearly in his own mind between good and evil, between truth and error, between what is of God, and what is not of God; thus, between heaven and hell, between light and darkness, between what makes an angel and what makes an infernal. For, in proportion to the clearness in which such distinctions are seen, will be the defence and security of the spiritual vineyard: not that defence and security arise from distinctions alone, but from the arrangement and order to which distinctions lead. For it is an eternal law that there can be no spiritual defence and security without arrangement and order; and there can be no arrangement and order without distinction of the principles which are to be arranged and brought into order; therefore it is necessary for every individual member of the Church, who wishes to secure his spiritual vineyard by its proper hedge, to distinguish well, in himself, between his internal and external man, also between his will, his understanding, and his operation; thus, between good and truth, between charity, faith, and good works, because his salvation depends, in a great measure, on the conjunction of these things in himself; and they can never be conjoined until they be first clearly seen and distinguished. The meaning of the winepress, can only be discovered from the use of a natural winepress, which, every one knows, is to separate the juice of the grape from the husk, and thus to discover and make manifest the quality of the grapes which are pressed in it. For, before the grapes are put into the winepress, it is impossible to know whether they be good or bad grapes, sweet or sour, wholesome or unwholesome. In like manner, without exploration and examination of man’s works, which are the fruits of his vineyard, it is impossible for him to know what is their proper quality, whether they be good works or evil works - works which will save, or works which will condemn him; and, hence, it is to be concluded, that exploration and examination form the true spiritual winepress which every wise householder digs in his vineyard. The spiritual meaning of the tower, which the householder built in his vineyard, like that of the winepress, can only be learnt from the use of a natural tower; which use, as every one knows, is two-fold, namely, for observation and defence; for observation, in discovering the approach of an enemy, and for defence against an enemy when his approach is discovered. A natural tower, therefore, is an elevated building, to increase its power of observation; and it is also a strong building, to increase its power of defence. Exactly similar is the case of the spiritual tower, with this only difference, that the spiritual tower is designed for the observation of spiritual enemies, and for defence against them. The spiritual tower, therefore, consists of elevated thought, that is to say, thought derived from the truths of God’s Most Holy Word, and exalted to conjunction with Jesus Christ and His kingdom, through the elevating power of heavenly love and charity; and such thought is capable of discovering the approach of spiritual enemies, and, at the same time, of defending itself against their assaults. The power of observation, arising from a state of elevated thought, and the power of defence, in the spiritual idea, are one and the same thing; spiritual defence being, in all cases, the result of elevated thought, as spiritual insecurity is at all times the effect of non-elevated thought. And the reason is, because elevated thought, as was observed, is thought exalted to conjunction with Jesus Christ, consequently to conjunction with His Omnipotence; whereas, non-elevated thought, not being connected with the Divine Omnipotence, has no power at all against spiritual adversaries. By tenants, to whom the vineyard is said to be let out, are to be understood spiritual tenants; and by letting out the vineyard to such tenants is meant, the communicating to them the knowledge of the Eternal Truth, to the intent that they may cherish it in their hearts and lives until it brings forth its heavenly fruits of love and charity. In the same sense, the Lord is said to have placed the first man in the garden of Eden, to dress it, and to keep it, because the garden of Eden, like the vineyard, here spoken of, was a figure of man’s intellectual mind, stored with the rich and holy truths of God’s Most Holy Word; and to dress and keep this garden, is to preserve those holy truths from decay, that so they may bring forth their proper fruits of heavenly love, and life, and peace. By the Householder, it has been already seen, is meant, the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ; and by his going into a far country is to be understood his apparent absence, whilst man is under the first insemination of truth; for, during such insemination, he is necessarily led to conceive that God is afar off, nor can he possibly get quit of this sentiment, until the truth produces its fruit of love and charity; for it is the spirit of love and charity which alone brings God near to man, and removes all idea of distance and separation. The time of the fruit drawing near, denotes the period when truth, received in the understanding, begins to affect the will and its love; for the fruit, here spoken of, is the fruit of the spiritual vineyard, and the fruit of the spiritual vineyard is nothing else but love and charity, and the good works to which they give birth. For, in the kingdom of grace, as in that of nature, there is a variety of seasons, answering to the four seasons of the year, called Spring, Summer, Autumn, and Winter. Spring is a season distinguished by the first insemination and reception of the Eternal Truth in the human understanding. Summer is the season when such truth enters and operates on the will, or love, and produces in it its own heavenly fruits of righteousness, joy, and peace. Autumn is the season when the above fruit is brought to its maturity. And Winter is the season of spiritual trial and temptation, in which the plants of heavenly truth take deeper root in the faithful and patient mind, and are thus prepared for future seasons of increased fruitfulness and use. By the servants, sent by the Householder to receive the fruits of the vineyard, are to be understood, the teachers of Holy Truth, and thus, the truths which they teach, especially respecting God, as the sole Author of all that is good in man, consequently, as the sole Proprietor of all the fruits of man’s spiritual vineyard. Not that God, for His own sake, wishes to be regarded as such a Proprietor, but for the sake of man, because it is for the happiness of man that he should acknowledge - and acknowledge gratefully - that all the fruits of his vineyard, that is to say, all his love and charity, all his good words and works, all his joys and delights, are from God, and, therefore, properly belong to God. But it is said, that the tenants took his servants, and beat one, and killed another, and stoned another. By taking the servants is to be understood, that they apprehended the truths of God’s Holy Word in their understandings; but that this apprehension was confined to the understanding, and did not extend its influence to the will, is plain, from its being said afterwards, that they beat one, killed another, and stoned another: which expressions denote the different methods of treatment of the Eternal Truth by those who are not willing to submit to its guidance and government. For, to beat the servants, denotes the perversion of truth by evils of life; to kill the servants, denotes to deprive truth of its life, by separating it from the spirit of love and charity; and to stone the servants, denotes to falsify truth, by applying it to the confirmation of what is evil and false, The Householder (it is said) again sent other servants more than the first, and they did to them likewise. From which words we learn, that the Almighty is not satisfied with presenting only one message to His children to require their love and obedience; but, if His first message fails, He multiplies His invitations, being desirous, out of His tender love, to try every possible method of converting them to Himself, that so He may bless them with all the blessings of His Divine Love and Wisdom from Himself. By the Householder sending His Son, is meant, God manifest in the flesh; for whether we speak of God sending His Son into the world, or of God manifesting Himself in the flesh, it is the same thing, denoting that, in the fullness of time the Eternal Jehovah, the Creator of all things, descended here on earth, and assumed the Humanity, which He afterwards glorified, or made one with Himself, and all this for the purpose of effecting the salvation of man, by subduing his spiritual enemies, and by giving him continual access to Himself in His Glorified or Divine Humanity. The words, They will reverence my Son, were intended to teach, that no expectation could be more reasonable, than that the Incarnate God, when He appeared upon earth to instruct, to bless, and to save His, otherwise lost, creatures, would have been kindly and affectionately received by them; as, on the other hand, no expectation could be more unreasonable, than that the Maker of the world, coming down to restore to it His peace and love, should be treated with indignity, and, finally, be rejected, crucified, slain, and thus cast out of His own vineyard which Himself had planted, and the fruitfulness of which He was desirous of promoting. It is said, that when the tenants saw the Son, they said among themselves, This is the heir; come, let us kill him, and let us seize on his inheritance. By the Son is meant, God manifested in the human nature; and by seeing Him is to be understood, an apprehension of this truth in the understanding, for every one may be said to see the Son of God who receives, in his intellectual mind, any knowledge concerning his manifestation in the flesh. In the original it is expressed, they said in themselves, to denote that this was the interior thought and purpose of their hearts, to destroy in themselves the revealed truth concerning the manifestation of God in the flesh, because they discerned clearly, that if they admitted this truth to rule in their minds, they could no longer live to themselves and the world as they delighted to do. With the destruction of this truth, respecting the Incarnate God, was connected the additional thought and purpose of seizing on his inheritance, because the inheritance of God is the heart of man; and to seize on this inheritance, is to remove the heart from God, that it may live to itself, without God, as every wicked and unbelieving man lives, by persuading himself that his life is his own, and not God’s, and, thus, that he is his own lord and master, independent of God, and of His righteous laws. By taking him, and casting him out of the vineyard, is to be understood, the closing of their understandings against the bright light of the Eternal Truth announcing the Incarnate God; and by killing him is to be understood, that they voluntarily destroyed in themselves the life of heavenly love and charity, which is the essential life of the Incarnate God. Jesus Christ here proposes a question in the following words: When, therefore, the Lord of the vineyard comes, what will he do to those tenants? Observe, that Jesus Christ does not Himself pronounce sentence upon the wicked tenants, but puts his hearers on the inquiry concerning it, of which the reason appears to be this, that the punishment of the wicked does not come from Jesus Christ, but from themselves, although the appearance is as if it came from Jesus Christ alone, and not at all from themselves. To lead men, therefore, to correct this appearance, that so they may discover what is the true source and origin of all punishment, Jesus Christ proposes the above significant question. Then follows the sentence itself, He will miserably destroy those wicked men, and will let out the vineyard to other tenants, who will render him the fruits in their season. We learn from these words, that all evil brings upon itself its own destruction; in other words, that wicked men destroy themselves, although, to appearance, they are destroyed by God. We learn, also, the manner of their destruction, that it is by separating themselves from all communication with the Eternal Truth, and, thus, with Heaven, where the Eternal Truth is All in All. This separation is signified by the vineyard being let out to other tenants, for the vineyard is the knowledge of the Eternal Truth; and to be let out to other tenants denotes, therefore, that this knowledge was taken away from those who abused it, to be given to those who would profit by it. We learn, therefore, further, from the above words, a signal proof of the Divine mercy of the Most High, which leads Him ever to communicate to mankind the saving-knowledge of Himself, that so He may rule in their hearts and bless them; and when this saving knowledge is rejected by one people, it never fails to be immediately imparted to another. Thus, the Divine Providence is continually operative to establish a church of pure worshippers here on earth, with a view, at once to extend its blessings, to find for itself an habitation, and to provide for the increase and support of the angelic kingdom. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 60: 02.18. MAT_22:1-15 -- KING'S SON ======================================================================== Mat 22:1-15 -- King’s Son And Jesus answered and spoke to them again by parables, and said, The Kingdom of Heaven is like a certain King, who made a marriage for his son, and sent forth, his servants to call them that were invited to the wedding: and they would not come. Again he sent forth other servants, saying, Tell them which are invited, Behold, I have prepared my dinner: my oxen and my fattened cattle are killed, and all things are ready: come to the marriage. But they made light of it, and went their ways, one to his farm, another to his merchandise: and the remnant took his servants, and entreated them spitefully, and slew them. But when the King heard thereof, he was angry: and he sent forth his armies, and destroyed those murderers, and burned up their city. Then says he to his servants, The wedding is ready, but they who were invited were not worthy. Go you therefore into the highways, and as many as you shall find, invite to the marriage. So those servants went out into the highways, and gathered together all as many as they found, both bad and good: and the wedding was furnished with guests. And when the king came in to see the guests, he saw there a man which had not on a wedding garment: and he says to him, Friend, how do you deserve to be in here not having a wedding garment? And he was speechless. Then said the King to the servants, Bind him hand and foot, and take him away, and cast him into outer darkness; there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. For many are called, but few are chosen. By the Kingdom of Heaven is to be understood, the government and guidance of the Divine Love and Wisdom of Jesus Christ; for Heaven is Heaven, by virtue of the reception of Divine Love and Wisdom; and it is called a kingdom, from the government and guidance of that Love and Wisdom. This Kingdom of Heaven is like a certain King who made a marriage for his Son, because, by the King, who here made a marriage for his Son, is to be understood, the Supreme Divinity, called Jehovah, in the Old Testament, and Father, in the New, uniting Himself with the Humanity which He assumed here on earth in the womb of the Virgin Mary. This union is called a marriage, and, therefore, the Kingdom of Heaven is like this marriage, because the Kingdom of Heaven is formed from an union of similar principles, namely, from heavenly Love and heavenly Wisdom, or, what is the same thing, from heavenly Good and heavenly Truth. By the servants whom the King sent forth are to be understood, the ministers of God, or the teachers of His Most Holy Word; and since the things which those, ministers teach are the truths of that Word, therefore, by the servants here spoken of, are to be understood those truths themselves, which may be considered as ministering, or subservient to the heavenly good of Love and Charity, to which they point. It is the intent of the revelation of God, which He has been pleased to make to mankind in His Holy Word, to invite them to an eternal conjunction with Himself, by the reception of His own Love and Wisdom. There is not, therefore, a single truth contained in that revelation but what points to such conjunction, and was intended to conduct man to a participation of its eternal blessedness. This, therefore, is what is signified by the servants calling them that were invited to the marriage. The expressions rendered in our translation, call and invited, are the same in the original tongue, and, therefore, the passage ought to have been given, to call them that were called to the marriage. Now, the call to the heavenly marriage is actually two-fold; because it is, first, a call of the understanding, and, secondly, a call of the will. Man is called to the heavenly marriage in his understanding, when he first receives the knowledge of the eternal Truth, and is thus made acquainted with God and His kingdom, and, at the same time, with that rule of life which conducts to God and His Kingdom. This call, however, is not of itself sufficient to introduce him into Heaven and conjunction with God, because no knowledge is of itself competent to that purpose. It is necessary, therefore, when a sufficient store of knowledge has been implanted, that he be called a second time, to bring such knowledge into practice, by forming his life, accordingly; and when this is effected, then his will, or love, is united with his understanding, and, by this double call, he is introduced to the marriage, because the heavenly marriage is, and means, nothing else but such conjunction. In the original, instead of they would not come, the expression is, they were not willing to come, to instruct us that it was the abuse of their free will which prevented their coming, and that, consequently, they wanted the inclination, but not the power, to come, for every one is gifted, by his Almighty Creator, with the faculty of choosing for himself either good or evil, which was signified by the two trees planted in the garden of Eden. But all good is of God and of His kingdom, and all evil is of the Devil and his kingdom. Every man, therefore, is gifted with the faculty of choosing God and the things of His kingdom, or the Devil and the things of his kingdom; and he chooses either the one or the other, according to the determination of his love, or, what is the same thing, of his supreme joy or delight. For, if he loves himself only, and the things of this world, in preference to God and the things of His kingdom, he then chooses evil in preference to good, and thus abuses his free-will. But if he loves God and the things of His kingdom, in preference to himself and the things of this world, he then chooses good instead of evil, and, in so doing, he applies his free-will according to the happy purposes for which it was given him by his merciful Creator. By the other servants, whom the King sent forth, are to be understood, other applications of the Divine Truth, or the Divine Truth expressed in another form. Thus, for instance, it is the same Divine Truth which is expressed in the writings of Moses, and in the writings of the Prophets; but the form of expression is varied in each, and it is this variety of expression, and not of the truth itself, which is alluded to in this account of the other servants here said to be sent forth by the heavenly King. The term behold, is a term applied to excite attention to the subject which follows, in the present case, therefore, to the dinner which was prepared, to instruct us that this dinner is a subject worthy all attention, and better deserving it than any other, because it is a subject to which the attention called by God Himself, and God never calls man to attend to anything but what is most worthy of his attention. The term dinner is used to express all consociation of Love and Charity, because all feasts, whether they were dinners or suppers, were originally ordained for the purpose of cherishing such consociation. By the dinner, therefore, being prepared, is to be understood, that the Almighty had provided every thing necessary for the establishment of such consociation of Love and Charity between angels in heaven and men upon earth. Thus, by this part of the invitation, all mankind are called to enter into consociation of Love and Charity with the angelic kingdom, and in so doing, to eat of their bread, and drink of their cup, according as it is written, Man did eat angels food, and he gave them bread to the full (Psa 78:25). The oxen and fattened cattle denote different kinds and degrees of heavenly good, which constitute the King’s dinner, and in this view, the various animals appointed for sacrifice, under the old law, are to be considered as representative of some heavenly principles of life which were required to be acknowledged as coming from God, and to be offered up to God. In the present case, therefore, oxen and fattened cattle are applied to denote all those heavenly affections, both natural and spiritual, which are implanted in man by his Heavenly Father, and which alone conjoin God with man and man with God. It is written, all things are ready. By all things are meant, all things on the part of God necessary for man’s regeneration, whether they be internal or external; and by their being ready is to be understood, that they are always at hand with man, and waiting to be formed into his life, whenever he is disposed, in his free will, to admit them. The invitation, come to the marriage, implies a most gracious call of the divine mercy and loving-kindness of the Most High to every individual of the human race, pressing and inviting him to an eternal conjunction of life, of blessing, and of protection, with Himself and His kingdom. It implies, further, a call to every man to conjoin in his own heart and life the eternal principles of heavenly Love and Wisdom, or, what is the same thing, of Charity and Faith, because the former conjunction of man with his God depends entirely upon the accomplishment of this latter conjunction of the above heavenly principles in his own mind and life. To make light of a thing, is to account it of little value, and to be but little affected by it; and, therefore, to make light of the invitation to come to the marriage, implies, that the persons invited thought the heavenly marriage a thing of little value, and were but little affected by it. For such is the case with the impenitent, the thoughtless, and unconverted. Even Heaven itself appears in their eyes as a trifling and insignificant possession, whilst the things of this world seem to be the only grand objects which deserve their attention. Thus, they mistake entirely the nature of true greatness; calling that great which in itself is little, and that little which in itself is great; and, by a terrible perversion of their faculties, they invert all order, setting themselves above God, earth above heaven, temporal things above eternal, and death above life. My going away is to be understood, a separation of themselves from that eternal conjunction with God and Heaven which was proffered to their acceptance. And this was a natural and necessary consequence of their making light of it, since no man was ever known to draw near with his affections to any object of which he thinks vilely and contemptibly. Man will, of course, separate himself from Heaven in the degree that his affections are not interested in its important realities; nor will he ever draw near, as he ought, to the blessed kingdom, except in proportion as his understanding is enlightened, and his will purified, to see and to feel that the things of that kingdom merit his regard and esteem infinitely above all other things whatsoever. In the sense of the letter, one going to his field, and another to his merchandise, expresses the preference which men usually give to worldly concerns and occupations above the concerns and occupations of eternal life; but, in the spiritual sense it means, that they prefer natural good to spiritual good, and natural truth to spiritual truth; for, in a spiritual sense, a man’s field (or, as the original has it, his own field) denotes his will, or love; and merchandise denotes his understanding, or truth. The next words describe the methods by which wicked and unbelieving men destroy, in themselves, the heavenly truths of God’s most Holy Word; for, by the servants here spoken of, as was shown above, are meant those truths which are destroyed in men’s minds, principally by two methods; first, by vilifying them, or making them appear contemptible in their understandings; and, secondly, by depriving them of the life of love and charity in their wills. The first method is expressed by entreating them spitefully, and the second, by slaying them. It is said, that when the King heard thereof he was angry. Anger and wrath are frequently attributed to God, in the Sacred Scriptures, not that it is to be supposed that any such qualities, or properties, exist in the Divine Being, who, in Himself, is, and ever must be, the purest and most essential mercy, love, goodness, and compassion. But the contrary qualities of wrath, anger, and vengeance, are attributed to Him in the same way that repentance is attributed to Him, though it is plain that God never repents, as He Himself also declares. The reason, then, why God is said to be angry and wrathful, as well as to repent, is, because the Sacred Scriptures are written according to appearances, and, if they were not so written, they could not have been adapted to the apprehension of the natural man. The appearance, therefore, is, that God is angry and wrathful with the wicked, and that He also repents of His purposes, but the real truth is, that He never repents, neither is He ever angry or wrathful, and that if He appears so, it is owing to the wickedness of man, who always supposes that God is angry with him, and ready to punish his wicked deeds. Every man, therefore, in this respect, makes his own God, according to the idea which he forms of God; and, consequently, a wicked man sees nothing, and can see nothing, but a God of anger and wrath, whilst a good man sees nothing, and can see nothing, but a God of mercy and love. It is accordingly written, with the pure you will show yourself pure, and with the perverse you will show yourself perverse. The armies of the Lord, or, as they are sometimes called, His host, denote the angelic host, when applied in a good sense, as executing the purposes of salvation; but when applied in a contrary sense, as in the present case, for the purpose of destruction, they denote the powers of darkness; in which sense it is written, in another place, concerning the rebellious Israelites, that the Lord sent evil angels among them. Not that it is to be supposed that the merciful Lord sends evil, or evil angels, among any people, but that the wicked and impenitent, by their wickedness and impenitence, plunge themselves into wretched association with those spirits of darkness. All wicked people are called murderers, because they kill and murder in themselves the life of heavenly Love and Charity, which is the life of God and of His kingdom; and God is said to destroy such murderers, when, in reality, they destroy themselves, by separating themselves from the mercy, the blessing and protection of Heaven, for whatsoever is so separated must of necessity be destroyed, since spiritual destruction is but another term to express alienation from God, as spiritual salvation is but another term to express conjunction with God in His own life of heavenly love and wisdom. City is used in a spiritual sense, like all other expressions in the parable, and, according to that sense, denotes the interior principles and persuasions which occupy the minds of men, and in which they dwell. When it is said, therefore, that the King burnt up their city, the word city is used to denote the principles and persuasions of the wicked, which are said to be burned up, when they are consumed and perish by the cravings which give them birth. Mention is accordingly made, in the Sacred Scriptures, of the city of destruction, and also of the city of the Lord of Hosts; the former denoting the principles and persuasions in which the ungodly dwell, as to their spirits; and the latter, denoting the principles and persuasions in which the righteous dwell, as to their spirits. But it is said, the wedding is ready, but they who were invited were not worthy. Man is said to be worthy when he complies freely and voluntarily with the counsels of the Eternal Truth; in which case he exalts the Eternal Truth above everything belonging to himself, and thus ascribes to the God of Truth all merit, and, consequently, all worth. Man, therefore, is called worthy, in proportion as he takes no worth to himself, but humbly and gratefully acknowledges that no one is worthy but Him of whom it is written, Worthy is the Lamb that was slain to receive power, and riches, and wisdom, and strength, and honour, and glory, and blessing (Rev 5:12). On the other hand, man is said to be not worthy, when he is unwilling to admit into his mind that heavenly wisdom which would teach him that all worthiness, properly so called, belongs to God, and that man is only so far worthy as he willingly makes this acknowledgement. It is afterwards written, that the King sent his servants into the highways, to invite to the marriage as many as they should find. In the original language, the term which is here rendered highways, is expressed by a word which more properly denotes crossways. It is impossible, however, to discover what is meant by crossways, unless it be first known what is spiritually understood by a way. Now, a spiritual way, is the way, or direction, of every one’s will and understanding, in regard to the things of God and another world: and the way of every one’s will and understanding is the way or direction of his supreme love, because every one follows, and must, of necessity, follow, wherever his supreme love leads him. According to this view of spiritual ways, they will be found to be as various and as numerous as natural ways, and, therefore they may be distinguished, and are distinguished, in the Sacred Scriptures, into highways, bye ways, and what are here called crossways. Hence, then, may be seen what is spiritually meant by the crossways mentioned in the parable, and that they relate to the states of the minds of those who are walking in ignorance of genuine truth, and who thus do not proceed in a straight path to the kingdom of Heaven. For genuine truth is the highway, and the only highway, to Heaven and eternal blessedness, and, consequently, they who are not in the light of genuine truth do not walk in a highway, but in a crossway. The King’s command, therefore, to his servants, to go into the crossways, relates to the calling of the Gentiles to the knowledge of the true God, and thus, into the way of genuine truth, for the Gentiles, being in ignorance, were not walking in the highway to the heavenly kingdom, and, consequently, could not come to the marriage until they were better instructed. It is next said, that those servants went into the highways, and gathered together all as many as they found, both bad and good, and the wedding was furnished with guests. It is agreeable to the order of the Divine Providence, that all mankind should be instructed in the knowledge of God and the things of His kingdom, since, without instruction, no one can be a subject either of happiness or of misery, properly so called; neither can any one, without instruction, be denominated either good or bad: for what constitutes a good man, is his willingness to obey instructions, by forming his life according to it; and what constitutes a bad man, is his unwillingness to obey instruction, and to suffer it to operate upon his life. The difference, therefore, between a good man and a bad man, is, not that the one receives instruction and the other rejects it, but that the one attains to the heavenly good of love and charity, to which instruction points, whilst the other does not attain it: the one, therefore, removes from his heart and life all the evils which instruction makes manifest; whilst the other, notwithstanding instruction, still remains the slave of his corruptions; thus the one admits the truth of instruction into the interiors of his heart and life, where it begets and forms its own image and likeness of heavenly wisdom and purity, whilst the other suffers instruction to enter no further than his memory, where it continues as in an outer court, and never gains admission into the inmost recesses of the heart. By the King, who came in to see the guests, is to be understood, the Almighty Lord and Sovereign of the Universe, whose name is Jesus Christ; and this heavenly King is said to come in when He comes to His Church, whether in general, or in particular, by the influx, or influence, of His Holy Spirit. For the King of Heaven cannot come into His Church, in general, or to any member of His Church, in particular, in any other way than this. But in this way of influx, or influence, He may be said to be always coming in for inspection, for judgement, and for purification. By a garment, according to the spiritual idea, is meant, that which invests, or clothes, a man’s spirit; and every man’s spirit is clothed according to the persuasions which he believes to be true. For every man’s spirit is his ruling love, and love always invests, or clothes, itself with persuasions which are in agreement with itself- with the persuasions of truth, therefore, if the love be in agreement with truth, but with the persuasions of error, if it be not in agreement with truth. It is on this account that, when the Lord was transfigured, He was seen in shining garments, as were also the angels who appeared at His sepulchre; because shining garments denote the splendour and brightness of divine and heavenly truth, investing divine and heavenly good. This being the meaning of a spiritual garment, we may understand a wedding-garment to denote, the persuasion of truth in conjunction with the heavenly love and charity, in which it originates, thus, in conjunction with Jesus Christ, who is the only source and fountain of all heavenly love and charity. When, therefore, it is said, that the man had not on a wedding-garment, it is to denote that his persuasions were not grounded in love and charity, and, consequently, were not in conjunction with those heavenly principles. And this is the unhappy case with all those who imbibe, with their understandings, the doctrines of heavenly truth but do not apply those doctrines to the reformation of their lives, by rejecting those evils which the truth makes manifest, and by cherishing those goods of heaven and eternal life to which it points and conducts. Whosoever, then, maintains that he may be saved by faith alone, without charity and good works, and that he may thus be admitted into Heaven after death, provided that, in the last hour of his life, he believes in the atoning blood and merit of the Redeemer, is seen by the all-piercing eye of the Eternal King, as a man that has not on a wedding-garment. In like manner, whoever separates religion from the common duties and engagements of life, by insisting that religion has nothing to do with those duties and engagements, and that a man may live as he pleases, provided he is only constant and regular in his public and private devotions, he also ranks amongst those deluded ones who come to the wedding without having on a wedding-garment. In the original tongue, the title is not so honourable as that expressed by the word friend, addressed to the man which had not on a wedding-garment, but one is used which, more properly, signifies companion. Every one knows the distinction, in a natural sense, between those two terms, because every one knows that, in a natural sense, a companion means one with whom we occasionally associate, but whom we do not admit to any great degree of intimacy, so as to take him to our bosoms, and entrust him with our secrets; whereas, a friend means one with whom we not only associate occasionally, but who is so connected with us in the bonds of love and affection, that we find our highest delight in his society, and are never so happy as in the interchange of mutual regard, confidence and attachment. Exactly similar is the distinction, in a spiritual sense, because, according to this sense, a spiritual companion, in respect to God, is one who, by reading the Word of God, is admitted to some degree of acquaintance with God, by receiving the light of the knowledge of God in his understanding, but whereas he does not receive, at the same time, the love of God in his will, nor suffers it to operate in his life, he never attains to any higher, or nearer, intimacy with his Heavenly Father. A spiritual friend, on the other hand, is one who, with respect to God, not only admits into his understanding the knowledge of God and of His law, but applying that knowledge to the reformation of his life, cherishes devoutly in his heart the love of God and of his neighbour, and thus attains to the high and unspeakable honour of being admitted to the closest intimacy and conjunction with the Father of his being, in all those virtues and graces of love, confidence, and regard, which constitute the endearing relationship of friend. The question, How do you deserve to be in here, not having a wedding-garment? appears intended to put the man upon a course of self-examination, respecting the motives of his conduct in rejecting the life of charity, and insisting on the sufficiency of faith alone to introduce him into the kingdom of Heaven. It was intended, further, that, by such examination, he should be led to the discovery, that nothing can be so irrational and contrary to the express declarations of the Word of God, as to imagine that man can be saved by a mere act of speculative faith, separate from repentance and the good works which flow from charity and the love of God. And, lastly, it was intended to lead all mankind to reject the idea of solitary faith, and to admit, in its place, the evangelical persuasion, that charity, faith, and good works, are, unitedly, necessary to secure man’s salvation, and that to separate any one of these essentials from the other, is to destroy all, and thus to destroy the church, both generally and individually. By being speechless is meant, in the letter, that the man had nothing to answer; but in the spirit, or spiritual sense, is meant, that no just reason could be assigned for his acting in a manner so altogether unreasonable and opposite to the whole tenor of the counsels of the Eternal. For all speech is merely an expression of the thoughts; and, therefore, where there is no speech, as in the present case, it denotes that there is no thought, that is to say, no just thought. Thus, it denotes, that the separation of charity from faith, and of faith from charity, is the destruction of all just thought, of all sound reason, of all true wisdom, and of all evangelical truth and evangelical religion. By the injunction, bind him, hand and foot, is implied, the spiritual imprisonment into which all men cast themselves who do not join to their knowledge, obedience, or a life according to knowledge. This imprisonment of all the faculties of the mind is both internal and external; the former, signified by binding the hand, and the latter, by binding the foot. It consists in the deprivation of the spiritual powers with which all men are, by birth, invested, namely, the powers of looking upwards towards God and Heaven - of opening thus, and forming the internal, spiritual man - of admitting, through this the divine influences into the external, or natural, man - and of thus attaining eternal conjunction with the Almighty, through the free and voluntary admission of His love, wisdom, and operation, into every part and principle, both of mind and body. By the second injunction, take him away, is implied, the separation from the heavenly marriage, or from Heaven itself, of all those who are so unwise as not to attain to that marriage, by the conjunction of charity and faith, or of love and wisdom, in their own minds and lives. It appears, in this case, as in the former of spiritual imprisonment, that the effect is produced by the sentence of the Almighty, when, nevertheless, it is the necessary result of carelessness on the part of man. For it is well to be noted, that no one can attain conjunction with the Almighty, but by the conjunction of charity and faith in his own mind and life. When charity and faith, therefore, are not thus conjoined, the man, voluntarily, and of his own accord, separates himself from the kingdom of light and love, because there are no principles in himself congenial with that kingdom and its joys. It is not, therefore, in the power of the Almighty Himself, to introduce any one into Heaven, unless heavenly love and heavenly wisdom be previously combined in his affections and thoughts, for this would be to act contrary to His own order, that is to say, contrary to Himself, which is a thing impossible. The sentence, cast him into outer darkness, like the foregoing, is a consequence resulting from the state of man’s mind, rather than from the judgement, or condemnation, of the Almighty. For when a man admits into his understanding the light of heavenly truth, and neglects to form his life accordingly, he then converts the light into darkness, which, being more dense and grievous than the darkness of mere ignorance, is, on that account, called outer, or extreme, darkness, agreeably to that declaration of Jesus Christ, where He says, If the light that is in you be darkness, how great is that darkness. By outer darkness, is, therefore, here to be understood, the darkness into which the men of the church cast themselves, who enjoy and admit the light of revelation, but who yet are not willing to submit their minds and lives entirely to its heavenly guidance. The two terms, weeping and gnashing of teeth, denote the extreme opposition to the principles of heavenly love and wisdom in all those who cast themselves into outer darkness; weeping being an act of the body, expressive of opposition to heavenly love; and gnashing of teeth being an act of the body, expressive of opposition to heavenly wisdom, or truth. The reason why weeping denotes opposition to heavenly love, is, because weeping is opposed to heavenly joy, and all heavenly joy is the effect of heavenly love. They, therefore, who cast themselves into outer darkness, must, of necessity, be deprived of heavenly joy, and, of course, oppose the principle from which it proceeds. And the reason why gnashing of teeth denotes opposition to heavenly truth, is, because, in the Sacred Scriptures, frequent mention is made of gnashing of teeth, and, in all cases, it is applied to express a rooted hatred of, and opposition to, the principles of heavenly wisdom and truth in which sense it is applied, Acts 7:54, Psa 112:10, Psa 35:16, Sam. 2:16, Job 16:9, and: Mark 9:18. It is added, in conclusion of the parable, many are called, but few are chosen. The called are all they who receive an invitation to the heavenly marriage, by hearing and reading the Word of God, which is, throughout, an invitation to that marriage. But the chosen are they, who not only hear and read the Word of God, like the called, and thus receive an invitation to the marriage, but who, likewise, accept the invitation, by willing, thinking, and doing, such things as the Word of God enjoins. The called, therefore, are they who receive the instruction of wisdom; but the chosen are they who obey that instruction. The called, again, are they who have the understanding of truth; but the chosen are they who unite to that understanding the love of heavenly good. In short, the called are they who have attained to some communication with the light of Heaven in their intellectual part; but the chosen are they who have attained conjunction with the life of Heaven in their voluntary, or will, part. These latter, therefore, are termed the elect, or chosen, because God always chooses those who love Him, and not those who merely know Him; thus, He chooses those who delight in doing His will, but not those who only understand what His will requires. We learn, in general, from this parable, that it is the will of the Most High to conjoin Himself, by means of His holy love and wisdom, with all mankind, and that, accordingly, He invites and presses all mankind to come and be partakers of this heavenly marriage, or conjunction. We learn, further, that this divine invitation, which God sends to all His creatures, by and through His Holy Word, is treated differently by men, according to their several passions, prejudices, and ways of life; some making light of it, and others treating it with contempt, neglect, and abhorrence. We learn, still further, that God, by His divine inspection, is ever noting the manner in which His Holy Word is treated by mankind, and how far they are careful to unite love and wisdom, or charity and faith, together in their minds and lives. And, lastly, we learn, that no man can be admitted to the heavenly marriage, or, what is the same thing, to the kingdom of Heaven, only so far as the above principles are conjoined in him; since, if they be separated, he then casts himself into the imprisonment of his best faculties, - separates himself from all communion with his Heavenly Father, - and plunges into that terrible darkness, where he hates and opposes the influence of that heavenly love and heavenly wisdom which would, otherwise have conducted him to salvation and eternal life. Let us, therefore, resolve, now on, to take heed that we never separate in ourselves the principles of love and wisdom, charity and faith; but, that, combining those principles in our minds and lives, and suffering them to have their full operation in our conduct, we may not only rank under those who are called, but also be admitted to the high honour of those who are chosen, and thus enter into an eternal conjunction of life and love with our Heavenly Father, which is the true marriage and marriage-feast to which He has been pleased, in His mercy, to invite us. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 61: 02.19. MAT_24:32-34 -- THE FIG TREE ======================================================================== Mat 24:32-34 -- The Fig Tree Now learn a parable of the fig tree; when his branch is yet tender, and puts forth leaves, you know that summer is near; so likewise you, when you shall see all these things, know that it is near, even at the doors. Verily I say to you, this generation shall not pass till all these things be fulfilled. By learning a parable from the fig tree is meant, to learn instruction from what is signified by a fig tree, with its branches and leaves, which are afterwards mentioned; and, therefore, before this instruction can be learned, it will be necessary to consider what is signified and represented by a fig tree, with its branches and leaves. A fig tree, whenever it is spoken of in the Holy Word, always signifies and represents the good of the natural principle of man’s life, as a vine signifies and represents the good of his spiritual principle. By the good of the natural principle, is not meant the good into which man is born, or which he derives from his parents, but the good which is spiritual as to origin, and into which no one is born, but is introduced of the Lord by the knowledges of good and of truth; wherefore, before man is in this good, namely, in spiritual good, he is not a man of the church, however he appears to be so from natural good. If, then, the fig tree signifies and represents such natural good, its branches will denote the affections of that good, because affection buds forth from good, as a branch from its trunk; and, for the same reason, its leaves will denote the truths of that good, because truths are to the mind of man what leaves are to a tree. The term rendered tender in our translation is expressed, in the original, by a word which means soft; and the term soft is applied to denote what is inmost and innocent, and thus in the present case, is intended to express the inmost principle of innocence from the Lord which is in the affection of natural good; thus by its putting forth leaves, is further signified its fruitfulness in the truths of innocence, or in truths of a celestial origin. By summer, according to the spiritual idea, derived from the doctrine of correspondence between things spiritual and things natural, is to be understood, the conjunction of good and of truth in the Church here on earth; since, as natural heat and light are conjoined in the natural summer, in like manner spiritual heat and light, which are goodness and truth in the minds of men, are conjoined in the spiritual summer. By summer, therefore, is here spiritually meant the commencement of a new Church; and by its being near is, further, to be understood, the establishment of this Church whenever the branch of the fig tree becomes tender, and puts forth leaves; in other words, whenever the affection of natural good is influenced by innocence, and productive of truths from a celestial origin. The import of the next words can only be known from considering what is meant by the things spoken of, which they were to see; and this cannot be known but by reference to the former part of the chapter, in which an affecting account is given by Jesus Christ, of the successive corruptions of the Christian Church, under its several fattened cattle away from evangelical purity and truth. These fattened cattle away may be, described in the following summary, containing prediction concerning the devastation of the Church, and, at length, concerning the establishment of a new Church in this order: That they began not to know what was good and true, but disputed on the subject. That they despised good and truth. That in heart they did not acknowledge those principles. That they profaned them. And whereas the truth of faith and the good of charity were yet about to remain with some who were called the elect; the state of faith on the occasion is described. And next the state of charity. And, lastly, the beginning of a new Church is treated of. These, therefore, are the things which they were to see, and when they saw them, they were to know that it was near, even at the doors; in other words, that then would be the consummation of the Church, that is, the last judgement, and the coming of the Lord; consequently, that then the old Church would be rejected and a new one established. It is said, at the doors, because the good of the natural principle and its truths are the first things which are insinuated into man, when he is regenerated, and is made a church. It accordingly follows, Verily, I say to you, this generation shall not pass away till all these things be fulfilled, Heaven and earth shall pass away, but my word shall not pass away (verses 34, 35), to denote, first, that the Jewish nation shall not be extirpated as other nations; and, secondly, that the internals and externals of the former Church, here signified by heaven and earth, shall perish, but that the Word of the Lord shall remain. We learn, from this parable, to adore again the wisdom of our God and Saviour, as peculiarly manifested by His usual mode of expressing His own divine ideas by natural images, or by the representation of natural things. Thus, in the present instance, we are instructed, that under the natural figure of a fig tree, its branches, and leaves, He describes, in the most appropriate language, the commencement of a glorious new Church, which was to succeed on the declension of the former Church from its original purity; and, further, under the natural figure of summer, He describes the conjunction of goodness and truth, or of spiritual heat and spiritual light, in that Church, by virtue of which it was to be fruitful in all heavenly graces and virtues, and thus to have living conjunction with its Heavenly Father. We are instructed, yet further, to attend carefully to the several predictions uttered in the verses preceding this parable, until we discover from them the several states of the declension of the first Christian Church from its original purity; and we are, besides, consoled with the prospect and the certainty of that glorious new Church which is to succeed it, and which may convince us, that what is commonly called the last judgement, and the coming of the Lord, is not for the purpose of destroying the earth, but of preserving it, by imparting to mankind the pure and heavenly doctrines of the eternal truth, which were prefigured in the Revelation by the descent of the new Jerusalem. Thus may we humbly hope, that, through the mercy of God, the branch of the fig tree with us may become tender, and put forth leaves, whereby we may be convinced, to our unutterable joy, that the summer of the divine benediction of the Most High is near at hand, consisting in the conjunction of His most blessed love and wisdom, and that thus, though heaven and earth pass away, His word shall not pass away. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 62: 02.20. MAT_25:1-13 -- TEN VIRGINS ======================================================================== Mat 25:1-13 -- Ten Virgins Then shall the Kingdom of Heaven be like ten virgins, which took their lamps, and went forth to meet the Bridegroom, And five of them were wise, and five were foolish. They that were foolish took their lamps, and took no oil with them: but the wise took oil in their vessels with their lamps. While the Bridegroom was a long time in coming they all slumbered and slept. And at midnight there was a cry made, Behold, the Bridegroom comes; go out to meet him. Then all those virgins arose, and trimmed their lamps. And the foolish said to the wise, Give us of your oil; for our lamps are gone out. But the wise answered, saying, Not so; lest there be not enough for us and you: but go rather to them that sell, and buy for yourselves. And while they went to buy, the bridegroom came; and they that were ready went in with him to the marriage: and the door was shut. Afterward came also the other virgins, saying, Lord, Lord, open to us. But he answered and said, Verily, I say to you, I know you not. Watch, therefore, for you know neither the day nor the hour wherein the Son of man comes. The Kingdom of Heaven is compared to ten virgins, because by the Kingdom of Heaven is to be understood, the government of the divine love and wisdom; and by the ten virgins are denoted, all those of the Church to whom this government is presented for salvation and eternal happiness. Lumps, when the term is used in the Sacred Scriptures, always denote the truths of God’s Most Holy Word, in which sense it is written, Your word is a lamp to my feet (Psa 119:105). By the Bridegroom is meant the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, or the incarnate God, who is called a bridegroom in regard to His bride the Church, according to which idea He speaks of Himself when He says to His disciples, Can the children of the bride-chamber mourn when the Bridegroom is with them? but the days will come when the Bridegroom shall be taken from them, and then shall they fast (Mat 9:15, Mark 2:19, Luk 5:34). By the virgins going forth, therefore, to meet the Bridegroom, is to be understood, their preparation to enter into the presence of Jesus Christ, and into a state of communication and conjunction with Him. It is said, that five of these virgins were wise, and five were foolish, and this is explained in the following verses of the parable, where it is written, They that were foolish took their lamps, and took no oil in them; but the wise took oil in their vessels with their lamps. By taking their lamps and taking no oil in them, is signified, that they received the truths of God’s Most Holy Word in their understandings, which is meant by taking their lamps; but they did not admit into their wills the good of heavenly love and charity, which is meant by oil, to which good the truths of God’s Word were designed to conduct them. And this is the eternal distinction between folly and wisdom, because nothing is true wisdom but a life according to the knowledge of the truth, and nothing is so great a proof of human folly as to receive knowledge and not to apply it to the purposes of a good life for which it was given. Man, therefore, is not wise, merely because he knows what is true and good, but he becomes wise by forming his life accordingly; neither can he properly be called foolish, merely because he is ignorant of truth and knowledge, but he becomes foolish in the degree in which he neglects to improve and amend his life according to the knowledge of truth which he has received. It may be proved that oil signifies the good of love and charity, from the continual application of the term, both in the Old and New Testament, since, wherever it is used, it is intended to express some communication with the Almighty in the heavenly principle of his own mercy and love. Thus it is written in the book of Psalms, You anoint my head with oil, (23:5), where by oil is manifestly meant spiritual oil, because it is said that God anoints with it, and, consequently, it can mean nothing but the communication of the divine mercy and love. It was for the same reason that oil was commanded to be so frequently used in the Jewish sacrifices, to denote that no sacrifice can be acceptable to the Deity but what proceeds from His own spirit of pure love, compassion, and mercy. It is written, that while the Bridegroom was a long time in coming, they all slumbered and slept. By the Bridegroom tarrying, we are to understand the delay in His appearing and full manifestation, until His children, or Church, are duly prepared for His reception. This delay is grounded in the wisdom of His divine order and providence, which requires that mankind should be tried and exercised in various ways, before they can be admitted to the high honour and happiness of eternal conjunction with their Divine Lord. For man, being naturally born in evil, cannot hope to be a partaker of the heavenly blessings to which he is invited, until his natural evils be in some degree removed; and this removal cannot be effected but by a variety of trials, and troubles, and the apparent absence of the heavenly Bridegroom: this apparent absence, therefore, in the process of regeneration, is what is here to be understood by the Bridegroom tarrying. We find frequent mention made of slumbering and sleeping in the Sacred Scriptures; and by slumbering is always meant a natural state of the understanding in regard to the apprehension of truth; and by sleeping is meant a natural state of the will in regard to the perception of good. This, therefore, is what is here meant by slumbering and sleeping, to denote that both the wise and foolish virgins cherished doubts in their understandings respecting the bridegroom’s coming, and were likewise sluggish in their affections on the same subject. This is a consequence of not admitting, in its fullness, the operation of spiritual good and spiritual truth from the Word of God, to raise them out of a natural state of thought and will. For every man is said, spiritually, to slumber and sleep, so long as he is under the dominion of mere natural thought and affection; as, on the other hand, he is said, spiritually, to awake, whenever he suffers the truth of God’s Holy Word to raise him out of, and above, such a natural state of affection and thought. By midnight, in the spiritual sense of the word, is understood the last state of the Church, when there is no longer in it any light of heavenly truth, because there is no love of heavenly good. Whenever this is the case, then presently comes morning, which is here signified by Bridegroom coming, because by the Bridegroom is understood the Lord, who is said to come when He reveals to His Church new truths, by opening the internal sense of His Holy Word. In the Sacred Scriptures, therefore, the coming of the Lord is frequently called morning. The command, Go you forth to meet Him, signifies, as was said above, an exhortation to prepare for the reception of His holy love and wisdom, by which reception alone man is admitted to the high honour and happiness of becoming a pure bride and wife of the heavenly Bridegroom and Husband. Then all those virgins arose, and trimmed their lamps, by which words is meant, that all began to prepare themselves; for they who are without charity, believe they shall be accepted alike with those who have charity, since they suppose that faith alone is saving, not aware that there is no faith where there is no charity. And the foolish said to the wise, Give us of your oil, for our lamps are gone out. Hence, it appears, they were willing that charity should be communicated to their empty knowledge, or to their void faith, from others; but this is a thing-impossible, since the law, respecting- the possession of charity, requires that every man shall himself receive it from God, and this in the degree in which he removes from his heart and life the affections which are contrary to charity. This appears from the answer of the wise virgins on the occasion, who said, Not so, lest there be not sufficient for us and for you: go rather to them that sell, and buy for yourselves; by which words we are taught, that no one can be saved by the virtues of another, only so far as he endeavours to make those virtues his own, by incorporating them into his life through repentance and faith in the Incarnate God. It is afterwards written, that while they went to buy, the Bridegroom came, and they that were ready went in with him to the marriage: and the door was shut, by which words is signified and expressed, that the application of the foolish virgins was then preposterous and useless, because it was an application grounded in their fears rather than in the conviction of their own minds and consciences. For no man was ever known to be reformed from fear, which operates only on the external man, and not at all on the internal, to turn it towards the love of God and Heaven. By they that were ready are meant, they who had joined charity to their faith, or the good of life to their knowledges; and by their entering in with the bridegroom into the marriage, is signified, that they were admitted into Heaven, because Heaven is Heaven from the conjunction of charity and faith, or, what is the same thing, from the conjunction of heavenly knowledge with the life of knowledge, on which account Heaven is compared to a marriage, and really is a marriage. The door being shut, on this occasion, denotes that none else could enter but the wise virgins, that is to say, they who were in faith grounded in charity, or whose knowledge was united with the life of knowledge. For such is the case in regard to Heaven, that none are admitted there but such as are ready, or prepared, and all preparation for Heaven implies the conjunction of heavenly principles, such as love and wisdom, charity and faith, goodness and truth, speculation and practice, piety and the life of piety; therefore, where there is no such conjunction, there can be no admission into Heaven, in which case the door is said to be shut; not that the Lord shuts it, but that men shut it against themselves by their impenitence, unbelief, and want of application for the conjunction of the above heavenly principles. But it is said, that afterward came also the other virgins, saying, Lord, Lord, open to us. Thus they flattered themselves with the groundless hope of being admitted into Heaven by the divine mercy alone, though they were void of that charity, in and by which the divine mercy can alone operate. They trusted to be saved by faith alone, from which they supplicated the Divine Being, not aware that the supplication of faith alone, separate from the life of faith, which is charity and good works, is not heard by the Almighty, and does not penetrate into Heaven, because God and Heaven are moved by no prayers but those of the penitent, who are desirous of uniting in themselves all the principles of Godlike and heavenly life. We read, further, that he answered and said, Verily I say to you, I know you not. Jesus Christ is said not to know the wicked and the thoughtless, because there is nothing in their minds which is in agreement with His own. On the other hand, He is said to know the good and the faithful, because the principles of their lives are both derived from, and in accord with, the principles of His own divine love and wisdom. Accordingly, He says, of His true disciples, I know my sheep, and am known of mine (John 10:14), because His disciples, or His sheep, are formed after His own image and likeness, and thus partake of His holy spirit and life. When, therefore, He says to the foolish virgins, I know you not, it is the same thing as if He had said, there is nothing in you which is in any agreement with My own divine love and wisdom, because you have received only the knowledge of Me and of My will in your understandings, but have not conjoined that knowledge with the love of Me and of My will in your hearts and lives. The consequence is, that we cannot dwell together in the same kingdom, and you cannot be admitted to the heavenly marriage, inasmuch as my kingdom is a kingdom of love, of wisdom, and of use united, and the heavenly marriage is a conjunction of the same heavenly principles. Depart from me, therefore, you that work iniquity. In the conclusion of the parable it is said, Watch, therefore, for you know neither the day, nor the hour, wherein the Son of Man comes. Watching is a term which applies to the mind of man, and not to his body; and the mind of man is said to watch when it keeps itself open to the light of heavenly truth, and when it thus applies itself to fulfil the duties of life, by acting, on all occasions, and in every employment, according to the life and spirit of the commandments of God, that is to say, according to justice and judgement, sincerity and uprightness. On the other hand, man is said not to watch, or to fall asleep, when he suffers his mind to be influenced by mere natural loves and their delusive persuasions, and thus separates himself from all the light and comfort of the guidance of the eternal truth. The day and the hour of the Son of Man’s coming denote the time, or state of man’s acceptance with God, or the time and state of a perfect conjunction with Him, which is altogether unknown to man, wherefore he is commanded to watch. We are taught, by this parable, that the folly of all follies is to possess knowledge without the life of knowledge, or faith without charity, or speculation without practice; and that the wisdom of all wisdom is, to conjoin knowledge with its life, faith with its charity, and speculation with its practice, since, where these principles are separated in the mind and life, there can be no admission to the heavenly marriage, or kingdom of God, but where they are conjoined, they never fail to introduce to that kingdom, or marriage, and all its joys. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 63: 02.21. MAT_25:14-30 -- TALENTS: FAR TRAVELLING MAN ======================================================================== Mat 25:14-30 -- Talents: Far Travelling Man For the kingdom of heaven is as a man travelling into a far country, who called his own servants, and delivered to them his goods. And to one he gave five talents, to another two, and to another one; to every man according to his several abilities; and straightway took his journey. Then he that had received the five talents went and traded with the same, and made them other five talents. And likewise he that had received two, he also gained another two. But he that had received one went and dug in the earth, and hid his Lord’s money. After a long time the Lord of those servants comes, and reckons with them. And so he that had received the five talents came and brought other five talents, saying, Lord, you delivered to me five talents: behold, I have gained beside them five talents more. His Lord said to him, Well done, you good and faithful servant - you have been faithful over a few things, I will make you ruler over many things: enter you into the joy of your Lord. He also that had received two talents came and said, Lord, you delivered to me two talents: behold, I have gained two other talents beside them. His Lord said to him, Well done, good and faithful servant: you have been faithful over a few things, I will make you ruler over many things: enter you into the joy of your Lord. Then he which had received the one talent came and said, Lord, I knew you that you are a hard man, reaping where you have not sown, and gathering where you have not scattered seed: and I was afraid, and went and hid your talent in the earth: lo, there you have what is yours. His Lord answered and said to him, You wicked and lazy servant, you know that I reap where I sowed not, and gather where I have not scattered seed: you ought therefore to have put my money to the exchangers, and then at my coming I should have received mine own with usury. Take therefore the talent from him, and give it to him which has ten talents. For to every one that has shall be given, and he shall have abundance: but from him that has not shall be taken away even that which he has. And cast you the unprofitable servant into outer darkness: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. By the man is meant the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ; and by His travelling into a far country, His departure out of the world, and thus His apparent absence, or distance. By His servants are meant, all who are in the world; and by calling and delivering to them His goods, is to be understood, His communicating to them the knowledges of truth and good from His Word, with the faculty of perceiving them. It is said, that to one He gave five talents, to another two, and to another one, to every man according to his several ability, and straightway took His journey. By talent is to be understood faculty; and by five, two, and one, are meant the different applications of that faculty by different persons; for there is no inequality in God, and, therefore, He gives to all alike the facility of procuring to themselves eternal life by a right application of the knowledges of truth and good entrusted to their care. The difference, therefore, here spoken of, in respect to the number of talents, is intended to point out the difference in the use of them by men of different characters. Thus, they who greatly improve their talent by a right application of knowledges, are said to have five talents; they, again, who unite faith with charity, are said to have two talents, because the number two signifies such conjunction; and, again, they who have faith alone, with.-out charity, are described as having only one talent. It is, therefore, said, that He gave to every man according to his several ability. Taking His journey means the same as travelling into a far country, namely, the Lord’s departure out of this world, and His apparent absence from His people, whilst they are only in the knowledge of truth and good, before they have gained full possession of those heavenly principles in their own minds. It is said, that he that had received the five talents went and traded with the same, and made other five talents. By the same are here meant, the knowledges of truth and good, which are signified by talents; and by trading with the same is understood, the procuring to himself intelligence and wisdom by those knowledges. For the case herein is this, that all heavenly knowledges, by which man’s salvation is effected, are first stored up in the memory, and, if he be a thoughtless and impenitent man, never applying those knowledges to the reformation of his life, they remain stored up in the memory only, without ever being exalted, as they were intended to be, to any higher degree of the man’s life. On the contrary, if the man be of an opposite character, and applies the knowledges he has received in his memory to the reformation and regulation of his life, they are then exalted to a higher place in the man’s mind, being admitted into his understanding and his will, where, they are no longer knowledges, but intelligence and wisdom; intelligence, so far as they are admitted into, and enlighten, the understanding; and wisdom, so far as they are admitted into the will, and produce therein the heavenly fruit of love to God and charity towards the neighbour. By making other five talents is to be understood, the, immense increase and fruitfulness of truth or knowledge, when it comes to be applied to its proper end - the reformation and regeneration of the life - and is thus brought into conjunction with its divine source. For, in such case, the multiplication and fructification of truth in the human mind, is like that of a grain of corn (to which also it is compared in the Sacred Scriptures), when it is cast into good ground, which, every one knows, is immense, and exceeds all human expectation, so that the product from a single grain of corn might, in a succession of years, replenish the whole earth: yet this increase is not more wonderful nor more true, than the increase of the talents, here spoken of, when they are applied to the blessed purposes for which they are given. A similar increase is signified in the next verse, where it is written, that likewise he that had received two he also gained other two. But it is said, that he that had received one went and dug in the earth, and hid his Lords money. His going and digging in the earth means, his Application to mere external things, such as relate to worldly and selfish love; and his hiding his Lord’s money means that he so buried the knowledges of heavenly truth and the faculty of using them, in those terrestrial and filthy loves, that he was no longer aware that he possessed any such faculty or such knowledges. Thus his Lord’s money was hid both from his own eyes and from the eyes of others; from his own eyes, because he had lost sight of such possessions; and from the eyes of others, because his light did not so shine before men, that they might see his good works, and glorify his Father which is in heaven. It is next said, that after a long time the Lord of those servants comes, and reckons with them. A long time expresses delay, until the period was fully arrived of the successful issue of the faithfulness of the wise servants, and of the unsuccessful issue of the unfaithfulness of the unprofitable servants; thus it denotes delay until all the servants were fully tried and proved, as to the ruling principles of their lives. The Lord, when spoken of in regard to the servants, denotes the principle of heavenly good, in regard to the truths which administer to it, and by which it is to be rendered fruitful. For the end of all truths is, that they may be productive of heavenly good, and afterwards may be conjoined with that good, and thereby, with the Lord Himself. In this, therefore, consists the exploration of all truths, and thus of all those who are principled in truths, which exploration is here called reckoning. For if truths, or they who are principled in truths, are capable of admitting and of being conjoined with heavenly good, which is the love of God and neighbourly love, it is then a plain proof that the truths have been applied in trading according to the design of their Divine Source. On the contrary, if truths have not been so applied, it is then equally certain, that they have not been exercised in trading, according to the original intention of Him who save them. We next read, that he who had received five talents came and brought another five talents, saying, Lord, you delivered to me five talents; behold, I have gained beside them five talents more. His Lord said to him, Well done, good and faithful servant: you have been faithful over a few things, I will make you ruler over many things: enter you into the joy of your Lord. By bringing the other five talents to his Lord, is to be understood, the humble and grateful acknowledgement that this increase and fruitfulness was not from himself, or his own exertions, alone, but from his Lord, and the communications of His mercy and truth. By the Lord’s saying to the servant, well done, is to be understood, Divine approbation communicated to the servant’s mind, or conscience, which approbation is one and the same thing with the influence of the Divine mercy and truth, willingly and gratefully received; and he is called good and faithful servant, in regard to the two principles, the will and the understanding, in which those heavenly principles of the divine love and truth were admitted and rendered fruitful; the will being the receptacle of the divine mercy, or love, and the understanding being the receptacle of the divine truth, or wisdom. The Lord further says, You have been faithful over a few things, I will make you ruler over many things. These words denote a state of dominion over all evils, to which this good and faithful servant had now attained; for to be faithful over a few things is significative of his first state in the regeneration, when he was under the influence only of the knowledges of truth in his understanding, which state is expressed by faithfulness over a few things; because, whilst man continues to act from truth alone, not fully conjoined with heavenly good, there is little or no fruitfulness of heavenly principles in his mind and life, and, therefore, the things belonging to him are then called a few things. But to be made ruler over many things, is significative of a second state in the regeneration, when heavenly good begins to acquire the ascendancy, and, being conjoined with the knowledge of truth in the understanding, imparts to man sovereignty and dominion over all the lower principles of his mind and life, both good and evil, and this state is expressed by the Lord’s words, I will make you ruler over many things. The words, Enter you into the joy of your Lord, cannot be understood until it be known what is meant by the Lord’s joy, and by entering into it. Now, the Lord’s joy consists in seeing others happy in and from Himself, that is to say, by conjunction of life with himself. To enter, then, into this joy, is to be made partaker of it; and, therefore, when it is said to the good and faithful servant, enter you into the joy of your Lord, it was intended to give him an assurance, that he should now on be partaker of a happiness similar to that of God Himself, namely, the inconceivable happiness of seeing others happy, and of observing, at the same time, that their happiness is at once full and indestructible, by virtue of its conjunction with the Eternal and the Infinite. It appears that he who had received two talents was in like manner admitted, on account of his faithfulness, to spiritual dominion and spiritual joy. But it is said, that when he came who had received the one talent, he said, Lord, I knew you that you are a hard man, reaping where you have not sown, and gathering where you have not scattered seed; and I was afraid, and went and hid your fulfill: in, the earth; lo, there you have what is yours. By this part of the parable, Jesus Christ meant to instruct us, that His precepts of love and charity always appear hard and severe to the thoughtless and impenitent, which, to the humble and pious Christian, are most easy, and, at the same time, most delightful, agreeably to those words of Jesus Christ, where He says, My yoke is easy, and My harden is light. The reason why it appears otherwise to the thoughtless and impenitent, is, because their wills, or love, are not engaged in the service of their heavenly Master, and where this is the case, all service must of necessity seem burdensome and grievous. For truth without love is the most severe tyrant and taskmaster of all others; as, on the other hand, when truth is received with its love, that is to say, with its delight, no service can be more sweet and alluring. This servant, therefore, who had received one talent, in other words, who was in faith without charity, or in the knowledge of the truth without its life and love, charges his Lord with reaping where he had not sown, and gathering where he had not scattered seed, thus throwing the blame off himself, and fixing it upon his Lord, by endeavouring to prove that his own unfaithfulness and unfruitfulness were.the results, not of any fault of his own, but of a defect in his Lord’s bounty, and of an unreasonableness in his Lord’s expectations. From the man’s saying, I was afraid, and went and hid your talent in the earth, we are further instructed that fear and dread always accompany unfaithfulness, and are, besides, always attended with unfruitfulness; as, on the other hand, hope and consolation are the constant offspring of dutiful obedience. We learn, therefore, that we ought always to live and act from a principle of love towards God, derived from the mercy and benignity of his character, rather than from a principle of dread and slavish apprehension, grounded in a sense of His majesty and greatness. The words, Lo, there you have what is yours, teach us that the most unfaithful servants are willing to make a compromise with God, even though they have nothing to present to Him but the truths of their own sad negligence. Thus the unfaithful servant here says to his Lord, Lo, there you have what is yours, as if he was fulfilling an act of justice by returning to his Lord what he had received from him; whereas it was, in reality, an act of injustice, because the talent which he returned was given him for the purpose of being increased, and, consequently, in not increasing it he proved himself unjust. It follows, that the Lord answered and said to him, You wicked and lazy servant, you knew that I reap where I sowed not, and gather where I have not scattered seed. You ought, therefore, to have put my money to the exchangers, and then at my coming I should have received mine own with usury. Every unprofitable servant is both wicked and lazy; wicked, because he remains in natural love, separate from spiritual love, whereby all his affections are turned away from God and Heaven; and lazy, because his understanding, in such case, has no activity to contemplate on heavenly things, but only to employ itself in the lower cares and concerns of this world and the flesh. Moreover, this unprofitable servant was subject to condemnation, even upon his own principles, since, had he acted in. conformity to the knowledge of his Lord, which he himself professes to have received, his conduct would have been more proper and justifiable, because then he would have put his Lord’s money to the exchangers, so that his Lord at his coming would have received his own with usury. By which is meant, that by knowledge he would have acquired love and charity, and thus his talent would have been returned to his Lord with the usury, or increase, which it was intended to procure. But it is said, Take therefore the talent from him and give it to him that has ten talents. For to every one that has shall be given, and he shall have abundance; but from him that has not shall be taken away even that which he has. By the talent, as was said, are signified the knowledges of truth with which the unprofitable servant had been gifted, and by the command, therefore, to take away this talent, is signified the effect produced by the servant’s unprofitableness, in depriving him of those knowledges. For such is the nature of all sin, that, opposing the eternal truth, it destroys in itself the knowledges of that truth, so as to make itself desolate of all heavenly light by plunging into the darkness which favours its own cravings. The command, Give it to him which has ten talents, signifies the effect produced by a proper and profitable use of the knowledges of truth, which effect is, that they increase by use, and are the exclusive property of those who apply them to the purposes for which they are given to procure by it the good of heavenly love and charity, by applying it to the removal of all contrary loves, that so the supreme good may be exalted and operative in every principle both of mind and body. Lastly, we are instructed, as to the consequences resulting from the right and wrong application of the above inestimable talent committed to every one’s care; that the right application leads to dominion over all the powers of evil and darkness, and, at the same time, to a blessed conjunction with Heaven and its God; whereas the wrong application leads to the deprivation of all heavenly knowledge, and, thus, to the grossest degree of spiritual darkness, and, finally, to an intestine hatred against all the goodness and truth of Heaven, thus to a miserable association with wicked spirits in the bottomless pit. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 64: 02.22. MAR_4:26-29 -- CASTING SEED ======================================================================== Mark 4:26-29 -- Casting Seed And he said, So is the Kingdom of God, as if a man should cast seed into the ground; and should sleep, and rise night and day, and the seed should spring and grow up, he knows not how. For the earth brings forth fruit of herself; first the blade, then the ear, after that the full corn in the ear. But when the fruit is brought forth, immediately he puts in the sickle, because the harvest is come. The Kingdom of God is the government of divine love and wisdom in the minds and lives of angels and of men; for wherever such government prevails, there the Almighty rules as in His own kingdom, and, consequently, there is the Kingdom of God. This kingdom is like a man who casts seed into the ground, because the seed, here spoken of, is the Word of God; and the ground into which the seed is cast is the human understanding ; and when the Word of God is received and exalted in the human understanding, it introduces and establishes, by degrees, in the human mind and life the government of the Divine Love and Wisdom, which, as was said, is the Kingdom of God. By sleeping and rising, according to a natural idea, is understood natural sleep, and natural awaking out of sleep; but, according to the spiritual idea, which is the idea here intended to be suggested, by sleeping is to be understood a state of natural affection and thought, whilst by rising is to be understood a state of spiritual affection and thought. For natural affection and thought, when compared with spiritual, is like sleep, or the state of a man in sleep, compared with awaking out of sleep, or with the state of a man who is so awakened; and hence, the Apostle, in calling man to a state of repentance and faith, which is a spiritual state of mind, uses this strong and striking figurative language, Awake you that sleep, and arise from the dead, and Christ shall give you light. Jesus Christ, therefore, would teach, by the above expressions, that spiritual sleep is as necessary for the soul, in the progress of its regeneration, till it becomes a Kingdom of God, as natural sleep is for the body; in other words, He would instruct us, that in the progress of regeneration there is a regular alternation of state, which is of such a nature that the regenerating person cannot always remain in a state of spiritual affection and thought, but must descend, at intervals, into natural affection and thought, it being the end of regeneration to unite the internal man with the external, and the external with the internal, mutually, which end cannot be accomplished but by successive sleeping and rising, according to the above idea, until at length the internal man is exalted to dominion above the external, or, what amounts to the same thing, until spiritual affection and thought gains the entire ascendancy and control over natural affection and thought. The reason why the subject of spiritual sleep is little considered and understood seems to be this, that the generality of Christians separate their religion from the business and duties of common life, until thus separate the spiritual, or internal, man from the natural, or external, man, not aware that it is the design of God, and the end of religion, to join together those two men, by introducing a spiritual, or religious, principle from the internal mind, to govern and direct all the thoughts, word, and works of the external. They suppose, therefore, that before a man can be truly religious, he must quit all his engagements in the world, and devote himself entirely to a life of piety and contemplation. Thus they would be always awake, according to the spiritual idea, and never asleep; in other words, they would be always in a spiritual state, and never in a natural state. But Jesus Christ, in this edifying parable, teaches a contrary lesson by instructing us that spiritual sleep is necessary, as well as spiritual awaking, or, to speak without a figure, that it is necessary for man to descend, at times, from his high contemplations and pious meditations, to attend to the common duties and business of life, that so he may live a life of uses and good offices amongst his fellow-men, as well as a life of piety and devotion to his God, this being the end of all the commandments and dispensations of God, to join spiritual and natural life, and thus heaven and earth, together in man, that so God may rule, and guide, and bless man, in every principle and degree of his life, from first to last, from inmost to outermost. Nature, therefore, is not to be annihilated by grace, I ml, rather to be controlled, amended, and blessed; thus the natural affections, natural thoughts, and natural delights, are not to be destroyed, but to be submitted, so as to be rendered instrumental, in their place and degree, in promoting the greater to the service and happiness of His creatures. This attention, therefore, to spiritual duties on the one hand, and to natural duties on the other, and to the conjunction of both, is what Jesus Christ principally meant to enforce, when He describes the man in the parable as alternately sleeping and rising. The night and day, spoken of in this parable, are to be understood, according to a spiritual idea, as relating to the soul, or spirit, of man, and not to his body; and in agreement with this idea, by night is to be understood the natural life of man, before he becomes spiritual, and also every state of darkness through which he has to pass in the process of regeneration, until the natural life is entirely submitted to the spiritual. By day, again, according to the same idea, is to be understood the first dawning of spiritual life in man, or the first manifestation of the divine love and wisdom in his inner man, for light and consolation. For, as the natural day is an effect of the rising and appearing of the natural sun, to give the blessings of natural light and warmth to the creation of God, in like manner the spiritual day is a result of the rising and manifestation of the spiritual sun, or the Sun of Righteousness, to impart spiritual light and heat, which is the light of wisdom, and the consolation of love, to all those happy beings who open their eyes and their hearts to the reception of those blessed and eternal principles. Night and day, therefore, as here applied in the parable, are again expressive of the same alternations of state which were before signified by sleeping and rising. By the seed, as was said above, is meant the Word of God, or, what amounts to the same thing the Eternal Truth, and by this seed springing is to be understood, its reception and operation in the understanding of man; and by its growing up is to be further understood, its reception and operation in the will of man. By both expressions united, then, is intended to be described the reception and operation of the Eternal Truth in every principle of the mind and life of man, since will and understanding properly constitute the whole of man, insomuch that, if the Eternal Truth is admitted into both those principles, and suffered to operate there, it never fails to take possession of every other faculty, until it renders man a blessed form and image of its own purity and power in all his affections, thoughts, words, and works. It is not enough, therefore, that the Divine Seed of the Word of God should spring up in the understanding of man, and make itself manifest there under the form of heavenly knowledge or science; but it must also grow up in the will, and there manifest itself in the spirit and power of heavenly love and charity, otherwise it takes but a partial possession of the human faculties, and can never form man entirely after its own image and likeness. This, therefore, was the reason why the two distinct expressions of springing and growing up are here applied by the Divine Speaker. The words which immediately follow, he knows not how, teach us that it is impossible for man to comprehend the several particular steps and stages in the process of his regeneration, or in the growth and fruitfulness of the Divine Seed of eternal life in his own bosom, since there is reason to believe, that they are like the hairs of his head, which cannot be numbered. Jesus Christ teaches the same lesson in another place, where, speaking of the Divine Operation, He says, The wind blows where it lists, and you hearest the sound thereof, but can not tell whence it comes, and whither it goes: so is every one that is born of the Spirit (John 3:8). It is enough, therefore, for man to know, that if he admits the Eternal Truth into his understanding, and cherishes it in his will, or love, by rejecting from his heart and life the things which are in opposition to it, the Divine Seed will then, assuredly, spring and grow up, and, notwithstanding his ignorance of the particulars of its growth, will finally become that Tree of Life, of which it is written, To him that overcomes will I give to eat of the tree of life, which is in the midst of the Paradise of God (Rev 2:7). By the earth is meant the Church, or men of the Church, who receive the seed of the Eternal Truth, and bring forth its fruits, as the earth receives the seeds of plants and vegetables, and brings forth their fruits. And by the earth bringing forth fruit is to be understood, that the members of the Church cherish the seed of eternal life in their understandings, until it operates upon their wills, and there produces the blessed fruit of love and charity, of love towards God, and charity towards man, from which are further derived the fruits of use and good service, manifested in the faithful discharge of the several duties, offices, and employments, to which every member of the Church is called for the general good. And by the earth bringing forth fruit of herself is further to be understood, not that she does it independently of Divine Aid, or by any power properly her own, for the members of the Church, who are here signified by the earth, are continually aware of the truth of what Jesus Christ taught them, when He said, Without Me you can do nothing; but that, under the full acknowledgement of her perpetual dependence on her Divine Lord for His merciful grace and assistance, she still sees the necessity of exerting herself, as of herself, to give saving effect to that grace and assistance. Thus she sees the necessity of searching out and combating her natural evils, as of herself, but still under the conviction, that she can only do so successfully whilst she looks up to her Redeeming Lord. In like manner she offers up her daily supplications, as of herself, and performs her daily works of charity, as of herself, yet, in everything confessing from her heart, that it is God who works in her both to will and to do of His commandments. The members of the Church, therefore, do not hang down their hands in the vain expectation that God will move them by His immediate, irresistible operation, to subdue evil, and to do good, for they are well aware that in such case they would be mere machines, and not those free and voluntary agents which God intended to make them. But they exert themselves, as if the power of exertion was entirely their own, and by this means they attain, finally, to perfect freedom, and, at the same time, to the most absolute dependence, whilst they think everything, and do everything, as if left to themselves, and yet are deeply sensible that all their power of thinking and acting is from God, and nothing at all from themselves. The product of the Eternal Truth, or Word of God, in the mind and life of the devout receiver, is figuratively described by the product of a grain of corn, which consists principally of these three distinct parts, the blade, the ear, and the full corn in the ear. By the blade, therefore, is to be understood, the first manifestation of the Divine Truth in man’s memory, where it appears under the form of science, or knowledge, and is stored up for future use, or for the production of the ear, which cannot otherwise be produced. According to the same spiritual view, by the ear is to be understood the reception of the same divine truth in the understanding of man, and its operation there, which effect has place whenever man begins from his heart to love and delight in the truth, so as to exalt it above all other things, and to suffer it to control all his affections, thoughts, words, and works. And by the full corn in the ear, agreeably to the same idea, is to be understood, the birth and manifestation of heavenly love and charity in the will, which is love towards God, and love towards our neighbour, together with the operation of that love. Thus, these three natural terms, the blade, the ear, and the full corn in the ear, in their spiritual signification, involve all the states of man’s regeneration, from the first insemination of the Eternal Truth in his memory and understanding, to its last product in the will, or love, until it changes its name and nature, and manifests itself in the blessed power and full operation of angelic love and charity, thus of angelic life and blessedness. In this last state it is called the full corn in the ear, because it is now filled with the Life of God, that is to say, with His Divine Love and Wisdom, thus with all fullness. It is lastly added, that when the fruit is brought forth, he puts in the sickle, because the harvest is come. We have already seen, what is spiritually meant by the fruit being brought forth, or (as perhaps it might be better rendered), being ripe. By the sickle, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood, the power of Divine Truth in its operation of exploring and separating all things in the Church, and in the members of the Church. For when this Divine Truth has been inseminated, and has brought forth its proper fruits, whether in the Church in general, or in the members of the Church in particular, it then assumes another office, signified here by the sickle, of exploration mid separation of all things and principles which are contrary to its own nature. Thus, in the Church in general, the evil are separated from the good, whilst the good are raised into Heaven, and the evil cast down into hell; and so also in the members of the Church in particular, an eternal separation takes place between the principles of good, and the principles of evil, the former being exalted to everlasting conjunction with God, whilst the latter are removed and eternally associated with their like in the kingdom of darkness. The concluding words of the parable, because the harvest is come, refer to the separation above referred to, and signified by the sickle, which separation always takes place whenever the Church in general, or a member of the Church in particular, attains to a full state of heavenly good, or to a full state of love and charity, signified by the full corn in the ear, because, whenever this state takes place, then the blessed powers of good and truth gain the ascendancy, so as to overcome and separate eternally from themselves the contrary infernal powers of what is evil and false. In the representative Church, therefore, this state was ordained to be kept holy, which solemnity was called the feast of harvest, consisting in the offering up of devout thanksgiving to the Almighty for His unspeakable mercies in accomplishing such a state. This spiritual harvest is also frequently spoken of by Jesus Christ, as where He says, The harvest truly is plenteous, but the labourers are few; pray you therefore the Lord of the harvest, that He will send forth labourers into His harvest (Mat 9:37-38); and in another place, Say you not there are yet four months, and then comes harvest? Behold, I say to you, Lift up your eyes, and look on the fields; for they are white already to harvest (John 4:35). From this parable we learn, in the first place, that the Kingdom of God is only to be opened and formed in man by the insemination of the Eternal Truth of God’s Most Holy Word. We learn, further, that this truth cannot spring up and bear its fruits, but through a variety of alternate states on the part of man, according to which alternations he is sometimes in a natural state of life, and sometimes in a spiritual state, thus sometimes is sleeping, and sometimes is rising, or waking, while sometimes it is night, and sometimes day. We learn, also, that in all these states there is a growth of the heavenly seed, though man is entirely ignorant both of the manner and measure of its growth. We learn, again, that this growth is effected whilst man co-operates with it, and that in this co-operation he must act freely as of himself, yet in a full dependence on Divine Aid and Strength. Thus he must reject evil, and do good, and perform all his spiritual and natural duties in perfect freedom, as if left to himself, but yet under the full acknowledgement that all his power to reject evil, and to do good, is from God, and not at all from himself. Lastly, we learn, that the productions of the heavenly seed in the human mind are threefold; first, in the memory, where it appears in the form of science; secondly, in the understanding, where it is exalted as a heavenly power to guide and control the affections, the thoughts, the words, and works; and, lastly, in the will, where it operates in producing unfeigned love towards God, and charity towards man. When the eternal truth has attained to this state of growth, it then operates further, through the heavenly spirit of love in the will, in effecting an eternal separation between the principles of good and evil, so that the former are elevated into Heaven, and the latter are cast down into the deep. Let us resolve, therefore, through the Divine Grace, so to cherish in our minds and lives the Divine Seed of God’s Most Holy Word, that it may attain in us its highest state of growth and fruitfulness, and, rescuing us from all evil, may finally fill us with all heavenly graces and virtues, and thus open in us its own heavenly kingdom, in which we may ever sing the angelic song, Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good-will towards men. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 65: 02.23. LUK_6:39-42 -- BLIND LEADING BLIND ======================================================================== Luk 6:39-42 -- Blind Leading Blind And he spoke a parable to them, Can the blind lead the blind? shall they not both fall into the ditch? The disciple is not above his master: but every one that is perfect shall be as his master. And why behold you the speck that is in your brother’s eye, but perceive not the beam that is in your own eye. Either how can you say to your brother, Brother, let me pull out the speck that is in your eye, when you yourself behold not the beam that is in your own eye? You hypocrite, cast out first the beam out of your own eye, and then shall you see clearly to pull out the speck that is in your brother’s eye. The blind who lead the blind, denote, in general, all those who are without the understanding of truth, and who yet pretend to teach truth, and who, therefore, are called blind; whilst they, who listen to and receive their instruction are also called blind, because they do not admit into their minds the light of truth; but specifically, the words apply to the Scribes and Pharisees of old, who, being void of the understanding of truth, taught things contrary to truth, or things false, and thus misled their hearers, who are, therefore, called blind, as being alike destitute of the understanding of truth. The signification of the ditch will perhaps best appear from the following passage in the Psalms: Behold, he travails with iniquity, and has conceived mischief, and brought forth falsehood. He made a pit and dug it, and is fallen into the ditch which he made (Psa 7:14-15). For, from these words, it is plain, that iniquity, mischief, and falsehood, are called a pit, which the ungodly man digs, and the ditch into which he falls; and since those terms involve in them all that is opposite to the truth, therefore, it is reasonable to conclude that whatsoever is opposite to the Eternal Truth, or to the revealed Word of God, in the ideas and imaginations of mankind, is the ditch above spoken of, into which all fall, who either pervert or deny the truth of God. It is immediately added by Jesus Christ, The disciple is not above his master, but every one that is perfect shall be as his master. The connection between these words and the preceding ones is not discernible if we regard only the letter, but, according to the spirit, or their internal sense, the connection is plain and striking. For by the disciple is here meant one who receives instruction, and by his master one who gives instruction, consequently, the truth itself, since truth is properly the only instructor, whilst the teacher of truth is merely the instrument by which it is administered. When it is said, therefore, The disciple is not above his master, it was intended to teach the edifying and important lesson, that man, in receiving instruction, ought to submit to the light and guidance of the Eternal Truth, so as to suffer it to direct and control all his own thoughts, imaginations, and persuasions. It is, therefore, added, Every one that is perfect shall be as his master, which is the same thing as if it had been said, that all perfection consists in submitting to the guidance of the, Eternal Truth, by bringing every purpose, thought, and imagination of the natural mind into conformity with its light and purity. The connection, therefore, between these words and the above parable, is manifest, since the parable speaks of the blind, or those who have no understanding of truth, whilst the words here added are intended to teach how that blindness may be removed, and the understanding of truth be attained, namely, by yielding implicit obedience to the dictates of truth, or to the precepts of the Holy Word, so as to suffer them to be exalted to an uppermost place in the mind, and from that exaltation to exercise dominion over, and dispense light to, all the lower principles and persuasions of the human spirit. It is further added, by Jesus Christ, Why behold you the speck that is in your brother’s eye, but perceive not the beam that is in your own eye? These, and the following words, must be regarded as to their internal sense before they will appeal-connected with the foregoing, for, according to the internal sense of the words, Jesus Christ is here speaking of the eye of the mind, which is the understanding; and by the speck in this eye, He figures by the most apt similitude, the erroneous persuasions which have place in the understanding; whilst by the beam He meant, further, to express the principle of evil, in which those erroneous persuasions originate. For, by a beam is meant a piece of wood, or timber, and, by wood, or timber, when the expression occurs in the word of God, is always figured in a good sense, the principle of good, or the principle of heavenly love and charity, and, therefore, when applied in an opposite, or bad sense, it always denotes the principles of evil, or that principle which is opposite to heavenly love and charity. The reasoning, therefore, of Jesus Christ, on this occasion, is to this effect, that man, in order to admit, and be qualified to teach, the Eternal Truth, ought to attend diligently to the source of evil and corrupt love in his own mind, so as to cast it out by a rigorous repentance, rather than to notice the erroneous persuasions which prevail in his understanding, since error can never be removed, only so far as its defiled source is discovered, with a sincere purpose to remove it. It is, therefore, said, You hypocrite, cast out first the beam out of your own eye, and then shall you see clearly to pull out the speck that is in your brother’s eye, to denote that, when evil is repented of and forsaken, then the light of truth presently begins to shine bright in the understanding, to the correction and removal of all erroneous persuasions and imaginations whatsoever. The connection, therefore, between these words and the parable is again manifest, since, as the parable relates to the want of the understanding of truth, and to the terrible effects of that deprivation, so these words teach, again, how that understanding may be restored, namely, by the spirit of sincere repentance in exploring and rejecting all the principles of evil in the will. We learn, from this parable, that there is such a thing as spiritual blindness, as well as natural blindness, and that spiritual blindness consists in the want of the understanding of truth, or of the revealed wisdom of the Most High, since nothing can properly be called truth but that wisdom. We learn, further, that they who teach, and they who are taught, are alike spiritually blind, if the understanding of truth be wanting. Again, we learn what is the terrible consequence of such spiritual blindness, because, sooner or later, it never fails to plunge its unhappy subjects into a ditch; in other words, into the defiled miserable abode of all false and mistaken persuasions, which being in opposition to the Eternal Truth, exclude for ever its blessed light and comfort. Lastly, we are taught, by the application of this parable, that the only effectual method of acquiring the understanding of truth, is to submit to its authority, so as to bring all the principles of the mind and life into obedience to its dictates, this being the true source and ground of all human perfection; and that, with this view, man ought to regard in himself the principle of evil in his will, more than of error in his understanding, and, accordingly, to labour by sincere repentance to remove the former, as the most effectual method of securing the removal of the latter. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on, through the Divine grace and mercy, to endeavour to guard against the terrible mischief of spiritual blindness, and, with this view, to attend well to our daily conduct, until all our purposes, thoughts, words, and works are brought into conformity with the Eternal Truth. Let us further resolve to watch well against all the motions of evil in the will, arising; either from an inordinate self-love, or love of the world, that so, having purified our hearts from till defiled affections, we may be in a better state to discern the speck that is in our brother’s eye, and so to pull it out. Thus may we hope, through the Divine blessing, no longer to be of the number of the blind leaders of the blind, who both fall into the ditch, but rather to be of the happy number of those of whom it is written, Blessed are your eyes for they see; and again, Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 66: 02.24. LUK_7:41-43 -- CREDITOR WITH TWO DEBTORS ======================================================================== Luk 7:41-43 -- Creditor with Two Debtors There was a certain creditor which had two debtors: the one owed five hundred pence, and the other fifty. And when they had nothing to pay, he frankly forgave them both. Tell me, therefore, which of them will love him most? Simon answered and said, I suppose that he, to whom he forgave most. And he said to him, You have rightly judged. By the creditor is to be understood, the Almighty Father and Governor of the Universe; and by his debtors, the whole human race who have received, and continually receive, from His bounty the all of their life, its faculties, and its enjoyments. These debtors are called two debtors, in order to distinguish them into the two classes afterwards, mentioned, and described in these words: The one owed him five hundred pence, and the other fifty. By the one who owed five hundred pence, is to be understood, that class of mankind who have received much at the hands of their Heavenly Father; and by him who owed fifty pence, is to be understood, that class who have received something, but not to the same amount with the other class. It is to be observed, that this inequality does not originate in the Almighty, but in the use which the two classes of men, above spoken of, make of His gifts, whilst some improve them to a greater amount than others, agreeably to what is written in another parable, in which mention is made of giving to one servant ten pounds, to another five, and to another one; where the unequal distribution of the pounds is to be attributed to the unequal use which the several servants made of their respective talents. The debt in general, as was above observed, which all mankind alike owe to their Heavenly Father, is the constant communication of life and all its enjoyments. But the life of man, it is well known, is of several orders and degrees; being first corporeal, then sensual, then natural, then rational, and, in case the man himself labours to attain it, spiritual and celestial. The life of man, therefore, which is every instant communicated from the Father of his being, is capable of continual elevation, until it rises and returns to its Divine Giver; and until again it descends from the Divine Giver, and manifests itself in all the works of a good and holy life. Though every man, therefore, receives from God the blessed gift of life with its enjoyments, and is indebted to God every instant for the continuance, support, and preservation of that gift; yet it does not hence follow, that every man turns the gift to all that advantage which was designed by the Giver, since experience teaches, that some men remain in a merely natural state of life, notwithstanding the faculty they possess of elevating it to a higher state. Hence, then, may be discovered the ground of the distinction, made in the parable, between the debtor who owed five hundred pence, and him who owed only fifty; inasmuch as the debt of five hundred pence implies that the gift of life had been improved according to the designs of the Giver, and thus had yielded much increase; whereas the debt of fifty pence implies that the gift had not been so much improved, and, consequently, had yielded less increase. It is written of these two debtors, that when they had nothing to pay, he frankly forgave them both. By having nothing to pay is to be understood, the general condition of all mankind, which is such, that they have nothing of their own, by which they can make any suitable return for the immense gifts bestowed on them by their heavenly Father. For all the return they can possibly make, on this occasion, is the humble and grateful acknowledgement of the divine bounty, which has heaped on them so many valuable gifts; and since they cannot make even this acknowledgement without the aid of the Divine Giver, therefore, in making this return, they give nothing of their own, and only increase the debt which they owe to their Benefactor. The expression, he frankly forgave them both, involves in it all the depths of the divine mercy and disinterested benevolence of the Father of Mercies, which is of such a nature, that He is ever disposed to forgive, or to remit, the immense debt owing to Him from His creatures, whenever He sees them humble and grateful enough to acknowledge it. Accordingly, in the divine prayer, which He Himself has been pleased to teach for the benefit of His children, it is written, Forgive [or remit to] us our debts, as we forgive [or remit to] our debtors; in which words is contained and expressed the single condition of obtaining from the Almighty the forgiveness, or remission, of the debt owing to Him from all His creatures; which condition is simply this, that His creatures should acknowledge gratefully, not only how much they are indebted to their Heavenly Father, but likewise how much they owe to their fellow-men for all the comforts which they enjoy. It is remarkable that, in the account of this parable, Jesus Christ Himself does not announce the lesson which He intended should be deduced from it, but only asks the significant question, Tell me, therefore, which of them will love him most? The only assignable reason for His conduct on this occasion appears to be this, that He thought it best to appeal to the common sense and reason of mankind in a case so plain and self-evident, being fully assured that the answer to His question would be according to the tenor of that which was afterwards given by Simon, who answered and said, I suppose that he to whom He forgave most. Thus, in agreement with the testimony of the common sense and reason of mankind, the blessed Jesus would establish the validity of this great truth, that the more man is made sensible in his own mind of the immense debt which he owes to his Heavenly Father, the more he will be disposed to regard that Father, from a principle of reciprocal love and affection; this being the great end and design of all the blessings bestowed on mankind from above, to excite a grateful acknowledgement, and in that gratitude to enkindle a flame of devout regard, which may incline the humble debtor to love Him, who is essential love, and who communicates His favours for no other purpose than to impart that love. Jesus Christ, we find, Himself makes the application of the above parable in these remarkable words, where it is said, that He turned to the woman, and said to Simon, See you this woman? I entered into your house, you gave me no water for my feet; but she has washed my feet with tears, and wiped them with the hairs of her head. You gave me no kiss; but this woman, since the time I came in, has not ceased to kiss my feet. My head with oil you did not anoint; but this woman has anointed my feet with ointment. Wherefore I say to you, Her sins, which are many, are forgiven; for she loved much: but to whom little is forgiven, the same loves little. By the woman, here spoken of, is figured and represented the Church, as to the affection of truth and good, which constitutes the Church; and by the several acts which this woman performed on the feet of the Redeemer, as washing, wiping, kissing, and anointing, are further figured and described the genuine offices and operations of that affection. By washing the Redeemer’s feet with tears, and wiping them with the hairs of the head, is denoted the purification of the natural principle, which is two-fold: first, by truth, which is signified by washing; and, secondly, by the good of truth, signified by wiping; which latter operation is performed by the hairs of the head, as the former is performed by tears; because, by tears is represented an order of interior truth, as by the hairs of the head is represented a similar order of interior good of truth. By kissing, again, is figured conjunction with the Lord’s natural principle of His Divine Humanity, by the affection of truth, as by anointing is figured the same conjunction by the affection of good. Thus, the four acts of washing, of wiping, of kissing, and of anointing the feet of the Great Redeemer, are figurative of the whole process of the Church’s reformation and regeneration, which consists in purification from all evil, and final conjunction with the divine humanly of Jesus Christ in the affection of heavenly truth and good. It accordingly follows, in this history, Wherefore I say to you, Her sins, which are many, are forgiven; for she loved much: but to whom little is forgiven, the same loves little. For by loving much is to be understood, a devout and sincere regard to the Divine Being and His Holy Law; and wherever this love prevails, there sin, let it be ever so multiplied, must of necessity be forgiven, or remitted, since a pure love and sin can never abide together in the same dwelling; and, therefore, if a pure disinterested love be exalted to preeminence in the human mind, every kind and degree of sin must, sooner or later, be expelled from that mind. For the same reason, to whom little is forgiven, the same loves little; because, by little being forgiven is implied, that the immense debt, owing to the great Creator, has never been explored and acknowledged; and the consequence must of necessity be, in such case, that there will be little love, since, as was above observed, the measure of every man’s love to his Heavenly Father will depend altogether upon the measure he takes of the benefits and blessings which he has received from that Father. From this parable we learn, in the first place, that the Divine Being, the Creator and Preserver of all other beings, is the universal Creditor, whilst all His creatures, in one degree or other, are His debtors. We learn, further, that these debtors are of two classes-one owing five hundred pence, and the other fifty; and that these classes are determined by the estimate which every man makes of the mercies he has received from his bountiful and Divine Parent. We learn, still further, that it is impossible for man to pay the above debt, but by the humble and grateful acknowledgement of his Heavenly Father’s benevolence, and that when this acknowledgement is made, the debt is in the same proportion forgiven, or remitted. Lastly, we learn that the degree of man’s love, or regard, to his Divine Benefactor, will always depend on the degree in which he is affected by the multiplied and valuable gifts which he has received from Him; insomuch, that he who is little affected will love little, whilst he who is much affected will love much. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on, to make it the principal business and concern of our lives, to form a just estimate of the immense debt which we owe to our God and Saviour, taking into the account not only what He has done, and is continually doing, as to the preservation and blessing of our bodily life, but, also, what is of infinitely more importance, all that He has done, and is continually doing for the preservation and blessing of our spiritual life, as to all its faculties, operations, and enjoyments. Let us resolve, further, to endeavour to form in ourselves the blessed habit of a grateful acknowledgement of this immense debt, under a sensible conviction, that according to such acknowledgement will be the exact measure of our love and regard to the great Author of our being. Thus may we humbly hope no longer to imitate the Pharisee, mentioned in this history, who suspected a want of judgement and discernment in his Saviour God, but rather to follow the example of the woman, of whom it is written, as an everlasting memorial of pious affection, that she washed her Saviour’s feet with her tears, wiped them with the hairs of her head, kissed, and anointed them. For thus may we hope, like this woman, to enter upon the great work of purification, by which, finally, we may be admitted to the inconceivable and eternal happiness of a blessed conjunction with our God and Saviour, through His Divine Humanity, and may thus be greeted with the consolatory language, her sins, which are many, are forgiven, for she loved much. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 67: 02.25. LUK_10:30-36 -- GOOD SAMARITAN ======================================================================== Luk 10:30-36 -- Good Samaritan A certain man went down from Jerusalem to Jericho, and fell among thieves, who stripped him of his clothing, and wounded him, and departed, leaving him half dead. And by chance there came down a certain priest that way: and when he saw him, he passed by on the other side. And likewise a Levite, when he was at the place, came and looked on him, and passed by on the other side. But a certain Samaritan, as he journeyed, came where he was: and when he saw him, he had compassion on him, and went to him, and bound up his wounds, pouring in oil and wine, and set him on his own beast, and brought him to an inn, and took care of him. And on the next day when he departed, he took out two pence, and gave them to the host, and said to him, Take care of him; and whatsoever you spend more, when I come again, I will repay you. Which now of these three, think you, was neighbour to him that fell among the thieves? Jesus Christ, in this parable, describes the offices and exercises of charity in a two-fold sense; first, as they regard the body; and, secondly, as they regard the mind. The first of these offices and exercises is described in the letter, or history, of this parable, and the second in the spirit, or spiritual sense, contained in that letter, or history. Thus he speaks at once for the use of men and of angels; of men, by recommending works of charity done to the body, and of angels and angelic men, by recommending at the same time works of charity done to the immortal soul, or spirit. According to this latter kind, or description, of charity, by a certain man going down from Jerusalem to Jericho, are to be understood all those of the church, represented by Jerusalem, who are desirous of acquiring the knowledges of the eternal truth, for the purpose of acquiring purity of life, and thus an acquaintance with the Eternal Truth itself; for Jericho was a city representative of those knowledges, being on the other side of Jordan from the land of Canaan, and thus figurative of what is introductory to the land of Canaan, or to Heaven, which was represented by that land, consequently, figurative of all the heavenly knowledges of truth and good, because these are the only introductory principles to the true Canaan. According to the spiritual interpretation of this parable, by thieves are to be understood spiritual thieves, or such as endeavour to deprive man of his spiritual property, that is to say, of the heavenly truths which he has admitted into his understanding, and of the heavenly good which he has received into his will. By falling among these thieves, therefore, is to be understood, that they who are in the pursuit of heavenly knowledges are exposed to the danger of being deprived of those knowledges by those of the perverse church, who are in those knowledges, but not in a life according to them. They are, therefore, said to be stripped of their clothing, because clothing has relation to the truths which a man has imbibed in his understanding. And they are said also to be wounded, because spiritual wounding has relation to the evils and false principles of life with which man is infested when he is deprived of the knowledges of the Eternal Truth. And, lastly, they are said to be left half dead, because to be half dead denotes the almost total extinction of spiritual life, in consequence of such evil and false persuasions. It is said, that by chance there came down a certain Priest that way, and when he saw him, he passed by on the other side. And likewise a Levite, when he was at the place, came and looked on, and passed by on the other side. By the Priest and the Levite, here spoken of, are to be understood those of the perverted Church who ought to have been principled in heavenly love and charity, but were not so. By the Priest are represented those who ought to have been principled in heavenly love, that is to say, in love to the Lord, because this is the principal love which prevails in heaven, and was represented under the old law by the office of Priests. But by the Levite were represented those who ought to have been principled in the life of charity, because the tribe of Levi was representative of that principle, having its name from Levi, which signifies adhesion, and is thus figurative of the life of charity. By their passing by, therefore, on the other side, is to be understood that they had neither heavenly love nor charity, and, thus, that they were in no disposition either to heal the spiritual wounds, or cover the spiritual nakedness of him who fell among thieves. But it is written, that a certain Samaritan, as he journeyed, came where he was; and when he saw him he had compassion on him, and went to him, and bound up his wounds, pouring in oil and wine, and set him on his own beast, and brought him to an inn, and took care of him. And on the next day when he departed, he took out two pence and gave them to the host, and said to him, Take care of him; and whatsoever you spend more, when I come again I will repay you. The Samaritans were regarded by the Jews as Gentiles, and, therefore, they represented all those who arc in simple natural good, but as yet uninstructed in the doctrines of faith, or truth, that is to say, in the doctrines of the Church, and yet have a desire to be instructed. It is, therefore, said, as he journeyed, because journeying, according to the spiritual idea, denotes instruction in truth, which is to conduct to the good of heavenly life. Every man, therefore, is considered as a pilgrim, or journeyer, here on earth, so long as he is under the leading of truth, but as soon as ever he attains, by that leading, to a state of heavenly good, which is the good of love and charity, he is then said to be at rest, or to be arrived at the end of his journey. By the expression, he came where he was, is denoted, that he came into the same state with the man who had fallen among thieves; in other words, that he made the man’s case his own, regarding him as a brother, and, therefore, it is added, that when he saw him, he had compassion on him; by which is signified, that he regarded the man with brotherly love and tenderness, and this in consequence of placing himself in the man’s situation, and thinking that he ought to do to others as he would have others do to him. All the expressions which immediately follow represent the acts and offices of charity, especially as applied in the instruction of the ignorant, and in rescuing them from the mischiefs of ignorance and of evil. The words, therefore, he went to him, denote willing descent and application to spiritual distress, with a view to its relief: by binding up his wounds, pouring in oil and wine, is represented instruction in heavenly good and heavenly truth, and the consequent removal of evil and of error; for by wounds, as was shown above, are to be understood the effects of evil and error in injuring the spiritual constitution of man; and by oil and wine are signified and represented heavenly good and heavenly truth, both of which are necessary for the cure of spiritual wounds: by setting him on his own beast is signified, that he exalted the man to a state of intellectual thought, such thought being considered as a beast of burden, for the purposes of bearing, supporting, and carrying the higher or interior principles of spiritual life, which are those of heavenly love and charity. It is accordingly written in the Prophet, I will cause you to ride upon the high places of the earth (Isa 58:14); where riding on the high places of the earth manifestly denotes a state of elevated understanding, which, by virtue of its connection with the Supreme Good, is enabled to raise itself above all the things of this world, however high and eminent they may appear. By bringing him to an inn, and taking care of him, is further denoted an additional exercise of charity, in providing for the man’s spiritual accommodation, comfort, and refreshment. For by an inn is manifestly signified, according to its spiritual idea, a state of such spiritual accommodation, comfort, and refreshment, corresponding with that which is administered to the body in its journeying, by the convenience of a natural inn. By the next day is to be understood a new state, when the man was to be left apparently to himself, to profit by the instructions, and the comforts which he had already received, and, therefore, it is said, that in this case the Samaritan departed from him. For such is the state with man, during the progress of his regeneration, that he first receives instruction, support, and comfort from another, to the intent that he may make them his own, by forming his life accordingly. On this occasion, therefore, he is apparently left to himself, to make the most of the blessings he has received, since without such appearance those blessings could not be appropriated to him. Nevertheless, that he is not really left to himself, but only apparently, is evident from what is further said in the parable, that the Samaritan, when he departed, took out twopence, gave them to the host, and said to him, take care of him, and whatsoever you spend more, when I come again I will repay you, for by taking out twopence, and giving to the host, and saying to him, take care of him, is denoted a continuation of the offices of charity, but in a new state; by taking out two pence is denoted the communication of truth, for all money, whether talents, pounds, or pence, is figurative of the eternal truth, since, as money is serviceable in procuring the necessaries of natural life, truth and its knowledges are serviceable in procuring the necessaries of spiritual life: and by giving to the host, and saying take care of him, is denoted the communication of good, for host, in this case, is not to be understood as a person, and thus as a distinct being from the Samaritan, but as principle, and as a principle also similar to that represented by the Samaritan, but in a new state, or the state in which the man was apparently left to himself. Lastly, by saying, whatsoever you spend more, when I come again I will repay you, is to be understood, that all truth applied to the purposes of a good life, by the rejection of evil, is finally converted into good, which is here signified by the repayment. For such is the case, so long as man is under the leading of truth, that, during that leading, good seems to be absent; but when this leading is accomplished by the removal of man’s natural evils, through combat against them, then presently heavenly good is made manifest, and is the glad repayment, or recompense, for the truth, which has now completed its office by conducting man to the proper end of all truth, which is conjunction with the Almighty in the eternal good of love, of charity, and their operation. From the letter, or history, of this parable, we are instructed in the duty of regarding every man as a brother, and, accordingly, of relieving all his bodily wants to the utmost of our power, uninfluenced by any partial consideration of situation and of circumstance, respecting either his religion or the country to which he belongs. And, from the spiritual sense of this parable, we are further taught the important duty of spiritual charity, which consists in relieving the spiritual wants and necessities of others, by instructing them in the truth, and especially by conducting them to an eternal good. We are taught, further, from the example of the Priest and Levite, to take heed to ourselves, lest at any time we pervert the principles of religion in which we have been educated, by not cherishing those principles of heavenly love and charity which are the great ends of all religion, and without which no forms, ceremonies, or professions of religion whatever can possibly confer any benefit or blessing on man. Lastly, we are instructed by this parable, that true charity is incessant in its operation, and employs all possible instruments to accomplish its own purposes, regarding only the eternal end which it ever has in view, and which is simply this, to endeavour on all occasions, and under all circumstances, to make men wise, good, and happy. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 68: 02.26. LUK_11:5-9 -- MIDNIGHT VISIT ======================================================================== Luk 11:5-9 -- Midnight Visit And he said to them, Which of you shall have a friend, and shall go to him at midnight, and say to him, Friend, lend me three loaves; for a friend of mine in his journey is come to me, and I have nothing to set before him? And he from within shall answer and say, Trouble me not: the door is now shut, and my children are with me in bed; I cannot rise and give you. I say to you, Though he will not rise and give him, because he is his friend, yet because of his need he will rise and give him as many as he needs. And I say to you, Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and you shall find; knock, and it shall be opened to you. By the first friend, here mentioned, is to be understood the Almighty and Merciful father of the universe, as to the good of His love, thus distinguished from the second friend spoken of, who is said to be in his journey, and who, therefore, represents the same Almighty Father, as to the truth of His wisdom, since journeying is always applied to truth, inasmuch as every man under the leading of truth, is regarded as a traveller, or sojourner, truth being the way, or the road, which conducts man to heavenly good. Midnight denotes a state of ignorance, which precedes the knowledge of the eternal truth, and in which the first desire is kindled to attain the knowledge of that truth. For man is naturally born in ignorance, but still with the faculty from God of receiving and comprehending the eternal truth. Whenever, therefore, the affection for this truth is excited, and begins to operate in his mind from a genuine desire of attaining the truth, he is then said to go to his heavenly Friend at midnight. It is said that he supplicates his friend to lend him three loaves. By the three loaves are to be understood all the principles of heavenly food and nourishment, necessary for the formation and support of heavenly life, which the natural man now begins to feel the want of; and by lending these three loaves is to be understood, that under the first reception of the divine love and wisdom, which are the food and nourishment here spoken of, these heavenly principles are regarded as borrowed gifts, because not yet fully incorporated into the life. For such is the nature of the first reception, for instance, of heavenly knowledge, that like the axe of the son of the prophet (2Ki 6:5), which is the exact figure and representative of such knowledge, it is said to be borrowed, this being the case with all truth and its knowledge, until a man sees it by a clear light in his own mind to be truth. For every man, at first, receives truth on the authority of others, and confirms it by that authority; but, in proportion as he forms his life in agreement with it, he then sees the truth by its own radiant Sight, and thus confirms it in his mind by its own divine authority, in which case the truth and its knowledge are no longer to be regarded as a loan, or borrowed, but as his own property, because incorporated into his life’s love. We have already seen, what is to be understood by the second friend, when he is said to be in his journey. We have now to consider what is meant by this second friend coming to the man who makes the supplication. By the second friend then, being understood the Almighty Father of the universe, under the character of His Divine Truth; in this character He makes His first approach to man, in order to gain admission into his heart and life, and thus to dwell with him eternally, on which occasion He is here said to come. Thus God makes his first approach to man by and in His Holy Word, because His Holy Word is the fullness of His Divine Truth, united with His Divine Good; and in proportion as man admits this Holy Word into his understanding, and forms it into his life, in the same proportion God is said to come to him, being for ever present and one with His Holy Word, and this in such a manner, that whoever receives His Holy Word receives Him, agreeably to those words of Jesus Christ to His disciples, He that receives you receives Me, and He that receives Me receives Him that sent Me (Mat 10:40). But it is added, I have nothing to set before him. These words were intended to describe the effect of the reception of the Eternal Truth, in teaching man that he has nothing of his own by which he can satisfy its requirement; thus teaching, further, that, of himself, he has no love either to God or towards men, such love being that which the Eternal Truth requires, and with which alone it can be satisfied. It is to be understood, therefore, that the Eternal Truth produces a double effect in the mind of him who admits it, namely, first, by teaching him his own wants, and that, in himself, there is nothing either of goodness or of truth which can render him acceptable to his Heavenly Father; and, secondly, by directing him to that Heavenly Father as the only divine source from which he can hope to receive those heavenly and saving principles. It follows next in the parable, that He from within shall answer and say, Trouble me not: the door is now shut, and my children are with me in bed; I cannot rise and give you. These expressions, which seem to indicate an unwillingness or reluctance, on the part of the Almighty, to grant the supplication here presented to Him, are spoken in regard to the appearances, as they arise in the mind of the natural man, when he is first awakened by the reception of the Divine Truth, to discover what he is, in himself, and how, naturally, he has nothing in himself, either of saving good or saving truth. For, in this case, he is led to imagine that his needs are troublesome to the Divine Being; he fancies, too, that the door of communication is so shut between him and his Heavenly Father, that no supplication on his part can open it; and, lastly, he conceives that the Almighty is so blessed in Himself, and in His own Heaven, as to be insensible to the wants of His children on earth, and thus to be unmoved by their entreaties. The expression, He from within, as applied to our Heavenly Father, was designed to teach this very important lesson, that our Heavenly Father, has His abode within all other things, or creatures, thus, that he is the inmost principle of all life, consequently, the inmost good, the inmost truth, and the inmost power, according to which idea He is called, in the Sacred Scriptures, the Highest, or Most High, because what is high, in its spiritual sense and interpretation, means what is within, and, consequently, what is highest means what is inmost. It is plain that the words, trouble me not, are spoken according to appearance only; because it is not really true, in any one instance, that God ever thinks it a trouble to listen to the entreaties of His children: on the contrary, such is His divine love towards all His creatures, that nothing gives Him greater joy than to hear their supplications, and grant all their petitions. The natural man, however, judging from the state of his own mind, cannot possibly have any apprehension of this disposition of his God, and, therefore, he concludes that his needs give trouble to his Heavenly Father, in like manner as repeated need is apt to give trouble to men here below. With regard to the door which is here mentioned, and which is said, on this occasion, to be shut, we may observe, that there are in every human mind what may properly be called two doors, because a door, properly considered, is only a medium of communication. Thus, there is one door in every human mind which opens towards God and Heaven, because in every human mind there is a faculty of communication with God and Heaven. Again, there is another door which opens towards the kingdom of darkness, because in every human mind there is also a faculty of communication with that kingdom. By the door, therefore, in the present instance, being shut, is to be understood, that the natural man, on his first application to his Heavenly Father for divine grace and mercy, is not sensible of the communication being open, nor can he be made sensible of it, until, by repeated application, the door is opened, and he is thus led out of appearance into reality; which reality teaches that the door is never shut, only so far as man shuts it, either by his unwillingness to have it opened, or by his ignorance as to the manner of opening it. That a door is thus to be understood according to a spiritual idea, is evident from Jesus Christ calling himself the Door, by which is manifest, that He meant to describe Himself, as to His Divine Humanity, as the grand medium of communication between man and the Supreme Divinity. The expression, My children are with me in bed, has relation to the repose of the angelic kingdom, and of all those who are honoured by the sacred appellation of God’s children. Thus it is intended to express the appearance that such repose would be disturbed by the need of supplication. It is added, further, I cannot rise and give you. The reason why it is here said, I cannot rise, when it might have been sufficient to say, I cannot give you is, that rising, in this case, as applied to the Almighty, is intended to express the elevation of Him, and of the principles of His life, in the human mind, since rising can never be predicted of the Almighty in any other sense than this. For God, so far as concerns himself alone, can never be said either to ascend or descend, and, therefore, whenever, either ascent or descent is applied to Him, the term must of necessity be intended to express only the state of His reception in the minds of His people. Thus, He is said to ascend, when He is exalted in the affections and thoughts of men as the Supreme Good and the Supreme Truth, as, on the other hand, He is said to descend and be degraded, when other things are exalted above Himself in the hearts and understandings of His creatures. This, therefore, is the reason why it is said, I cannot rise and give you, since God, there is every cause to believe, cannot give, or communicate His favours, graces, and blessings, until He arises; in other words, until he is exalted in the human mind as the Supreme Good and Supreme Truth. It is accordingly written, in the 68th Psalm, Let God arise, and let His enemies be scattered, to instruct us, in like manner, that God cannot disperse the evils of man’s heart, or the spirits of darkness connected with those evils, which are man’s only real enemies, until He is suffered to arise in the power of His divine love and wisdom, and thus to be exalted as man’s best Friend, Benefactor, and Protector. The expression, therefore, is again repeated twice in the following verse, where it is said, Though he will not rise and give him, because he is his Friend, yet because of his need he will rise and give him as many as he needs. God, as a Friend, is disposed to communicate to mankind all his most precious gifts of love, wisdom, peace, protection, and blessedness, and out of His divine love is ever most eager and desirous to impart these gifts even to the most sinful of His creatures. But this desire on the part of God is not, of itself alone, sufficient for the communication and reception of those gifts, since before they can be communicated and received, it is necessary that man, on his part, should be desirous to receive them, and from that desire, should apply to the Divine Giver to impart them. For without such a reciprocal desire on man’s part, the gifts, if bestowed, would not be blessings, because they would not be acknowledged humbly and gratefully to be the bounty of a divine, unmerited mercy, and until man is in the disposition to make this acknowledgement, he would only pervert the most heavenly gifts to his misery and destruction, by separating them from their Divine Giver. For such is the nature of every good which proceeds from God, that it is instantly turned into an evil in that defiled mind, which is not disposed willingly and cheerfully, and thankfully to confess its Divine Source, and to rejoice in such confession. God accordingly waits for man’s need before He dispenses His gifts, well aware that if there be no need arising from a humble and penitent desire in the heart of the supplicant, the gift, if dispensed, would be perverted and abused, and thus rendered a mischief instead of a blessing. It is, therefore, written of the wicked, that The things which should have been for their wealth, are to them an occasion of falling. The parable continues, He will rise and give him as many as he needs. When man unites his desire with the desire of God, he then finds, not only that all things are possible for him, but that he comes into possession of universal property, so as to be enabled to say, with his Redeemer, according to his measure, Father, all mine are Yours, and Yours are mine. For such is the nature of the Divine Mercy, that, being willing to communicate to others all that it has, it waits only for the same will to be excited in others, that they may be as much disposed to receive as the Almighty is to give; in which case man comes into the possession of every possible good, and finds those words of his Saviour verified, It is enough for the disciple to be as his Master, and the servant as his Lord. By as many as he needs, therefore, is to be understood, enough, or all-sufficiency, agreeably to the divine promise, here it is written, He will fulfil [or, fillfull,] the desire of them that fear Him; and, again, He that overcomes shall inherit all things. And thus is verified what is written in the verse which presently follows this parable, Every one that asks re-ceiveth: and he that seeks finds; and to him that knocks it shall be opened. The general instruction intended to be taught in this parable is, that the Almighty does not dispense His gifts according to the measure of His mercy only, but according to that of the desire of His children to receive His gifts, since it is impossible they can be received to any saving purpose without such a desire. We are, therefore, further instructed, that it is the will and intention of the Almighty first to beget and excite in his children the desire of an Eternal Good, because that desire is from Himself, and in whatsoever mind it is truly operative, it never fails, sooner or later, to secure the desired good, because God Himself is in it, and wherever God is, there must of necessity be also all possible good of love, of wisdom, of power, protection, and blessedness. Thus need on the part of man, being derived from an infinite mercy on the part of God, and connecting itself with that mercy, is sure to introduce the devout supplicant to the possession of all that he needs, to the removal of all his wants, and to the satisfying of every desire of bliss imparted to him by his Heavenly Father. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 69: 02.27. LUK_12:16-22 -- MAN WITH FERTILE GROUND ======================================================================== Luk 12:16-22 -- Man With Fertile Ground And He spoke a parable to them, saying, The ground of a certain rich man brought forth plentifully: And he thought within himself, saying, What shall I do, because I have no room where to store my fruits? And he said, This will I do: I will pull dow, my barns, and build greater; and there will I store all my fruits and my goods. And I will say to my soul, Soul, you have much goods laid up for many years; take your ease, eat, drink, and be merry. But God said to him, You fool, this night, your soul shall be required of you: then whose shall those things be, which you have provided? So is he that lays up treasure for himself, and is not rich toward God. And He said to His disciples, Therefore I say to you, Take no thought for your life, what you shall eat; neither for the body, what you shall put on. According to the letter of this parable, by ground is to be understood ground, and by a rich man one who abounds in worldly property; and in agreement with this sense, of the words, the Lord condemns the spirit of worldly covetousness. But, according to the spiritual sense of the parable, by ground is not to be understood ground, but the human mind, which is as ground intended for the reception of heavenly seeds, or truths; and by a certain rich man is to be understood one whose understanding abounds in the knowledge of those truths, agreeably to which sense his ground is said to bring forth plentifully. By the expression, he thought within himself, saying, is meant interior reflection and consideration, which is a species of internal speech, and the source from whence all external speech is derived. Interior thought, therefore, is the most real speech, which, though not heard by men on earth, is plainly heard, and fully understood, by the Lord and His holy angels. According to the letter, the purpose of this internal speech in the present instance has reference to the man’s want of room where to store his worldly fruits; but, according to the spirit, it has reference to the man’s contracted understanding, which was incapable of comprehending and containing all the appearances of good manifested in his will. For the understanding of man is a kind of repository, in which all the apparent goods and delights of the will are stored up for use and enjoyment. In proportion, therefore, to the fruitfulness of the will, in its apparent goods and delights, is the desire of man to extend the limits of his understanding, by virtue whereof those goods and delights may be fully comprehended, and thus become at once both more sensible and more permanent. It is added in the next verse, that he said, This will I do: I will pull down my barns and build greater; and there will I store all my fruits and my goods. Saying, in the first instance, has reference, as we have seen, to thought in the man’s understanding; but in the second instance, it has reference to purpose in the man’s will, originating in that thought, so that the Lord would teach us, by this mode of expression, of what vast importance our thoughts are, and how they are ever fructifying either in good or evil, since a good thought is always giving birth to a good purpose; whilst an evil thought is, in like manner, ever productive of an evil purpose. This same mode of expression occurs in the parable of the unjust steward, who, when accused of wasting his master’s goods, first said within himself, What shall I do? And then, presently, replies to himself, I am resolved what to do; where it is evident that the question, What shall I do? has reference to the man’s thought in his understanding; whilst the answer, I am resolved what to do, has reference to the purpose begotten by such thought in the man’s will. The words, I will pull down my barns, and build greater, were intended to denote the man’s purpose to extend the sphere of his memory and understanding, which are the spiritual barns intended to be the repositories both of real and apparent goods. For in proportion as a good man extends the sphere of his memory and understanding, in the same proportion he extends also the sphere of the enjoyment, of his real goods; and, in like manner, in proportion us a wicked man extends the sphere of his memory and understanding, he extends also the sphere of the enjoyment of his apparent goods. For without memory and understanding no good, whether it be real, or apparent, can be made sensible to man, and of course, in the degree in which memory and understanding are increased and perfected in man, in the same degree will his sensation of good also be increased and perfected. It is next said, And there will I store all my fruits and my goods. There is here a distinction between fruits and goods, which was not made in the former verse, where fruits alone are mentioned, for the term fruits relates to the apparent truths in the man’s understanding, whilst the term goods relates to the apparent goods in the man’s will; and the distinction between these fruits and goods in now first made, because the two principles of purpose and thought, or of will and understanding, begin now first to be noted. For the case is, that, both with a wicked man and a good man, the above principles are for a long time confounded and undistinguished, so that the man has no clear and precise views in his own mind of the distinct nature of each principle, but in process of time, as man advances towards maturity, whether in the ways of wickedness, or righteousness, the above principles become more and more distinct, so that the powers and offices of each are seen in the most exact discrimination. It is further written, I will say to my soul, Soul, you have much goods laid up for many years, take your ease, eat, drink, and be merry. To say to the soul is a form of speech expressive of interior thought, and thus it is demonstrated that in man there are two distinct principles of thought, the one interior, and the other exterior, or the one superior, and the other inferior, and that the man may speak from either of these principles, and either of these principles may speak to the other. Accordingly, in the book of Psalms, we find the Psalmist frequently addressing his own soul, by which is to be understood, in respect to man, the discourse of his external man with his internal, and with respect to the Lord, the discourse of His Human, principle, or Humanity, with his Divine principle, or His Divinity. Thus, by the expression, I will say to my soul, the Lord would teach us the important lesson, that there are in us two distinct principles of thought, the one internal, and the other external, and that each can communicate with the other, and does communicate, as occasion requires. By the much goods laid up for many years, in a natural or literal sense, is to be understood that the man abounded with a sufficiency of worldly wealth, to satisfy all his wants during his continuance here on earth. But in the internal or spiritual sense of the parable, by much goods laid up for many years is to be understood, that the man had acquired a great store of knowledges in his understanding, which he unhappily mistook for real goods, and which he conceived would be his qualification for the enjoyment of eternal happiness. Therefore, he says, further, to his soul, take your ease, denoting that he was fully satisfied with his knowledges and apparent goods, without considering at all whether his life was in agreement with his knowledges, and whether his apparent goods were real as well as apparent. He adds, further, eat, drink, and be merry, to denote that he thought to appropriate to himself real good and truth, with all their joys, merely because he was in possession of the knowledges, which were intended to conduct, him to such a blessed appropriation. It is lastly said in the parable, But God said to him, You fool, this night your soul shall be required of you: then whose shall those things be which you have provided. God’s saying to him, denotes the judgement or decision of the eternal truth, for all judgement comes from truth; and God’s saying to him, you fool, denotes that, according to the judgement or decision of the eternal truth, all folly consists in storing up knowledges of what is good and true in the understanding, without applying those knowledges to the purification and reformation of the life, as was the case with this thoughtless man in the parable. By God saying, this night shall your soul be required of you, is to be understood, that whilst the man was not aware of it, he would be deprived of the heavenly faculty of comprehending truth; for by the night, here spoken of, is meant a state of obscurity, by which all are finally overtaken who imbibe knowledges with eagerness, but neglect the life of knowledge; and by the soul being required, is not meant the separation only of the soul from the body, according to the literal idea suggested by the expression, but the separation or extinction of all heavenly intelligence and wisdom, which properly constitutes the inmost soul of every man who is born into the world. Lastly, by the significant question, Whose shall all those things be which you have provided? is intended to be expressed, the awful judgement, that the knowledges which the man had stored up with so much eagerness in his mind, would all be taken away from him, so as no longer to belong to him, this being the eternal law of the divine order, that all knowledge, which is not formed into man’s life, so as to control his evil affections and corrupt appetites, and to conduct him to the love and enjoyment of the Supreme Good and the Supreme Truth, shall finally cease to be his property, and be given to others, and this with a view even to the man’s well-being, since it is better for every one to be deprived entirely of the knowledge of truth, than to possess it and not live according to it. In the application of this parable, it is written, So is he that lays up treasure for himself, and is not rich towards God. The treasure here spoken of, in the sense of the letter, means worldly wealth and property, but in the spiritual sense, spiritual treasure, consisting in the abundance of knowledges of heavenly truth above spoken of. And by a man laying up this treasure for himself, and not being rich toward God, is meant the misapplication of such treasure, by applying it to the gratification of selfish and worldly love, and thus to earthly ends of life, instead of directing it to the glory of God by the removal of such earthly ends, and by rendering it instrumental in effecting his elevation to heavenly and eternal ends, thus to the promotion of eternal happiness, by effecting conjunction with God in life, and love, and blessedness. According to the literal sense of the parable, we are taught the important and edifying lesson, to beware of worldly covetousness, and for this purpose to be content with that share of worldly property which a merciful Providence has been pleased to store upon us. And, according to the spiritual or internal sense of the parable, we are taught the still more important and instructive lesson to beware of spiritual covetousness: in other words, to take heed how we covet and store up the treasures of truth and knowledge, with no other view than to gratify our vanity and selfish pride, or to gain worldly honours and pre-eminence, when we ought rather to apply those truths and knowledges to the heavenly purposes for which, by a kind Providence, they were bestowed upon us, namely, to effect our purification from our natural evils, to control our passions and appetites, to open our minds upwards towards God and Heaven, to enable us to love God above all things, and our neighbour as ourselves, and thus, finally, to restore in us the life, the order, the peace, the image, and likeness of our Heavenly Father. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 70: 02.28. LUK_12:35-50 -- LOINS GIRDED, LIGHT BURNING ======================================================================== Luk 12:35-50 -- Loins Girded, Light Burning Let your loins be girded about, and your lights burning; and you yourselves like men that wait for their Lord, when He will return from the wedding; that when He comes and knocks, they may open to Him immediately. Blessed are those servants, whom the Lord when He comes shall find watching: verily I say to you, that He shall gird Himself, and make them to sit down to eat, and will come forth and serve them. And if He shall come in the second watch, or come in the third watch, and find them so, blessed are those servants. And know this, that if the owner of the house had known what hour the thief would come, he would have watched, and not have suffered his house to be broken into. Be you therefore ready also: for the Son of Man comes at an hour when you think not. By the loins are figured and represented the affections of man, thus the things belonging to his will, or love; and by the loins, therefore, being girded, is denoted the gathering up of the affections out of mere natural and external objects, and directing them towards spiritual and eternal ones, agreeably to which sense of the word girding, it is said, concerning the Great Redeemer, Righteousness [or Justice], shall be the girdle of His loins, and faithfulness the girdle of His reins (Isa 11:5), denoting that His affections, which are here figured by loins, were directed towards an eternal object, or the Supreme Good in Himself; and that His thoughts, which are here figured by His Reins, were held in the same direction, thus pointing to the Supreme Truth. Agreeably to the same language of figure and correspondence, by lights are to be understood the thoughts of man, or the things of his intellect; and by these lights burning is further to be understood, that the thoughts, or intellectual things, belonging to man, shall always be kept under the influence of heaven-born love and charity, which is the sacred fire from which all light, properly so called, proceeds, and by which alone it is kept alive. By Men that wait for the Lord are spiritually to be understood truths derived from good, and directed towards good; for by men are spiritually meant truths; and by the Lord is denoted the Supreme Good. To be like, then, to men that wait for the Lord, denotes conformity to truths derived from, and directed to, good, for one thing becomes like another, when it becomes conformable to it. The wedding denotes the marriage of Divine good and Divine truth, or of the divinity and humanity in the person of the Great Redeemer, whose High and Holy name is Jesus Christ; and the Lord returning from this wedding further denotes, the operation of the Great Redeemer from His Divine Humanity, when the union of the two natures, the divine and human, was accomplished in His glorified Person. His coming and knocking, therefore, means His approach and access to man in the power of His Holy Spirit, or of His Divine Good and Divine Truth; coming having relation to the operation of His Divine Good, and knocking to the operation of His Divine Truth, whilst both expressions united denote His continual presence with man, to the intent that He may replenish him with the fullness of divine love and wisdom, agreeably to the declaration in an another place, where He says of Himself, Behold, I stand at the door and knock; if any man hear my voice, and open the door, I will come to him and dine with him, and he with Me (Rev 3:20). For, in these words, standing at the door and knocking, means the presence and operation of the Divine Good and Divine Truth continually with man; and man’s hearing His voice, and opening the door, denotes the reception of that divine good and truth by man in his will and understanding; and, lastly, coming to and supping with him, and he with Me, describes the mutual conjunction of the Lord with man, and of man with the Lord, by virtue of the communication and reception of the divine operation. Opening evidently means the opening of the door of the mind, at which the Lord knocks, that so admission may be given to Him; in other words, that He may be received in His own divine love and wisdom. For such is the case with every human mind, that it is capable of admitting into itself the blessed influences of heaven and its God, and that it really does admit those influences, whenever it is careful to open the door, that is to say, to remove the impediments which prevent their admission. To open to Him immediately, therefore, evidently means, such a habit of removing the above impediments, arising chiefly from self-love and the love of the world, that the Lord, when He comes, may find a quick and ready entrance, and thus may communicate His divine blessings without either difficulty or delay. It follows, Blessed are those servants, whom the Lord, when He comes, shall find so watching. The term blessed, whenever it occurs in the Word of God, is always applied to denote conjunction of life with the Most High, thus to denote the reception of His most holy love and wisdom, since nothing but such reception, and the conjunction to which it leads, can make a man blessed. Blessedness, therefore, implies the possession of an eternal good, and is thus distinguished from that false and short-lived happiness, which is sometimes mistaken for blessedness, and which consists merely in the possession of temporal and worldly goods. The principles which constitute blessedness are the Divine love and the Divine wisdom, and, therefore, man is blessed according to his reception of those principles. This is what Jesus Christ here declares, when He says, Blessed are those servants whom the Lord, when He comes, shall find so watching; for by the Lord coming, as was above observed, is meant His continual presence and operation with man by His Holy Spirit of love and wisdom; and by watching is denoted preparation on the part of man to receive the heavenly influence, watching being opposed to sleeping, and being thus expressive of a spiritual state of mind, as sleeping is expressive of a natural state. Man, accordingly, is said to watch when he lives under the influence of heavenly truth; as, on the other hand, he is said to sleep, when he is under the influence of mere natural truth. It is said, so watching, because the term so has relation to what goes before concerning opening immediately, and thus the two words, so watching, have respect to the joint preparation of the human will and understanding to receive divine influence. It is afterwards written concerning those blessed servants. Verily I say to you, that He shall gird Himself, and make them sit down to eat, and will come forth and serve them. The term verily is here applied to denote both the certainty and importance of what immediately follows concerning the blessedness of the servants here spoken of, which blessedness is described in the words, He shall gird Himself, and make them sit down to eat, and come forth to serve them. By He is here to be understood the Lord, who was spoken of in the words immediately preceding; and by the Lord girding Himself is further to be understood His intense love, by which He is desirous to enter into conjunction with those who are prepared to receive Him; and by making them to sit down to eat is further denoted, the influx of the divine good of His love into their wills, for by sitting down to eat is signified the reception of that good; and, lastly, by coming forth to serve them, is signified the influx of the divine truth of His wisdom into their understandings; for by coming forth, when predicated of the Lord, is signified His operation of His divine truth; and by serving is denoted the office or use of that truth. Thus the three expressions combined denote the fullness of the divine influx, by virtue of which all recipient subjects are replenished with all the goods and truths of the divine love and wisdom of the Most High. By the two watches are, denoted states of spiritual or regenerate life; by the second watch a state in which good and truth are fully conjoined; and by the third watch, a state of the full reception of those heavenly principles; for by watches are meant divisions of time, and by times, according to the spiritual idea, are meant states of spiritual or regenerate life. Again, by finding them so, is meant the divine inspection, and the discovery thence resulting, that the above servants were watching; in other words, were prepared to receive divine influx. It, therefore, follows, Blessed are those servants, to denote that the preparation to receive divine influx is the certain qualification to receive it. When the blessed Jesus says, Know this, He evidently means to fix the attention of his hearers to a subject of great importance; for to know signifies to consider and to understand, and whatsoever the Blessed Jesus calls His hearers to consider and understand, must of necessity be a thing of importance. What this thing of importance is, appears from the words which follow; for by the good man of the house, here spoken of, is to be understood the ruling principle in the human mind; the term hours being expressive, according to the spiritual idea, of the interiors and exteriors of the human mind; whilst the term good man is equally expressive of the ruling principle which guides and governs them. In like manner, by knowing what hour the thief would come, is spiritually to be understood perception or discernment of those false persuasions in the human mind, which, being injected by the powers of darkness, would induce man to believe that his life is his own, independent of God, and thus tempt him to ascribe merit to himself, instead of ascribing it to the Divine Giver of all good. For every such persuasion is called a thief in the language of inspiration, because it robs God of His Glory, and appropriates that to the creature, which belongs properly and solely to the Creator. It is, accordingly, said of the owner of the house, that if he had known what hour the thief would come, he would have watched, and not have suffered his house to be broken into; because by knowing what hour the thief would come, is to be understood spiritual perception and discernment, that the great enemy of man is ever at hand injecting the above false persuasions, and that there is no effectual security against their poison but watchfulness, or a state of spiritual thought, by which is to be understood, thought influenced by the Eternal Truth, without which thought the exteriors and interiors of the mind must inevitably be overrun and desolated by false and infernal persuasions. This desolation is expressed in the parable by the house being broken into, or, as it is written in the original, dug through, because the term digging is applied to denote the operation of thought, whether it be grounded in good or evil. Then follow the admonitory words, Be you therefore ready also; for the Son of man comes at an hour when you think not. By being ready is to be understood preparation to receive divine influx, which preparation is the effect of watchfulness; and by the Son of man coming is further to be understood the Eternal Truth in its connection with its divine source, the Divine Humanity of Jesus Christ, which is said to come in two respects; first, when a new revelation in made for the establishment of a new church here on earth, in the place of an old one, in which it had been perverted, falsified, and destroyed; and, secondly, when it is imparted by influx to every individual man, for the purpose of making him a church; in other words, of reforming and regenerating him. It is said of this Son of man that He comes at an hour when you think not, to denote that the influx of the Eternal Truth with man is perpetual, thus in all states of life, even in those when man is least aware of, or disposed to believe in any such influx. It is written, further, Then Peter said to Him, Lord, speak you this parable to us, or even to all? And the Lord said, Who then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler over his household, to give them their portion of food in due season? Blessed is that servant, whom his Lord, when He comes, shall find so doing. By Peter is here to be understood the faith of the Church, or, what amounts to the same, the principle of intelligence in those who are of the Church, inquiring concerning the extent of obligation to obey the truth of revelation, and how far that obligation was intended to be confined to those to whom the revelation is first made, or to reach to future and remote generations. The Lord, accordingly, makes His reply by another question, addressed to the faith, or intelligence, of the Church, because He foresaw that, in the proper answer to His question, the faith, or intelligence, of the Church, would find a full and satisfactory answer to its own question. For when He asks, Who then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his Lord shall make ruler over his household, to give them their portion of food in due season? He was well aware that this question would lead to a reply the most edifying and instructive in the mind of every intelligent being, because every intelligent being must of necessity discover in the character of a faithful and wise steward a portrait of every excellence; and that, consequently, to consider this character attentively must have a tendency to conduct to the possession of that excellence. For a steward obviously means one who ministers; and the term is, therefore, here applied by the Blessed Jesus to denote the natural man, or mind, which ministers to the spiritual, and which is called faithful and wise when it stands and operates in conformity to the spiritual; faithful, when it is in conformity to spiritual truth; and wise, when in conformity to spiritual good. Inquiry is further made, in these words, Whom the Lord shall make ruler over His household, to give them their portion of food in due season, because when the natural mind becomes a faithful and wise steward, it becomes qualified to be invested by the Almighty with spiritual power and dominion, communicated through the spiritual mind, by virtue of which it rules over His household, to give them their portion of food in due season; in other words, it controls and regulates all the subordinate affections and thoughts, together with all the bodily senses and appetites, imparting to each its proper nourishment and vigour from the spiritual mind, thus from the God of that mind, according to the necessities and requirements of each. It is, therefore, added, Blessed is that servant, whom his Lord, when He comes, shall find so doing, to teach the important lesson, that when the natural mind ministers to the spiritual, and thus becomes a faithful and wise steward, it then partakes of the blessedness of the spiritual mind, being brought together with it into conjunction of life with heaven and its God; and it is further added, Of a truth I say to you, that He will make him ruler over all that He has, to teach the additional interesting lesson, that when the natural mind becomes, as above, conformable to the spiritual mind, it is then gifted by its Divine Lord with power over all things, because connecting itself with omnipotence in humility and obedience, it uses all the gifts of God to His glory, and the promotion of that universal happiness which He intends for all His creatures. It is next said, But if that servant say in his heart, My Lord delays his coming; and shall begin to beat the men-servants and maidservants, and to eat and drink, and to be drunken, the Lord of that servant will come in a day when he looks not for him, and at an hour when he is not aware, and will cut him to pieces, and will assign him his place with the unbelievers. As the preceding words describe the character and blessedness of the natural mind, when it becomes obedient to the spiritual, so these words describe the character and misery of the natural mind, when it becomes disobedient, by separating itself from spiritual control and government. For by that servant saying in his heart, My Lord delays his coming, is to be understood wilful carelessness, on the part of the natural mind, respecting the divine presence and influx; and by beginning to beat the men-servants and maidservants, is further to be. understood the perversion, in such case, of natural scientifics and their affections, by separating them from the light of truth; and by eating and drinking, and being drunken, is, lastly, denoted, the appropriation of what is evil and false, together with insanity derived from erroneous persuasions, in consequence of the above perversion. Such is the terrible character of the natural mind in its state of disobedience to the spiritual; and its misery is further described in the words which immediately follow. For by the Lord of that servant coming in a day when he looked not for him, and at an hour when he is not aware, is to be understood judgement unexpectedly exercised upon the above evils and falses of the natural mind; and by cutting him in sunder, and appointing him his portion with the unbelievers, is further to be understood the condemnation into which the natural mind casts itself, by separating itself from the blessed influences of all heavenly good and heavenly truth. Jesus Christ continues the application of the parable in these concluding words, And that servant, which knew his Lord’s will, and prepared not [himself], neither did according to his will, shall be beaten with many [blows]. But he that knew not, and did commit things worthy of blows, shall be beaten with few [blows]. For to whomsoever much, is given, of him shall be much required: and to whom men have committed much, of him they will ask the more. These words teach, in general, the important lesson, that it is better to be ignorant of the truth, than to possess the knowledge of it, if that knowledge be not attended with conformable life and practice. For by the servant which knew his Lord’s will, is figured and represented the natural mind enlightened by the knowledges of truth; and by that servant not preparing, neither doing according to His will, is further described the same mind inattentive alike to the requirements of truth, and acquirement of good; and by his being beaten with many [blows], is denoted the greater misery into which such a mind plunges itself, in consequence of its greater knowledge. Again, by him that knew not, and did commit things worthy of blows, being beaten with few, is figured and represented the natural mind in a state of ignorance, and in a state of transgression grounded in ignorance, which state is here described as less miserable than a state of transgression accompanied with knowledge. It is, accordingly, added, For to whomsoever much is given, of him shall be much required; and to whom men have committed much, of him they will ask the more; because by much being given is denoted the affection of truth, and by much being committed is denoted the truth itself; and, therefore, the important lesson inculcated in the above words is, that in proportion to the affection of truth with which every one is gifted, and to the truth itself, which is committed to his care, will be the degree of criminality, if he does not profit by what is given and committed to him. We learn, then, from this parable, that it is of the utmost importance for every one to set a guard over his affections and thoughts, that so his affections may always have respect to an eternal end, and that his thoughts may always be guided by the light of the Eternal Truth. We learn, further, that with this view man ought continually to be attentive to divine influx, or to the operation of the Incarnate God in his own mind, that so he may readily and willingly comply with all its saving purposes of reformation and regeneration. We learn, again, that the blessedness of man consists in thus submitting his natural mind to the government and guidance of the divine love and wisdom in his spiritual mind, because by so doing he conjoins himself with Jesus Christ, whilst Jesus Christ conjoins Himself with him, so that they act together in unity. We learn, lastly, that, by this reciprocal conjunction, the natural mind becomes invested with omnipotence, by virtue of which it exercises dominion over all its affections and thoughts, and likewise over all bodily appetites and the delights of sense; whereas, without such conjunction, the natural mind perverts all goodness and truth, and, at the same time, appropriates to itself all that is evil and false, until it plunges itself into the insanity of every erroneous persuasion, and, finally, into condemnation. Let us resolve, therefore, to profit by the above instruction, and through the divine grace and mercy to watch well over all the motions and tendencies of our affections and thoughts, looking continually to divine influx for government and guidance. Thus may we hope that our natural minds will never be separated from the divine love and wisdom, but, complying willingly and faithfully with those blessed principles, will attain, finally, to that blessed state of dominion of which it is written, Of a truth I say to you, that He will make him ruler over all that he has. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 71: 02.29. LUK_13:6-9 -- FIG TREE IN VINEYARD ======================================================================== Luk 13:6-9 -- Fig Tree in Vineyard He spoke also this parable: A certain man had a fig tree planted in his vineyard; and he came and sought fruit thereon, and found none. Then said he to the dresser of his vineyard, Behold, these three years I come seeking fruit on this fig tree, and find none: cut it down; why occupy it the ground? And he answering said to him, Lord, let it alone this year also, till I shall dig about it, and dung it: And if it bear fruit, well: and if not, then after that you shall cut it down. There is no mention made of man, in the original, but only of a certain one, and by this certain one is to be understood the Divine Proprietor of the spiritual vineyard-the Church, and of every fig tree in that vineyard, - which proprietor is no other than the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, or God in His Divine Humanity. In the Sacred Scriptures, both of the Old and New Testaments, it is customary to describe the principles which constitute the Church under the figure of various kinds of trees, particularly of the olive, the vine, and the fig tree; by the olive, denoting celestial good, or the good of love and charity; by the vine, spiritual good, or the good of faith and truth; and by the fig tree, natural good, or the good of obedience; which natural good is to be regarded as the result of celestial good and spiritual good, when these latter become operative, and manifest themselves in the natural principle. By the fig tree, then, planted in the vineyard, is to be understood the natural principle of man initiated into the truths of the Church, and, specifically, the Jewish church as to the natural principle. The expression he came, has relation to the Divine love; and sought has relation to the inquisition of the Divine wisdom. To seek fruit, therefore, on the fig tree, denotes inquiry of the Divine wisdom, grounded in the Divine love, concerning natural good in the men of the Church, specifically of the Jewish church; and by finding none is evidently to be understood that no such good was as yet produced. By saying to the dresser of his vineyard, is to be understood thought on the occasion from Divine truth, attended with perception from the Divine good, (which is here called the dresser of the vineyard), that there as no natural good as yet produced in the Church, during any period from its commencement to its end, which term is here expressed by three years; and by the command to cut it down, is further denoted the entire consummation of natural good, in consequence, of the above unfruitfulness. It is added, Why occupy it the ground? to teach, further, the significative principle that, when there is no good in the natural principle, then the natural principle is opposed to, and destructive of, the Church. The next words manifestly imply intercession on the part of the Divine love in favour of the barren fig tree, by which is to be understood the exercise of Divine forbearance, until the men of the Church be further tried as to fruitfulness in natural good. It is, therefore, said, Let it alone for this year, till I dig about it, and dung it, which words involve a further state of probation, both as to the understanding and the will; digging having relation to the purification of the understanding by truth, and dunging having relation to the purification of the will by good, leading man to reject and eject his natural evils, which, when so rejected and ejected, become like dung which renders the earth fruitful, agreeably to which idea it is written concerning such natural evils, Do to them as to the Midianites, as to Sisera, as to Jabin, at the brook of Kison, which perished at Endor; they became as dung for the earth (Psa 83:9-10). It is, therefore, added, in conclusion, And if it bear fruit [well] and if not, then after that you shall cut it down, to denote, that as fruitfulness is the end or design of a tree, and the reason of its existence, in like manner, the production of natural good is the end or design of the natural principle, and if this end or design be not accomplished, then the natural principle destroys itself. This parable teaches us in the first place, to distinguish between the natural principle and the spiritual principle of the Church, and to see that the former was figured by the fig tree, whilst the latter was figured by the vine, or vineyard. It teaches, further, that the natural principle was created to administer to the spiritual, and that when this administers aright, it brings forth its proper fruit of goodness, or good works, by virtue of its connection with the spiritual principle, and thus with the Divine love and wisdom which have rule in that principle. The parable teaches, in the third place, that in the Jewish church, in particular, the natural principle was never in due subordination to the spiritual, and thus never produced its proper fruit; the consequence of which was, that notwithstanding the divine patience and forbearance, and all the methods used by the Almighty to purify the natural will and natural understanding of the men of that Church, they continued rebellious to the end, never suffering the divine love and wisdom to govern and direct the lower affections and thoughts of the natural mind. Let us resolve, therefore, to take warning by this parable of divine reproof, and so to attend to the fruitfulness of the fig tree in our own vineyard, that our Heavenly Father may not be disappointed when He comes to gather its produce, but may rather find that his digging and dunging have not been in vain. Thus may we hope that our natural minds will always be kept in due subordination to our spiritual minds, and our spiritual minds to the divine mind, so that when the Lord comes and seeks fruit, He may find it, and we may never hear the terrible sentence, Cut it down; why occupy it the ground? Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 72: 02.30. LUK_14:7-12 -- MAN INVITED TO WEDDING ======================================================================== Luk 14:7-12 -- Man Invited to Wedding And he put forth a parable to those which were invited, when He marked how they chose out the chief rooms; saying to them, When you, are invited by any man to a wedding, sit not down in the highest room: lest a more honourable man than you be invited by him; and he that asked you and him come and say to you, Give this man place; and you begin with shame to take the lowest room. But when you are invited, go and sit down in the lowest room; that when he that asked you comes, he may say to you, Friend, go up higher: then shall you have worship in the presence of them that sit to eat with you. For whoever exalts himself shall be abased; and he that humbles himself shall be exalted. Then said he also to him that asked him, When you make a dinner or a supper, call not your friends, nor your brethren, neither your kinsmen, nor your rich neighbours: lest they also invite you again, and a compensation be made you. The invited, according to the sense of the letter, are all those invited to a natural feast, or wedding; but, according to the spiritual sense, are all those invited to a spiritual feast, or wedding; and since a spiritual feast, or wedding means conjunction of life and of love with Jesus Christ, and all are invited to such conjunction who receive the truths of God’s Holy Word into their understandings, therefore, all such are here denoted by the invited. Jesus Christ perpetually marks, or notes, the ruling disposition of all His children, and especially of those who, by receiving His Holy Word into their understandings, are invited to the marriage. He sees, therefore, how some are of an aspiring and proud temper, and how, consequently, they choose out the chief rooms; in other words, how they exalt themselves above others, imagining that they merit heaven more than others, and that their virtues have in them some superior excellence, which entitles them to some high and distinguished place in the favour of the Almighty. The counsel which Jesus Christ gives to all such is this: When you are invited by any man to a wedding, sit not down in the highest room, lest a more honourable man than you be invited by him. This counsel strikes at the root of all human pride and vanity, by teaching us that we ought not to exalt ourselves in our own fancied esteem above others, but that we should rather delight in exalting others above ourselves, by delighting in their excellencies as much as in our own, and by thus wishing for them as high a place in the favour and kingdom of God as we wish for ourselves. Thus Jesus Christ would lay the axe to the root of our self-love, and, cutting down that infernal tree, would plant in its place the Tree of Life, with all the other plants of Paradise, consisting in the love of Himself, in charity towards our neighbour, and in all the graces and virtues of humility, contentment, patience, forbearance, and well-doing, resulting from that love. But Jesus Christ adds, lest a more honourable man than you he invited by him. By a more honourable man than you, according to the natural or literal sense of the term, is meant one who is more distinguished by natural dignity, talent, and pre-eminence; but according to the spiritual idea, one who is more principled in the good of charity, thus, in respect of the Jews, it denotes the Gentiles, who, by virtue of the principle of good-will and charity, were accounted more honourable in the sight of Jesus Christ than the Jews, when yet these latter had the advantage over the former, as being in possession of the knowledges of truth derived from the Holy Word. Jesus Christ would teach us, therefore, on this occasion, that the principle of charity is, in all cases, more honourable than the principle of faith; or, in other words, that the principle of good is more honourable than that of truth; for by you are here to be understood those who are called, or invited, to the marriage, and the call, or invitation, to the heavenly marriage is always given by the knowledge of heavenly truth. Jesus Christ adds these further words of caution, And he that asked you and him come and say to you, Give this man place, and you begin with shame to take the lowest room. By the man here spoken of, is meant the more honourable man, by whom, according to the spiritual idea, is signified the principle of charity in relation to the principle of faith, or the principle of good in relation to that of truth. By giving this man place is, therefore, denoted, that the principle of faith, or truth, ought always to give place to the principle of charity or good; in other words, ought always to exalt the latter principles, so as to give them entire rule and pre-eminence. Jesus Christ, therefore, would teach us, by the above injunction, that the good of charity is the essential principle of His kingdom, and that faith, or truth, are only so far good as they conduct to the good of charity, and confirm it by giving it pre-eminence over themselves and over every other good. Give this man place is, therefore, an eternal law of salvation to all mankind, since salvation cannot possibly be attained until the good of charity is exalted above all the lower principles of what is called faith, or truth, or knowledge; whereas, whenever faith, and truth, and knowledge, submit themselves to the higher rule and government of charity, and thus to the highest rule and government of Jesus Christ, who dwells in charity as its essential life, in this case all the blessings of salvation are secured, because, in this case, man is admitted to the heavenly marriage, which consists in the conjunction of charity and faith in his purified bosom, and thus in his conjunction of life with the Living and Eternal God. The lowest room in the Kingdom of Heaven, or at the heavenly marriage, is that of those who act from principles of faith, or truth, alone, as the highest place belongs to those who act from principles of charity, or love and goodness, conjoined with faith, or truth. It is said, And you begin, with shame to take the lowest room. There are two kinds of shame; one originating in the opinions of men, which may be called natural shame; and the other originating in the opinion of God, which may be called spiritual shame. The shame here spoken of is of the latter description, consisting in a consciousness of having acted contrary to the divine opinion, or, what is the same thing, to the genuine truth of God’s Most Holy Word, which is the shame of all those who exalt knowledge above the life of knowledge, fancying themselves wiser and better than others, merely because they abound in high speculations, and have their understandings overcharged with doctrines, articles of faith, and religious notions, whilst their hearts and lives are under the influence of worldly and selfish love, and as far from evangelical purity as those who are totally destitute of all knowledge of the eternal truth. Jesus Christ continues His divine counsel in these words, When you are invited, go and sit down in the lowest room, that when he that asked you comes, he may say to you, Friend, go up higher. We have already seen what is meant by being invited, and sitting down in the lowest room. By him that asked you, according to the spiritual idea, is to be understood the Almighty Himself, whose name is Jesus Christ, and who bids, or invites, to the heavenly marriage, the whole human race, by the instrumentality of His Holy Word or Spirit enlightening their understandings; and by His coming is meant His approach to man, and further manifestation of Himself in the power of holy love and charity in the will, to make His eternal abode with man. For the presence of Jesus Christ with man is two-fold, in his understanding and in his will; but this presence is never full, thus Jesus Christ is never said fully to come to man until He gains possession of the will, or love, of man, as well as of his understanding and thought. The words, He may say to you, Friend, go up higher, denote an internal dictate in the mind, instructing man, that when charity is exalted above faith, or goodness above truth, or, what is the same thing, the things of the will above those of the understanding, then man is accepted of his Maker, and admitted into the true order of His heavenly life and kingdom; for by the words, he may say to you, is signified an internal dictate in the mind of him to whom they are addressed; and by the term friend is denoted acceptance with the Almighty; and by going up higher is further denoted, an elevation into the heavenly world, which elevation takes place with all those who become. the friends of God through the conjunction of charity and faith, or of goodness and truth; and since this conjunction is effected principally by keeping the commandments of God, therefore, Jesus Christ says to His disciples, You are my friends if you do whatsoever I command you. It is added, as a ground of encouragement on this occasion, Then shall you have worship in the presence of them that sit to eat with you. By those that sit to eat, when the heavenly marriage is treated of, as in the present instance, are to be understood all those in Heaven and on earth who appropriate to themselves the heavenly principles of charity and faith, or of good and truth, from Jesus Christ, and who thus have living conjunction with that Incarnate God, both in their wills, their understandings, and their lives; and by having worship in the presence of these, is signified acceptance with them, or such a friendly communication as subsists between members of the same family who have the same common Father, and are united with each other in the bonds of fraternal affection and tenderness. For such is the case with all those who are principled in real genuine charity, that they are the favourites of all in Heaven, inasmuch as they breathe the same spirit, eat the same bread, and rejoice in the acknowledgement that they derive life perpetually from the same Divine Source and Fountain. From the application of this parable, where it is said, Whosoever exalts himself shall be abased; and he that humbles himself shall be exalted, we learn that pride, and especially the pride of intellectual attainments, originating in the acquirement of knowledge separate from the life of knowledge, is in the most direct opposition to the love of God, and, consequently, most destructive of all spiritual or heavenly life. Such pride, therefore, must be abased, because, according to the spiritual idea, nothing is, or can be, exalted, but in proportion as knowledge submits itself to the life of knowledge; in other words, in proportion as faith bows down to the government of charity, and both to the government of Jesus Christ. We learn, further, that humility, and especially the humility of truth and knowledge, in their submission to the rule of goodness and purity, is a virtue most pleasing in the sight of God, and most beneficial to the eternal interests of its possessor, inasmuch as it is for ever joining in the heavenly song, Blessing, and honour, and glory, and power, be to Him that sits on the throne, and to the Lamb for ever and ever (Rev 5:13), and is thus perpetually introducing man to association with the ever-blessed in the Kingdom of Heaven. Lot us resolve, therefore, in compliance with the purport of this parable, to guard our souls, through the Divine Grace, against the infernal influence of pride, and especially of that intellectual pride which would lead us to suppose that we are wiser and better than others, for no other reason than because we have much knowledge, and can talk learnedly about the things of God. And let us resolve, further, to cherish in ourselves above all things, through Divine assistance, the grace of humility, especially of that humility which exalts charity above faith, and the life of knowledge above knowledge itself, because we may perceive clearly that such humility opens the gates of Heaven, renders man a friend of God, and introduces him to the societies of the blessed in the Kingdom of God. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 73: 02.31. LUK_14:28-35 -- BUILDING A TOWER ======================================================================== Luk 14:28-35 -- Building a Tower For which of you, intending to build a tower, sits not down first and counts the cost, whether he have sufficient to finish it? Lest it happen, after he has laid the foundation, and is not able to finish it, all that behold it begin to mock him, saying, This man began to build, and was not able to finish. Or what king, going to make war against another king, sits not down first, and consults whether he be able with ten thousand to meet him that comes against him with twenty thousand. Or else, while the other is yet a great way off, he sends a delegation, and desires conditions of peace. So likewise, any of you that forsakes not all that he has, he cannot be my disciple. Salt is good: but if the salt have lost his savour, with what shall it be seasoned? It is neither fit for the land, nor yet for the dunghill; but men cast it out. He that has ears to hear, let him hear. Under the figure of a natural tower, Jesus Christ here describes a spiritual tower, which, like the natural tower, answers the double purpose of observation and defence. For as the natural tower has the double use of enabling those who are in it to discover the approach of an enemy, and also to withstand him, in like manner the spiritual tower has also its double use, but with this difference, that it enables those who are in it to discover the approach of, and to withstand spiritual enemies. Jesus Christ applies the term tower, in another parable, according to this same spiritual signification, where, speaking of the householder who planted a vineyard and let it out to tenants, He mentions among other things, that he built in it a tower, by which is evidently meant a spiritual tower, because the vineyard there spoken of is figurative of the Church. By intending to build a spiritual tower is to be understood, that the spiritual builder has a serious purpose to secure himself against his spiritual enemies, and with this view, to note and observe their approach, together with all the arts and stratagems by which they would deceive and betray him. It is evident that this tower cannot be built of any earthly materials, such as are the thoughts, the counsels, and the imaginations of man, but it must be built of heavenly materials, such as are the truths, the precepts, the doctrines of God’s Most Holy Word, admitted into man’s understanding, and incorporated into his life, that is to say, into his love. For when man thus imbibes and cherishes the truths, the precepts, and the doctrines of the revealed Word of the Most High, he then acquires an elevation of thought, which enables him to discover the approach of his spiritual foes, together with their qualities, their characters, and their artifices; and at the same time, and by the same means, he attains the spiritual strength resulting from such elevation of thought, whereby he is further enabled to oppose his enemies when they approach. This elevation of thought, therefore, is the spiritual tower here spoken of. The reason why it is here said of the man intending to build a tower, that he sits down first., is that the sitting down, here spoken of, has respect to a state of rest, of peace, and tranquillity of mind, for sitting down is a position of the body, figurative of such rest, peace, and tranquillity, and is, accordingly, so applied in the Sacred Scriptures. Thus it is written in the first verse of the 1st Psalm, Blessed is the man that walks not in the counsel of the ungodly, nor stands in the way of sinners, nor sits in the seat of the scornful; from which words it is evident, that the three bodily acts of walking, standing, and sitting, are applied figuratively to denote similar corresponding acts of the mind, walking having respect to the thoughts and persuasions according to which man directs the course of his life; whilst standing has respect to man’s confirmation of such thoughts and persuasions in his understanding; and sitting has respect to the same confirmation in the man’s will, or love, as is the case when he takes rest and finds complacency in such thoughts and persuasions. Unless the term sitting had some such spiritual signification, and was so discerned in the Lord’s divine idea, it is impossible to assign any reason why, in the present instance, He should apply the term. It is added, that he counted the cost, whether he had sufficient to finish it. By counting the cost is here to be understood the taking an account of all the sacrifices necessary to be made, on the part of man, before he can attain conjunction of life with his Heavenly Father, and thus build in himself the high tower of everlasting protection and salvation. Those sacrifices, as it is afterwards stated, consist principally in a man forsaking all that he has, this being the full cost of building the above tower, that man should submit his own will and wisdom to the divine will and wisdom, man’s own will and wisdom being alone that spiritual property which God requires him to forsake, because it is the only property which, if not forsaken, or, what is the same thing, if not submitted, prevents his conjunction with the Supreme Good and Supreme Truth. It is necessary then, that with the whole force of his will, signified by sitting down, and with all the powers of his understanding, signified by counting, he should make an estimate of this cost, until he discovers, that by forsaking his own will and wisdom, he separates himself from everything most defiled, miserable, and insecure, and by submitting to the Divine Will and Wisdom, he conjoins himself with everything most holy, blessed, and permanent. The tower of divine protection is said to be finished when the truths of God’s Most Holy Word have taken possession of man’s will, or love, as well as of his understanding, or faith. For whilst truth is merely in the memory and understanding, it is not the tower, but only its foundation, nor can the tower be said to be finished, until it is built upon this foundation, in other words, until truth is elevated out of the memory and understanding, and incorporated into the life’s love by a dutiful obedience to all its heavenly precepts, and especially by rejecting, as sins against God, all those natural evils, which the truth points out as opposite to the Divine Love and Purity. The mockery of which Jesus Christ speaks, when He says, All that behold it mock him, was intended to express the extreme folly of the character which is here described, and of his conduct in storing up truth in his memory and understanding only, without applying it to the purification and regeneration of his heart and life. The Almighty Himself is accordingly described as laughing at, and having in derision, such character and conduct (see: Psa 2:4); not that we are to suppose that God really laughs at and derides any of His creatures, but that His creatures, by their thoughtlessness and inconsideration, expose themselves to the Divine censure, and are accounted, in the sight of God, both as irrational and ridiculous, especially when they are guilty of that most irrational and ridiculous of all conduct, the acquiring the science of truth, without any serious intention to practise and incorporate it into their lives. Jesus Christ, in this parable, under the figure of a tower, intimates the expediency and necessity imposed on every one, to build in himself the spiritual tower of divine, observation and protection, He intimates, at the same time, that this lower cannot be built until the cost of building it be seriously and deliberately calculated, which cost consists in man’s submitting his own will and wisdom to the Divine. Jesus Christ would instruct us further, that if this cost be not well counted, the building of the tower may, indeed, be begun, but cannot be finished; because the building of the tower is begun by the admission of truth into the memory and understanding, but it is not finished until the truth so admitted be elevated into the higher region of the will, or love, and it cannot be so elevated until man submits himself entirely, and without reserve, to the government and guidance of the Divine Love and Wisdom. Lastly, Jesus Christ would teach us, in this parable, that there is no instance of irrationality more glaring, and more deserving of censure, than this, to store up the knowledge of heavenly things in the understanding without suffering that knowledge to influence the affections and the life, by conjoining it with holy love and charity, this being the insanity pointed at in the concluding words of the parable, where it is said, This man began to build, and was not able to finish. Jesus Christ annexes to this parable another, concerning a king going to make war against another king. The connection between the two parables is discerned when we look beyond the letter. The first relates to a state of spiritual protection, or of security and rest from spiritual foes; but the second relates to a state of spiritual combat, which is necessary to conduct to such rest and security. Mention is there made of a king going to make war against another king, and by these two kings are figuratively described the principles of truth and error, namely, of truth from God by His Holy Word, and of error from the powers of darkness, by the fallacies and perverse reasonings which they inject into the mind in opposition to the Divine Truth. God, therefore, as being the Supreme Truth, and possessing thereby dominion over all things both in Heaven and the Church, is frequently called, in the Sacred Scripture, a King, and sometimes King of Kings, whilst His adversary, as being the great liar, and father of lies, and possessing thereby dominion in his own infernal regions, is likewise called a king (See: Rev 9:11). Now, all spiritual combat, it is well known, consists in this conflict in the human mind, between the heavenly powers of truth, and the infernal powers of error, and every man’s salvation, or destruction, depends on the issue of this conflict. Jesus Christ, accordingly, teaches in this parable, how this combat may be waged to the greatest advantage, and, moreover, that everyone who would engage successfully in this combat, must sit down first and consult, whether he be able with ten thousand to meet him that comes against him with twenty thousand. By sitting down, as has already been shown in the explanation of the former parable, is to be understood a state in which the will, or love, begins to be affected by the truths stored up in the memory, or understanding. Thus it denotes a serious purpose and intention respecting the warfare which is here treated of, and is designed to instruct us, that we can never fight successfully against our spiritual foes, the powers of darkness, without such a serious purpose and intention. The term consulting relates more to the understanding, or judgement, as sitting down relates more to the will, or love, and therefore the two expressions, in their conjoint meaning, were intended to teach us the important lesson, that we can never fight to advantage against our spiritual foes, only so far as both our wills and understandings, our affections and judgement, are exercised on the occasion, more especially in making the estimate of the powers which are for us, and of those which are against us; in other words, of the power of truth in its connection with the Lord and His holy angels, and of the power of error in its connection with the devil and his angels. These powers are differently estimated in the parable, for the powers of truth are said to be ten thousand, whilst the powers of error, which are contrary to the truth, are called twenty thousand. To account for this disparity in numbers, and discover why the heavenly powers, which defend man, should be rated only at ten thousand, when the infernal powers, which destroy man, are rated at twenty thousand, or twice the number of the former, we must reflect that this is spoken according to appearance, since to the natural man it always appears that the powers of evil are stronger than the powers of good, when in reality the case is quite reversed, because, in reality, evil has no power when opposed to good, and good has all power when opposed to evil. The case, therefore, is, that so long as man himself is in evil and its love, so long he gives power to evil, and evil in such case, appears powerful; but no sooner does he set himself to oppose evil, from a real hatred of its abomination and defilements, and from a real love to the Supreme Good, than evil loses, by degrees, its power, and good obtaining the ascendancy, increases, by degrees, its power, until at length it becomes all-powerful, and destroys the power of evil. This, therefore, is the reason why man, in this parable, is exhorted to sit down and consult concerning the strength and ability of the above power, since it is by deliberate wisdom alone, and a life in agreement with it, that man is enabled to make the right estimate of the omnipotence of his heavenly friends, and of the impotence of his infernal foes. The consequences of the want of consultation are described in these words, that while the other is yet a great way off, he sends a delegation, and desires conditions of peace. By the other being yet a great way off, is to be understood, that the powers of evil and error have not yet gained a full possession of the man’s will, or love, for both good and evil are said to be at a distance from man, in proportion as they do not enter into and gain a place in his affections. Whereas in the degree that they gain such a place, in the same degree they are said to be near. For space is not predicable of spirit, since spirit is no subject of the measurement of space, and, therefore, in regard to spirit, all distance is estimated by affection, those things being said to be near in which the affection is interested, and to be a great way oft when the affection is not interested. Sending a delegation has relation to the man’s thought, and desiring conditions of peace has relation to the man’s affection; for thought, whether good or evil, is as a kind of ambassador to the kingdom of good or of evil, according to its determination; whilst affection, which is always one with thought, yet distinct from it, is desirous of confirming the terms which thought proposes. In this case, therefore, the two expressions of sending a delegation, and desiring conditions of peace, denote the conjoint result of the man’s thought and affection, in making a compromise with his spiritual foes, the powers of darkness, which compromise is signified by desiring conditions of peace; in other words, by desiring not to enter into combat against evil and error, but rather to befriend and seek alliance with those infernal powers. The peace, here spoken of, does not mean real peace, because it is impossible that such peace can exist until man vigorously opposes in himself, and successfully conquers, his own natural evils, which hold him in confederacy with the powers of darkness; but it means apparent peace, or that false and deceitful rest with which some people remain satisfied, without ever considering that they are in the hands of a merciless tyrant, and that, in such case, whatsoever temporal peace and composure they may enjoy, yet in the end, they will certainly be exposed to all the disquietude and torment which must ever arise from unmortified lusts. We learn, from this parable, that before we can hope to become regenerate, and to secure thereby a crown of eternal glory, we must pass through a course of spiritual warfare, which is here signified by one king going to make war with another king. We learn, further, that our success in this spiritual warfare will depend upon our sitting down and consulting respecting the powers which are for us, and those which are against us; in other words, it will depend on the estimate which we make of the Divine Omnipotence, and of the comparative non-ability of those who oppose it. And since we cannot be qualified to make this estimate, only so far as we submit our own will and wisdom to the Divine, which is meant by forsaking all that we have, therefore, this entire submission is also taught us in this parable. Lastly, we learn that if we never enter into such a state of submission, and thus never sit down and consult the comparative powers of our heavenly friends and of our infernal foes, we shall then become quiet slaves and base dependents in the hands of the latter, never exerting the powers which God has given us to regain heavenly liberty, thus never entering into any combat against any evil of our corrupt nature, but hugging our chains, and calling it peace, when, at the same time, we are under the tyrannical rod and restless dominion of all the powers of darkness. To the above parables Jesus Christ annexes a third, concerning salt, in these remarkable words, Salt is good; but if the salt have lost its savour, with what shall it be seasoned? It is neither fit for the land, nor yet for the dunghill, but men cast it out. He that has ears to hear, let him hear. Salt, when mentioned in the Sacred Scriptures, has two significations, a good one, and a bad one, as is common also with almost every other term, and in its good signification it is applied to denote the genuine affection of truth, as in 2Ki 2:20-22, where the prophet Elisha is spoken of as healing the water which was bad, by casting salt into it, denoting that truth, separate from genuine affection, is not properly truth, but something perverted and defiled, and that it only recovers its proper quality by being united with a genuine affection: and in its bad signification it is applied to denote truth without affection, as in Gen 19:26; Deu 29:23; Jdg 9:45; Eze 47:11; Zep 2:9. Salt having lost its savour, denotes the affection of truth not genuine, for truth may be received by man under the influence of various affections. Thus, when man receives truth and delights in it for its own sake because it is truth, and leads to conjunction with the Supreme Good, he is then said to receive it with a genuine affection; but if he receives truth and delights in it, because it may be instrumental in raising his reputation in the world, or in advancing his temporal interests, he is then said to receive it with an affection not genuine, thus with an affection defiled and perverted, in which case the salt is said to have lost its savour. When, therefore, Jesus Christ said of this salt which has lost its savour, Wherewith shall it be seasoned? He meant to teach, by this significant question, the great difficulty of recovering the genuine affection of truth, when it has been once perverted, and thus He would lead us to be continually upon our guard as to the quality of the affection by which we admit the truth, and to take especial heed that our affection be genuine; in other words, that we love the truth for its own sake, and not for the sake of worldly distinction and temporal advantages. When Jesus Christ further said of the salt which has lost its savour, that it was neither fit for the land, nor yet for the dunghill, but men cast it out, He meant to instruct us that truth which does not point to God and lead to the practice of what is good, conduces to no use whatever, either good or evil, for by being unfit for the land is denoted, that it conduces to no good use, such as relates to the benefit of Heaven or of the Church, both which are signified by land. By being unfit for the dunghill is denoted, that it conduces to no evil use, such as relates to the infernal kingdom, for by the dunghill is signified that kingdom; and, lastly, by men casting it out, is denoted that it is no constituent principle of man, in other words, that it makes no part of the human constitution properly considered. Jesus Christ adds, as a conclusion to the three foregoing parables, He that has ears to hear, let him hear; thus calling the attention of His disciples, in a particular manner, to the instruction contained in the three parables to which they are annexed as a conclusion. For by him who has ears to hear is meant the true disciple who receives truth with its proper affection, that is to say, who loves it and delights in it, because it is truth, and because it conducts to the Supreme Good; and by the words, let him hear, is intended to be expressed the importance of what precedes, namely, concerning the building a tower, one king going to war against another king, and salt. Jeans Christ, therefore, meant to instruct us further, by the above words, that nothing is of more importance to our everlasting interests than to attend to the building of a spiritual tower of observation and protection; also to the spiritual warfare which every Christian must undergo before he can be suitable to enter into the Kingdom of Heaven; also to the affection with which we receive the truth, taking good heed that it be a genuine affection, or the love of truth for its own sake, and not a spurious affection, or the love of truth for the sake of worldly gain, honour, or reputation. Lastly, Jesus Christ meant to teach us the absolute necessity of submitting our own will and wisdom to the Divine, or of forsaking all that we have, since without such submission it is impossible we should either build the spiritual tower, or fight successfully against, our spiritual foes, or receive the truth with a genuine affection. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 74: 02.32. LUK_15:3-7 -- LOST SHEEP ======================================================================== Luk 15:3-7 -- Lost Sheep And He spoke this parable to them, saying, What man of you, having an hundred sheep, if he lose one of them, does not leave the ninety and nine in the wilderness, and go after that which is lost, until he find it? And when he has found it, he lays it on his shoulders, rejoicing. And when he comes home, he calls together his friends and neighbours, saying to them, Rejoice with me; for I have found my sheep which was lost. I say to you, that likewise joy shall be in heaven over one sinner that repents, more than over ninety and nine just persons, who need no repentance. By man is here to be understood the Church, as to the understanding of truth; as in the following parable concerning the lost piece of silver, by woman is to be understood the Church as to the affection of truth. These two parables, therefore, are in connection with each other; the first relating to the good of one who repents, signified by the lost sheep; and the second relating to the truth belonging to him who repents, signified by the lost piece of silver. The obvious tendency, therefore, of the two parables united, is to show that both good and truth, when lost and restored again, are rendered dearer and more precious than if they had never been lost. Sheep, in the Sacred Scriptures, denote such as are principled in heavenly good, agreeably to which idea Jesus Christ calls His disciples sheep(John 10:27), and says to Peter, feed my sheep (John 21:16-17). By sheep, therefore, are to be understood goods in the abstract, and by a hundred sheep, the complex or aggregate of such goods. If the sheep are considered in regard to persons, then by losing one of them is to be understood the falling away from good in a Church in general, or in a member of a Church in particular. But if by sheep are to be understood goods in the abstract, then by losing one of them is to be understood deficiency of any particular good. The wilderness, according to a spiritual idea, signifies what has as yet little of life, or what is altogether uncultivated. It denotes also an obscure principle of faith and love, and likewise a state of spiritual temptation. By leaving, therefore, the ninety and nine in the wilderness, is to be understood, that in consequence of a falling away from good, or of the deficiency of good, signified by the sheep which was lost, the other goods in connection with it were brought into distress and trial, and thus into a diminution of life and power, such being the connection between the various orders and genera of goods, that if one perish or be lost, all the rest suffer injury, and experience a deprivation in some measure of their life. By that which is lost, it has been already seen, is meant the good belonging to the man who repents; and by going after this good is to be understood, the endeavour to recall it to its original; in other words, to bring it back to conjunction with the Supreme Good, which is God. For the case with the lost sheep, or the good belonging to the man who repents, is this, that it becomes what is here called a lost sheep, by declining from the Supreme Good, and imagining itself to be a good in a state of separation from the Divine Good. To go after this lost sheep, therefore, is to recall the good signified thereby to re-conjunction with its Divine Original; and to find it, is to restore it to that original. But it is said in the parable, that when he has found it, he lays it on his shoulders, rejoicing. By the shoulders, whenever the expression occurs in the Sacred Scriptures, is always understood the highest degree of power and energy; and, therefore, by laying the lost sheep on his shoulders, is to be understood, in reference to the good which is here signified by the sheep, the calling it to its original with all his might and energy. The term rejoicing is here applied to denote the joy communicated on the occasion, by the restoration, to its Divine Original, of a good which had been separated from that original, this being the joy, as we are afterwards informed, which the angels themselves experience, and which is declared to be a greater joy than that which results from the possession of a good which has never thus declined from conjunction with the Supreme Good. It is further said, that when he comes home, he calls together his friends and neighbours, saying to them, Rejoice with me, for I have found my sheep which was lost. By the man, here spoken of, as was observed above, is meant the Church, as to the understanding of truth, and the understanding of truth is said to come home, when it enters into conjunction with the good from which it is derived, and towards which it pants. For all truth is derived from good, and is always seeking conjunction with its parent. Whilst, therefore, it is in a state of separation from its parent, it is said to be abroad, and is called, in Holy Scripture, a wanderer, or vagabond, but when it returns to conjunction with its parent good, it is then said to come. Thus Cain, when he had slain his brother Abel, and thereby extinguished charity in his own mind, was willed a fugitive and vagabond in the earth (Gen 4:14). And thus it is said of the children of Ephraim, when they separated knowledge from the life of knowledge, which is heavenly love and charity, that they should be wanderers among the nations (Hos 9:17). Friends and neighbours, according to the literal or natural meaning of the terms, mean persons so related, but according to the spiritual idea they mean principles, and those who are related and connected according to such principles. Thus by the friends and neighbours, here spoken of, are to be understood all heavenly principles of understanding and of life, and they who are connected by those principles. And since all heavenly principles of understanding and of life have relation to love and wisdom, or, what is the same thing, to goodness and truth, or, what is still the same thing, to charity and faith; therefore these principles are what are here respectively signified by friends and neighbours. Thus these two terms involve in them all the angelic host, and also all that are good and wise here upon earth; for these being principled in heavenly love and wisdom, goodness and truth, charity and faith, are properly the friends and neighbours of all those who stand in the character of the man here described in the parable, who had recovered his lost sheep. By calling together these friends and neighbours is, therefore, signified association and conjunction with the angelic host, and with all the wise and good here upon earth; and by saying to them, Rejoice with me, for I have found my sheep which was lost, is meant a dictate from the understanding of truth in the Church, that all heavenly principles of love and of wisdom, or of charity and of faith, ought to unite in the affecting sentiment that the good of repentance, or a good restored after it had been lost, is a greater good, and, consequently, an object of greater joy than the original good which has never gone astray. Accordingly, it follows, that joy shall be in heaven over one sinner that repents, more than over ninety and nine just persons which need no repentance; where by joy in heaven is to be understood, joy amongst angelic principles; and by over one sinner that repents more than over ninety and nine just persons that need no repentance, is to be understood, on account of a good lost and recovered, more than over the good which has never departed from its original rectitude. From this parable we learn, in the first place, to adore that divine mercy, which is ever waiting and labouring to call sinners to repentance, and which is disposed to receive the wandering sheep back again into its bosom. We learn, therefore, never to despair of the tenderness of that mercy, whenever we are willing in sincerity to forsake our sins, and to take refuge in the arms of our God and Saviour. And, lastly, we learn, to our unspeakable consolation, that whenever we are sincere in doing the work of repentance and conversion to our heavenly Father, our sins will not only be remembered no more, but they will also be made to administer to our greater happiness in the heavenly world, by rendering us more sensible of the compassion, tenderness, and love of our heavenly Father, than we could otherwise have been. Let us resolve, therefore, now on, in compliance with the above lessons, to hasten our repentance and conversion without delay, not abusing the mercy of God by continuing in sin, but rather using it as an encouragement to repentance whilst we see it disposed, not only to blot out our transgressions, but also to make them subservient to the promotion of our greater happiness, whenever we truly hate and forsake them from a real principle of love towards God and our neighbour. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 75: 02.33. LUK_15:8-10 -- LOST PIECE OF SILVER ======================================================================== Luk 15:8-10 -- Lost Piece of Silver Or what woman having ten pieces of silver, if she lose one piece does not light a candle, and sweep the house, and seek diligently till she find it? And when she has found it, she calls her friends and her neighbours together, saying, Rejoice with me; for I have found the piece which I had lost. Likewise, I say to you, there is joy in the presence of the angels of God over one sinner that repents. The woman here mentioned, as was observed in the explanation of the foregoing parable, denotes the Church, as to the affection of truth, agreeably to which idea the Church is frequently, in the Sacred Scriptures, compared to a virgin, and called a virgin, as the Virgin of Zion, and the Virgin of Jerusalem (Lam 1:15, Lam 2:13; Amo 5:2), and also the Lamb’s Bride and Wife; and by her having ten pieces of silver, is to be understood, her being in possession of all heavenly truths necessary for her purification and conjunction with her heavenly Bridegroom and Husband. It may be proved from the Sacred Scriptures, that by ten pieces of silver are meant all heavenly truths; and this, not only from the general consideration that the knowledge of holy truth is frequently, in the Sacred Scriptures, compared to money, and called money, as talents and pounds (Mat 25:14-32; Luk 19:12-28), but also from the particular consideration that it is frequently compared with and called silver, from which money is coined. Thus it is written in the prophet Isaiah, Your silver is become dross (Isa 1:22), where it is evident that the prophet is speaking not of the metal called silver, but of the knowledge of heavenly truth signified by that metal. So, again, for iron I will bring silver (60:17), where it is again evident, that by silver is to be understood the purer dispensation of holy truth which was given at the manifestation of God in the flesh, for the prophet is here speaking of the blessings to be imparted to mankind by that manifestation. Again, Israel, they are even as the, dross of silver (Eze 20:18), by which words is manifestly described the perversion of truth by the Jewish nation, in consequence of which they had lost, all knowledge of genuine or spiritual truth, which is here called silver, and retained only natural or literal truth, which is here called dross. So, again, He shall sit as a refiner and purifier of silver (Mal 3:3), speaking of the Lord’s first advent in the flesh, and denoting the purification of the understandings of His people from all false and erroneous persuasions, by the manifestation of a pure order of spiritual and genuine truth. Since by ten pieces of silver are to be understood all the knowledges of heavenly truth which constitute the Church, by losing one piece is evidently meant the loss of one of these knowledges, in consequence of which the state of the Church was become less perfect, pure, and stable, than it otherwise would have been. For the perfection, purity, and stability of the Church will always depend on the integrity of truth; in other words, on the several orders, genera, and species of truth being preserved inviolable and entire. By a candle is to be understood the light of heavenly truth, derived from the Word of God, and enlightening the understanding of man. For in all truth there is light, but the light varies according to the order of truth from which it is derived. Thus, as in the natural world, there are different degrees of light, namely, the light of the sun, the light of the moon, the light of the stars, and the light of a candle, so also in the spiritual world there are different degrees of spiritual light answering to the same, and being the effect of the reception of different orders and degrees of truth. By the candle, therefore, here spoken of, is to be understood the light of heavenly truth of the lowest order, such as is that which is derived from the literal sense of the word. That the term candle has a spiritual signification is proved in the first place, from the book of Job, where mention is made of the candle of the wicked being put out (Job 21:17), by which is to be understood, that the wicked extinguish in themselves the light of heavenly truth by their evil loves. Again, it is written, When His candle shined upon my head (Job 24:3), by which is to be understood the wisdom which Job received from God. To the same purpose it is written in the book of Psalms, You will light my candle (Psa 18:28) denoting also the illumination of wisdom from the Most High. Again, it is written in the book of Proverbs, The spirit of man is the candle of the Lord (Pro 20:27), where it is plain the word candle is applied to express a spiritual idea. It is said that the woman not only lighted a candle, but swept the house. Sweeping the home is to be understood, according to its spiritual meaning, in like manner as lighting a candle; nor can there be any difficulty in discovering what that meaning is, if it be considered what is to be understood by a house, according to a spiritual idea. For, in agreement with such idea, a house signifies the will-principle of man, because in that principle the love of man dwells, which is the real man; in that principle, too, if the love be purified, the Lord Himself dwells, and makes His everlasting abode. Accordingly, the Church, as consisting of purified human minds, or wills, is called in the Sacred Scriptures, the house of God, or of Jehovah. The word house is applied according to a spiritual idea, in the Sacred Scriptures, wherever mention is made of the, house of Jehovah, of the house of Judah, of the house of Israel, etc.; for by the house of Jehovah it must of necessity be supposed that something spiritual is intended to be expressed, since it is impossible to conceive that Jehovah can dwell in any material building, therefore it is written, The Most High dwells not in temples made with hands (Acts 7:48); in like manner, by the house of Judah, and the house of Israel, is not to be understood any house of wood or stone in which those nations dwelt, but the spiritual principles of love and wisdom which formed their lives. Jesus Christ also applies the term house according to a spiritual idea, when he speaks of one who both hears and does His word, and compares him to a wise man who built his house upon a rock, since by a house upon a rock is to be understood the good of heavenly love and charity, grounded in the eternal truth; as by a house built on the sand, afterwards spoken of, is to be understood the will-principle of man not grounded in the eternal truth, but in false and erroneous persuasions, which have no coherence or consistency. According to the above spiritual signification of house, as denoting the will and its love, by sweeping the house is meant the purification of the will from the filthy and unclean loves, such as are those of worldly gain and glory, and also corporeal pleasures, when they are regarded as the ruling ends of life. For the defilement of the will consists entirely in the separation of its loves from the love of God and neighbourly love, and, therefore, the purification of the will consists in regarding the love of God and neighbourly love as the supreme ends of life, and in bringing all other loves into submission to their heavenly influence, whereby other loves also become clean, and the house is thus entirely swept. There are other passages in Holy Scripture which speak of sweeping according to the above spiritual idea. It is written in the prophet Isaiah, "The voice of one crying in the wilderness, sweep you [prepare] the way of Jehovah (Isa 40:3); and, again, "Make level, make level, sweep [prepare] the way, remove the stumbling-block from the way of my people" (Isa 57:14). Again, in Malachi, "Behold, I send my messenger, and he shall sweep [prepare] the way before me" (Mal 3:1). In which passages, to sweep the way denotes to make themselves ready, and to bring their wills into obedience to the eternal truth. Mention is made further, of seeking diligently till she find it. The term seeking, when used in the Sacred Scriptures, has relation to the understanding in its search after heavenly truth, according to which sense it is said, Seek you first the kingdom of God and His righteousness (Mat 6:33); and, again, Seek and you shall find (Mat 7:7). But the term, diligently, has relation more to the will, or love, because men are always diligent in the search of what they most love, and in proportion to the degree of their love. The two terms, therefore, when united, denote the conjoint application both of the understanding and the will in their exploration of the eternal truth, since the eternal truth can never be found but by the conjoined energy of both those faculties. The additional expression, till she find it, denotes perseverance in the search of truth, and was intended to instruct us that the eternal truth can never be found without such perseverance. It was to instruct us, therefore, that the illumination of truth is not instantaneous, but gradual, and that we advance in such illumination in proportion to our sincerity in forming our lives according to the degree of knowledge which we have received. For, in regard to the illumination of truth, the case is this, that in its commencement it is at first faint and obscure, and becomes brighter and brighter in the degree in which it is exalted to rule and pre-eminence in the will and understanding. New truths are thus successively admitted and formed into the life, and in proportion as these are united with their proper loves, they give birth again to other generations of truth, and this in a continued series without end. None, therefore, can be said properly to find the truth, by retaining it only in their memories, or even viewing it by a clear light in their understandings, since the truth is never really found until it affects the will, or love, and is thence formed into the life by influencing man’s daily conduct and operation. We are taught by this parable, that the knowledge of the eternal truth is of the greatest importance to man, and that as this knowledge has been in a great degree lost by the general corruptions of human nature, therefore, it is every one’s duty, as well as his happiness, to endeavour to recover it again. With this view it is necessary, in the first place, to explore the pages of the Word of God, and to follow the guidance of the heavenly light therein made manifest, signified in the parable by lighting a candle. It is necessary, in the next place, to cease from doing evil, and for this purpose to explore the secret intentions and thoughts of the heart, to discover towards what end or object they are principally directed, which is signified, further, in the parable, by sweeping the house. And, lastly, it is necessary to exert all our powers of understanding and of will on the occasion, and this with an earnestness suited to the immense value of the pearl of great price which we seek after, and with a perseverance which will never cease until the truth be fully formed and fixed in our lives, as the greatest and most durable of all blessings, all which is further understood in the parable, by seeking diligently till she find it. Let us resolve, therefore, through the divine grace and mercy, now on to regard the acquisition of truth as a possession of infinitely higher estimation and importance than any other, and, accordingly, to seek it with all that never-ceasing application to the Word of God, continual purity of life, and diligent persevering exercise of our best faculties, which may be necessary to conduct us to the attainment of the prize, more to be desired than gold, yea than much fine gold; sweeter also than honey and the honey-comb (Psa 19:10). ======================================================================== CHAPTER 76: 02.34. LUK_15:11-32 -- PRODIGAL SON ======================================================================== Luk 15:11-32 -- Prodigal Son And He said, A certain man had two sons: And the younger of them said to his father, Father, give me the portion of goods that falls to me. And he divided to them his property. And not many days after the younger son gathered all together, and took his journey into a far country, and there wasted his sub-stance with riotous living. And when he had spent all, there arose a mighty famine in that land; and, he began to be in want. And he went and joined himself to a citizen of that country; and he sent him into his fields to feed swine. And he would rather have filled his belly with the husks that the swine did eat: and no man gave to him. And when he came to himself, he said, How many hired servants of my father’s have bread enough and to spare, and I perish with hunger! I will arise and go to my Father, and will say to him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and before you, and am no more worthy to be called your son: make me as one of your hired servants. And he arose, and came to his father. But when he was yet a great way off, his father saw him, and had compassion, and ran, and fell on his neck, and kissed him. And the son said to him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and in your sight, and am no more worthy to be called your son. But the father said to his servants Bring forth the best robe, and put it on him; and put a ring on his hand, and shoes on his feet: and bring here the fatted calf, and kill it; and let us eat, and be merry: for this my son was dead, and is alive again; he was lost, and is found. And they began to be merry. Now his elder son was in the field: and as he came and drew near to the home, he heard music and dancing. And he called one of the servants, and asked what these things meant. And he said to him, Your brother is come; and your father has killed the fatted calf, because he has received him safe and sound. And he was angry, and would not go in: therefore came his father out and entreated him. And he answering said to his father, Lo, these many years do I serve you, neither transgressed I at any time your commandment: and yet you never gave me a kid, that I might make merry with my friends: But as soon as this your son has come, who has devoured your living with harlots, you have killed for him the fatted calf. And he said to him, Son, you are ever with me, and all that I have is yours. It was necessary that we should make merry, and be glad: for this your brother was dead, and is alive again; and was lost, and is found. By a certain man is to be understood the Great Father of the universe; and by His two sons are here meant to be described two general classes of mankind; the first, including those who do not wander so far as others in the way of disobedience from their Father’s house; and the second, including those who wander, and afterwards return by repentance; or, in other words, the first, including those who stand more in original good; and the second, including those who attain to what may be called the good of repentance. It is said of the younger, that he said to his Father, Father, give me the portion of goods that falls to me. And he divided to them his property. The portion of goods here spoken of means a portion of spiritual goods, and not mere natural wealth or property; and all spiritual goods have relation principally to the things contained in the two faculties of the will and understanding. Thus the younger son, by desiring the portion of goods which fell to him, manifested an inclination to possess spiritual property independent of his Father, thus to separate from his Father the things of his will and of his understanding. By the Father’s living is meant His life, that is to say, His love and His wisdom, for all the life of God has relation to these two divine principles, which God, therefore, in His mercy, is disposed to communicate to all His children, and for the reception of which He has endowed all His children with the two faculties of will and understanding. It is said, that not many days after, the younger son gathered all together, and took his journey into a far country, and there wasted his substance with riotous living. By gathering all together are to be understood all the principles of his mind and life which he had derived from the two grand fountains of his life, the will and understanding; and by taking his journey into a far country, is further to be understood his departure from dependence on his Heavenly Father, to live to himself and the world, separate from divine guidance and governance. His substance means the faculty which he had received from his Heavenly Father of understanding truth, and thereby of procuring to himself an eternal good; and wasting this his substance, in riotous living, further implies, that he nearly destroyed in himself that faculty, by immersing it in mere selfish and earthly loves. It is next said, that when he had spent all, there arose a mighty famine in that land, and he began to be in want. Whenever man, in pursuit of what he calls happiness, or good, separates himself from dependence on his Heavenly Father, by immersing his affections in selfish and worldly love, which is here signified by spending all, he presently finds himself disappointed in the expectations he had formed, and that, instead of the happiness and good which he had looked for, he meets with nothing but distress and misery, which is here signified by a mighty famine in that land, and by beginning to be in want. For the term famine relates not only to a scarcity of bread, or nourishment for the body, but also to a scarcity of what is signified by bread, which is the food of the soul, and which food is nothing else but the divine truth and good of God’s Most Holy Word. It is accordingly written, that man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceeds out of the mouth of God (Deu 8:3; Mat 4:4). It is added, that he went and joined himself to a citizen of that country; and he sent him into his fields to feed swine. And he rather would have filled his belly with the husks which the swine did eat: and no man gave to him. By that country is here to be understood the region of selfish and worldly love, with all its follies and cravings; and by a citizen of that country is implied, every one who submits himself to the dominion of such love. Swine denote the lowest principles of selfish and sensual life; and by sending him, therefore, into the fields to feed swine, is to be understood, that he was instructed in no knowledges but what tended to cherish and strengthen such corrupt principles. His being prepared to fill his belly with the husks which the swine did eat, instructs us that the knowledges which he had imbibed in this filthy state of his love and affections, and by which he cherished and strengthened the sensual principles of his life, were not sufficient to satisfy his immortal spirit; and, therefore, it is added, that no man gave to him, to instruct us, further, that he was destitute of all light and comfort to be derived from the eternal wisdom, which is here signified by man, and was thus reduced to the level of a beast, as to all limits belonging to true understanding and rationality. And when he, came to himself, he said, How many hired servants of my father’s have bread enough, and to spare, and I perish with hunger! I will, arise and go to my father, and will say to him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and before you, and am no more worthy to be called your son: make me as one of your hired servants. By the prodigal coming to himself, we are to understand the return of his affections and thoughts to their proper centre, which had before been wandering amongst objects which had drawn them away from that centre. For this is the case with every thoughtless and unconverted man, that he wanders out of himself, by suffering his affections and thoughts to seek gratification in mere external objects. Whenever, therefore, persons of such a character give way to serious reflection and the admonitions of conscience, they are then said, to come, or return, to themselves, because their affections and thoughts, which properly constitute themselves, so come and return. This seriousness of penitent reflection thus expresses itself in the parable, How many hired servants of my father’s have bread enough and to spare, and I perish with hunger! For it is made sensible that the children of God alone abound in true peace and comfort, and that in the ways of sin nothing is to be found but a miserable desolation of all true joy. The true penitent, therefore, adds further, I will arise, by which is to be understood, an approach and exaltation to the Supreme Good of the Divine Love; and will say to him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and before you, and am no more worthy to be called your son: make me as one of your hired servants, implying still further acknowledgement and confession of his natural opposition to the Divine Love, attended with a humble sense of his own deep depravity and unworthiness on that account, together with an earnest desire to be admitted to the lowest place amongst those who are true servants of their Heavenly Father. The words, he arose, and came to his father, express that his will, or love, began to be affected by his understanding and thoughts, for the first conviction of sin is usually worked in the understanding and thoughts, by which man is led to aspire after the good of heavenly love and wisdom; but this good is not attained until the will, or love, begins to be affected, and to be made sensible of the blessedness of that good in itself. When this is the case, then, there is an accomplishment of that which had before been purposed and thought of, and the happy penitent not only says, I will arise and go to my father, but really does arise and comes to his Father. It is written, that when he was yet a great way off, his father saw him, and had compassion, and ran, and fell on his neck, and kissed him. By his being yet a great way off, is meant that his affections were not yet in a state to enter into conjunction with his Father; for distance, according to the spiritual idea, is determined in all cases by the state of the affections, insomuch that, where the affections of two persons are congenial and in agreement, the persons themselves are near each other; as, on the contrary, where the affections are not in agreement and harmony, the persons themselves are proportionably remote from each other. The case is similar with respect to God and man, so that their distance or remoteness from each other depends altogether on the state of man’s affections in respect to God. The other expressions in this verse denote the different effects and operations of the Divine Mercy, together with the various degrees of its approach to eternal conjunction with every penitent and returning sinner. The first effect is described by seeing him, because God is said to see, as he is said to know, only those whose affections are in some state of agreement with Him. The second effect is described by His having compassion, this being an emotion of the Divine Mercy towards all who begin to feel a want of mercy, and, under the influence of that want, are led to return, in the spirit of sincere penitence, to the bosom of their Heavenly Father. The third effect is described by running, because by running is signified the strong affection resulting from compassion, and, therefore every one, according to the spiritual idea, is said to run who is under the influence of a strong affection, whether it be good or evil. The fourth effect is described by falling on his neck, because the neck is that part of the body by which communication is effected between the head, or upper region of the body, and the trunk, or lower region. To fall on the neck, therefore, is a figurative way of speaking, to denote communication, and in the present case was intended to express the new communication opened between the Divine Mercy, on the one part, and the heart of a sincere penitent, on the other. The fifth effect is described by kissing him, because a kiss, as every one knows, is a token of conjunction by love, and, therefore, in the present instance, it denotes a further degree of the operation of the Divine Mercy, in conjoining itself by love with the true penitent, and by reciprocally conjoining the true penitent with itself. We have already seen what is meant by what is written in the next verse, where it is said, The son said to him, Father, I have sinned against heaven and in your sight, and am no more worthy to be called your son. In the two following verses we find, The father said to his servants, Bring forth the best robe and put it on him; and put a ring on his hand, and shoes on his feet; and bring here the fatted calf, and kill it; and Let us eat and be merry. The father’s saying to the servants expresses that he did not do immediately from himself, but mediately by others, the things which are afterwards described. For the subject now recorded concerning the returning penitent, is his instruction in those heavenly truths and doctrines which were to make him wise to salvation; and this instruction is not taught immediately by God, but mediately by His Word, and by the ministers of His Word, who are here, therefore, called servants. According to this view of the meaning of servants bringing forth the best robe and putting it on the returning penitent, expresses in the language of figure, the initiation of the prodigal into the saving knowledges of the eternal truth, which knowledges are as a garment, or robe, for the adorning or protecting of that celestial good of innocence and peace into which he was to be introduced. Putting a ring on his hand, and shoes on his feet, further describes the conjunction of heavenly good and truth, both in the internal and external man; the ring on the hand denoting this conjunction in the internal man, and the shoes oil the feet denoting the same in the external man. Thus both together are expressive of man’s regeneration, which is nothing else but man’s restoration to the order of heaven in every principle both of his inner and outer man, and thus his conjunction of life with God. By the fatted calf, is further intended to be figured the initiation of the prodigal into the good of celestial love and charity, which good is constantly described in the Word of God under the figure of a fatted calf. By eating and being merry is, lastly, meant to be expressed the heavenly consociation and joy to which the returning penitent never fails to be introduced, when he has put on the best robe, with a ring on his hand, and shoes on his feet, and when the fatted calf has been brought forth and killed. For by eating, according to a spiritual idea, is understood the appropriation of heavenly good, and thus consociation with the angelic heaven; and by being merry, or glad, according to the same idea, is to be understood the delight arising from such appropriation and consociation. The reason which is here assigned for thus eating and being merry, is given in the following verse, For this my son was dead, and is alive again, and was lost, and is found. By the son being dead is meant, being spiritually dead, that is to say, dead in trespasses and sins; for in the Word of God nothing is called death but alienation from the life of God, that is from the life of love and charity; and nothing is called life but conjunction with God, through a participation of His love. And by the son being lost, is meant his wandering in the ways of error, through ignorance of the eternal truth; for in the Word of God every one is said to be lost who does not follow the guidance of the eternal truth, and suffer himself to be led by its heavenly light to the mansions of eternal day. When, therefore, it is said, that the son was both dead and lost, it denotes that he was deprived both of the good of heavenly love and charity in his will, and also of the truth of heavenly wisdom and intelligence in his understanding. And when it is said, further, that he is alive again, and found, it is to denote that he was beginning to recover from this deprivation, and to be restored to the possession of heavenly life in his will, and of heavenly wisdom in his understanding. It is said at the close of this verse, that they began to be merry. This is to describe the effect of what had been before said, where it is written, let us eat and be merry; thus it is to describe that what was before only in the thought and intention, was now brought into the will and act. This is an usual method of speaking in the Sacred Scriptures, and occurs particularly in the first chapter of Genesis, where mention is so repeatedly made, first, of the divine thought, or purpose, and, next, of its agency and effect, being designed to lead us to reflect on the two distinct processes of regeneration; first, whilst truth is implanting and growing in the understanding; and, secondly, when it enters into the will or love, and is brought into operation and effect. But it is written afterwards, that his elder son was in the field, and as he came and drew near to the house, he heard music and dancing. In one sense, by the elder son is here to be understood the Jewish nation, who were envious at, the calling in of the Gentiles to the Christian Church, which Gentiles, agreeably to the same sense, are figured in the parable by the younger son. But in a sense still more remote from the letter, by the elder son, as was observed above, are here to be understood those who stand more in original good, and have not wandered so far from their Father’s house in the ways of sin and error. By his being in the field is to be understood, that they who stand more in original good, and have not wandered so far from their Father’s house, which is the divine love and mercy, are in an external state of good, when compared with those who are in the good of repentance, which good is here signified by the house in which was heard music and dancing. For when mention is made, in the Sacred Scriptures, of a field and a house, by a house is signified an interior state of good, and by a field an exterior state, comparatively. Music and dancing, like all other natural expressions, are applied, in the Word of God, to convey spiritual ideas, which is the case, too, with all the various instruments of music spoken of in the Sacred Volume. For all music originates in some spiritual affection, and is expressive of, and attended to excite, the affection in which it originates. And as music is expressive of some spiritual affection, so dancing is expressive of some corresponding natural affection; in other words, dancing is expressive of the agreement between the internal and external man. For dancing, we know, is a motion of the feet in concord, or agreement, with some sound or tune; and as the feet, in consequence of being the lowest part of the body, are representative of the lowest principles of the mind, which are called natural principles, so dancing is representative of the motion, or action of these principles, as they accord with the higher, which are represented by music. It is, therefore, written in the book of Psalms, Praise him with the timbrel and dance; praise him with stringed instruments and organs (Psa 150:4), to denote that man ought to exalt his Maker in all the affections of his spirit, or internal man, and also in all the actions and energies of his external man, influenced by those affections. By the music, and dancing, then, here spoken of, are to be understood the affections of holy joy arising from the good of repentance, which good is here signified by the house, together with the correspondent delight in the external man, originating in that internal joy. It is said that he called one of the servants, and asked what these things meant? And he said to him, Your brother is come, and your father has killed the fatted calf, because he has received him safe and sound. By calling one of the servants, and asking what these things meant, is to be understood an inquisition in the minds of those who stand more in original good concerning the joys and delights of the good of repentance; and by asking one of the servants, is to be understood an inquiry in the lower principles of the mind, called rational and scientific, concerning these joys and delights. And by the servant’s reply to this inquiry, is further to be understood the assent of those principles to the reasonableness of the superior joys and delights annexed to the good of repentance over the original good. This reasonableness is pointed out in a forcible manner, by the expression, because he has received him safe and sound; the term safe having relation to the state of the will in its recovery from disorderly love, to the pure and orderly love of heaven; and the term sound having relation to the state of the understanding, in its restoration from false and erroneous principles of life, to see by the light of the eternal truth and wisdom of the Most High. It is written, further, that he was angry and would not go in; therefore came his father out and entreated him. By anger, and being angry, when the terms occur in the Sacred Scripture, is to be understood contrariety to another, or contrariety of affection; and in this case it denotes the contrariety between the affections of those who stand more in original good, and those who are in the good of repentance; in which sense God is said to be angry with the wicked, not that He feels anything like anger or resentment towards them, but that the good, which constitutes His divine nature, is contrary to the evil which constitutes their natures. The elder brother is, therefore, unwilling to go in, because they who are in original good cannot enter into the joys and delights of those who are in the good of repentance. By the Father we are here to understand, the divine good of the divine love; and by His coming out and entreating him, is to be understood the influx, or influence, of this love into those who are in original good, inclining them to enter into the joys and delights of those who are in the good of repentance, from the consideration that all such joys and delights originate in the divine love, and are communicated in a more abundant measure to those transgressors who, having wandered from their Father’s house in the ways of sin and vanity, are earnest and anxious to return back thither by a vigorous repentance and entire conversion. But it is said of the elder brother, that, notwithstanding his Father’s entreaties, he answering said to him, Lo, these many years do I serve you, neither transgressed I at any time your commandment; and yet you never gave me a kid to make merry with my friends. But as soon as this your son has come, who has devoured your living with harlots, you have killed for him the fatted calf. These words, in a subordinate sense, have reference to the Jewish nation, and speak of the reluctance with which they witnessed the extension of the divine mercy and favour to the Gentiles. They are intended also to teach the perverse spirit of that nation, and the undue sense they entertained of their own superior merits and deserts. But, according to a more internal view, the words have reference to the temper and disposition of those who stand more in original good, and the sense they also cherish of their own unspotted purity, when compared with what they call the defilement of those who are in the good of repentance. All such, therefore, tacitly reproach the Almighty for not giving them a kid to make merry with their friends; in other words, they are indignant at the idea that their joys and delights are not equal to their merits; and thus they charge God foolishly with not giving them a recompense proportioned to their services, not aware that the reward of obedience is always dealt out in an exact measure according to the affection which produced it. We come now to the Father’s reply, Son, than are ever with me, and all that I have is yours. It was necessary that we should make merry and be glad, for this my son was dead, and is alive again; and was lost, and is found. By the eldest son being ever with his father, is to be understood that they who stand more in original good are ever present with its Divine Source, the Supreme Good; and by all that the Father has being his, is to be understood further that original good contains in it the all of the Supreme good. The Father, therefore, by these words meant to convince His son that he had nothing to complain of because he had all things in his possession by virtue of his conjunction with his Father. And thus He meant to convince those who are more in original good of the blessedness of their state, and that they have no need to envy those who are in the good of repentance, since both original good, and the good of repentance, are in this respect equal; and that each is ever conjoined with the Supreme Good; and that each also contains within itself the all of that Good; thus the all of peace, wisdom, holiness, and blessedness, which all is infinite. From this parable we learn, in general, the most powerful motives to repentance, and at the same time the nature of that heavenly duty, or in what it principally consists. The motives to repentance are inculcated in the most endearing terms, grounded in the tender mercy of the Almighty, which is here represented as rejoicing more over the returning penitent, than over the sinless and innocent child. And the nature of repentance is taught us by the description here given of the pattern of all true penitents, who makes his return to his Heavenly Father to consist, first, in forsaking the ways of sin and vanity; secondly, in elevating his affections and thoughts to the Supreme Good; and, thirdly, in acknowledging, from the depth of a contrite heart, the greatness and guilt of his transgressions. We are instructed further by this interesting parable, that the beginning of all sin is when man quits the bosom of his Heavenly Father to live in the indulgence of his own will and wisdom, separate from the will and wisdom of God; and that the beginning of all holiness is when man is made sensible of the misery of such a separation, and with his whole heart and soul and mind, labours after a reconjunction of all his purposes, affections, thoughts, and works, with the Divine Source of his life, his Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on, to shun all the ways of sin and separation from our heavenly Father. But if, notwithstanding all our purposes to lead a good life, we should still in the hour of infirmity fall into transgression, let us yet not despair utterly of the Divine Mercy, but, recollecting its tenderness and compassion towards the humble and the penitent, let us hasten to confess our faults to our Heavenly Father, entreating Him that we may no more offend, but, learning a lesson of wisdom from our faults, may thus attain, by the sincerity of our repentance, to a more full experience and reception of the Divine Mercy than could otherwise have been attained. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 77: 02.35. LUK_16:1-12 -- UNJUST STEWARD ======================================================================== Luk 16:1-12 -- Unjust Steward There was a certain rich man, who had a steward; and the same was accused to him that he had wasted his goods. And he called him, and said to him, How is it that I hear this of you? give an account of your stewardship; for you may be no longer steward. Then the steward said within himself, What shall I do? for my Lord takes away from me the stewardship; I cannot dig; to beg I am ashamed. I am resolved what to do, that, when I am put out of the stewardship, they may receive me into their houses. So he called every one of his Lord’s debtors to him, and said to the first, How much owe you to my Lord? And he said, an hundred measures of oil. And he said to him, Take your bill, and sit down quickly, and write fifty. Then said lie to another, And how much owe you? And he said, An hundred measures of wheat. And he said to him, Take your bill, and write fourscore. And the Lord commended the unjust steward, because he had done wisely: for the children of this world are in their generation wiser than the children of light. And I say to you, Make to yourselves friends of the mammon of unrighteousness; that, when you fail, they may receive you into everlasting habitations. He that is faithful in that which is least is faithful also in much, and he that is unjust in the least is unjust also in much. If therefore you have not been faithful in the unrighteous mammon, who will commit to your trust the true riches? And if you have not been faithful in that which is another man’s, who shall give you that which is your own? A certain rich man means the Lord himself, as to His Divine Humanity, who is called a rich man, as being the bountiful source of all divine wisdom, truth, and knowledge. Under the name of steward is described the whole human race, so called from the reception, by each man, of heavenly truth, or knowledge, from God; for such is the case with every one who is born into the world, that he has no truth, or knowledge, but what he derives from another, and, therefore, properly, he is only a receiver of truth, whilst the Lord Himself is the only Real Proprietor; consequently, at his best estate, he is only a steward, whilst the Lord Himself is the only proper Master. It was said of this steward that he was accused to his master that he had wasted his goods. The accusation, here spoken of, relates to a state of temptation, or trial, on which occasion man is called to recollection and serious thought concerning his past life, and especially concerning the foods which have been entrusted to him by his heavenly Father, and the use which he has made of those goods. Such a state of trial, or temptation, is always attended by infestations from wicked disorderly spirits, who endeavour to oppress the conscience of man, by aggravating the guilt of his crimes, or of all the disorders of his life, that they may thus separate him from the Divine Mercy, by suggesting the idea that he has sinned beyond the possibility of forgiveness. All the knowledges of heavenly truth, together with the affection by which they are received, are called goods, and really are goods, and the only goods which properly deserve the name, because they alone tend to lead man to the possession of eternal life and happiness, by effecting his conjunction with the Divine Source of life and happiness. And these goods are said to be wasted, when man either neglects to use them aright, or by abuse, perverts and rejects them, since in such case the knowledges of truth, even though they had been imparted, and received with affection, are finally taken away from him, since it is an eternal law that man shall have no more knowledge in his understanding than what he is faithful to the practice of, by rendering it subservient to the purification of his will, and the removal thereby of all disorderly love, which separates between him and the Divine Fountain of peace. This, therefore, was the accusation here presented to the mind of the accused steward, that he had frustrated all the purposes of the heavenly knowledge which he had received, and thus made that knowledge void, and of none effect to himself, by not forming his life and love in agreement with its heavenly dictates. It is written in the parable, that the Lord called him and said to him. The Almighty is said to call man by every dictate of truth manifested in his understanding, and to say to him, when that dictate affects the man’s will, so as to excite his affection and attention. The two expressions, therefore, are used, as is common in other parts of the Holy Scripture, for the purpose of pointing out distinctly the two principles of the divine love and wisdom of God, and also the two principles of will and understanding in man adapted to their reception. It is therefore said, He called him and said to him, to show, first, that the Almighty regards man from his divine love and divine wisdom conjointly; and to show, secondly, that in the present instance the accused steward was made sensible of the effect of the divine influence both in his will and in his understanding. The language of the Divine Dictate, in the present case, is thus expressed, How is it that I hear this of you? give an account of your stewardship; for you may be no longer steward. In all states of trial, or temptation, when man is accused by evil spirits in his own conscience, of having been unfaithful to the knowledge communicated to him by his Heavenly Father, there is an internal dictate of heavenly truth leading man to explore the causes of his unfaithfulness, which are necessary to be known before they can be removed. What, therefore, here appears in the letter, in the form of a severe charge, is otherwise in the real spirit and meaning of the words, since according to their internal sense they contain nothing but a dictate of the purest mercy, disposing man to consideration, thus to sincere repentance and newness of life, by discovering to him the hidden sources of his former unfaithfulness and disobedience. The words, Give an account of your stewardship, like the foregoing, in their literal sense, sound like words of censure and of severity, when yet, in their internal and real sense, they are again expressions of the purest mercy, because in that sense they have a tendency again to lead man to recollection, and to take account, in his own mind and life, of the use which he has made of those heavenly goods, which have been entrusted to his care by his Divine Lord and Master. Give an account of your stewardship, is thus a merciful call to every man to explore the hidden principles of his conduct, and thus to ascertain in his own mind in what instances he has been faithful, and in what unfaithful, to divine requirements. But it is added, You may be no longer steward. These words, again, are apparently words of judgement and of terror, thus of severity and incrimination, when yet, in themselves, they are words of the most compassionate mercy, like the foregoing. For by the sentence of apparent condemnation, here delivered, the accused person was intended to be brought into a state of deeper humiliation and contrition, under a feeling sense of his misconduct in the use of his master’s goods, and thus of his unworthiness to be entrusted any longer with the administration of those goods. It is written afterwards, that then the steward said within himself, What shall I do? for my Lord takes away from me the stewardship: I cannot dig: to beg I am ashamed. I am resolved what to do, that, when I am put out of the stewardship, they may receive me into their houses. The words, what shall I do, were intended to express a state of internal thought, because it is written, he said within himself; for thought is of two kinds, external and internal, and man is said to think externally, when he thinks only under the influence of self-love and the love of the world, thus under the influence of his external man; but he is said to think internally, when he thinks under the influence of spiritual love, which is the love of God and of his neighbour, thus under the influence of the spirit of that love in his internal man. The accused person, therefore, in the parable, in consequence of the accusations brought against him, and of the spiritual trial thence resulting, was now brought to a state of interior thought, by which he was led to exercise that wisdom which his Lord afterwards commended. From this state of interior thought, therefore, he asks himself the significant question, what shall I do? in other words, what methods shall I take to deliver myself from my present trial, and to guard against the consequences of the accusation brought, against me? What those methods are, appears from the following verse in the parable. It has been already seen, that the stewardship has relation to the important trust of the eternal truth committed to every one’s care, that he may acquire thence the blessing of everlasting life, through the pure love of God and of his neighbour. This stewardship, then, is said to be taken away, when man either perverts or rejects the eternal truth; and it is also said to be taken away, as in the present instance, when man ceases to be led merely by the knowledge of truth in his understanding, in consequence of having attained to that spirit of love and charity to which the truth was intended to lead him; for when this is the case, man is no longer denominated a steward, but rather a friend and child of his Heavenly Father, by reason of his having attained to the great end and design of his stewardship. And that the accused person in the parable had attained to this end, is evident from the words which follow, I cannot dig: to beg I am ashamed. For these words are manifestly words of humiliation and self-abasement, which tempers of mind are sure symptoms that man is no longer under the influence of selfish and worldly love, but of heavenly and spiritual love. The digging, here spoken of, is a natural term, which like all other natural terms adopted in the Sacred Scriptures, is expressive of a spiritual idea, and the spiritual idea intended to be expressed by it, is that of inquiry or investigation of truth, since, as the natural man digs in the earth, for the purpose of examining its contents, and discovering its treasures, in like manner the spiritual man is said to dig: in his own understanding, to the intent that he may there examine and finally discover the treasures of the eternal truth which are therein concealed. This, therefore, was the first mark of his humiliation and abasement, that he felt himself unable to examine and explore the mysteries of the eternal wisdom; and the second mark of the same heavenly temper is expressed in these words, to beg I am ashamed; by which words is denoted his further inability to apply for spiritual blessings, as is the case with all in a state of trial and temptation, when it appears that heaven is shut against them, and that their prayers for divine favour and acceptance are not heard. It has been already shown what is meant by being put out of the stewardship, namely, that it denotes a state when man is led no longer of truth, and acts no longer under its influence, but begins to be led of the spirit of heavenly good of love and charity, to which all truth points, and to which it is intended to conduct its happy receiver. Here, therefore, may be seen clearly what is further to be understood by being received into their houses. For the term house is an expression used in the Sacred Scriptures to denote the interiors of the human mind, together with the ruling principle which prevails there. In the present case, therefore, it is applied to denote the principle of heavenly love and charity, which was to succeed in the place of truth, and to which the man was to be introduced by the state of trial and temptation above mentioned. The substance of the above resolution is expressed in these words, So he called every one of his Lord’s debtors to him, and said to the first, How much owe you to my Lord? This denotes a further state of self-examination, consisting in an exploration of the debt which he owed to his Lord. It is said, every one of his Lord’s debtors, as if there were many, (whereas we find afterwards that mention is made only of two) to teach us this lesson of the divine wisdom, that the debts which man owes to his God relate principally to his will and to his understanding, and that these, therefore, are the principles which stand chiefly indebted to the Almighty, the will being created to receive all the good things of his love, whilst the understanding is created to receive all the good things of His wisdom. It is, therefore, on this ground principally that man is a debtor to his Merciful Creator, because all things belonging to him, such as his joys, delights, and happiness, have respect to one or other of the above principles. The question, then, how much owe you to my Lord? involves in it an important inquiry respecting every good influence which man has received at any time from his Heavenly Father, and also respecting all the knowledge of heavenly truth which has at any time been imparted to him in an external way through the senses. For the real case is, that every pure delight manifested in the mind of man is from above, or from a source out of himself; in like manner every genuine truth, or knowledge, imparted through the senses, and elevated into the understanding of man, is also from above, and derived from a source out of himself. Until man, however, is brought into a state of recollection and of serious self-examination, he is never able to make this discovery, consequently he makes no return of the immense blessing which he receives everyday from a Divine Hand. The important question, then, How much owe you to my Lord? was intended to lead man out of this dreadful state of thoughtlessness and ingratitude to his Divine Benefactor, and to conduct him further to the pure and eternal joy arising from a humble and grateful acknowledgement of divine mercies and favours. The debt and its payment, which are the principle subjects of this parable, are next described. And he said to him, Take your bill, and sit down quickly, and write fifty. Then said he to another, And how much owe you? and he said, A hundred measures of wheat. And he said to him, Take your bill, and write fourscore. The debt is here expressed by two distinct terms, a hundred measures of oil, and a hundred measures of wheat, because the expression, a hundred measures of oil, has more relation to the good things of celestial love stored up in the human will, whilst the other expression, a hundred measures of wheat, has more relation to the good things of heavenly wisdom, or truth, stored up in the human understanding. For every man, from the first moment of his birth, to the last moment of his existence here below, is perpetually receiving from God these precious gifts in his will and in his understanding, whether he is aware of it or not; and these gifts are described in the Sacred Scriptures under figurative terms, taken from the most valuable and beneficial subjects of natural life, as in the present instance from oil and wheat. Accordingly, we find that both oil and wheat are used, under the Jewish law, to express spiritual blessings, which are the blessings of heavenly love and wisdom, to which all spiritual things have reference. In the prophetic writings also the same figurative language, we find, is perpetually adopted, insomuch that there is no subject in the visible creation, which is not regarded in this, its representative character, and thus introduced to express some spiritual grace, or virtue, to which it corresponds. It is said in both cases that the measure was a hundred, because a hundred is a term applied in the Scriptures throughout to denote what is complete and full, and, therefore, it is here applied by our Lord to the measures of oil and of wheat here spoken of, inasmuch as these measures are in every sense full and complete with every individual, since every individual, as was above observed, is continually receiving those inestimable gifts from the Father of Mercies. The discharge of the debt is expressed by what is said in one case, Take your bill, and sit down quickly, and write fifty; and in the other case, Take your bill, and write fourscore. The true meaning of this discharge cannot be clearly and fully comprehended but from a right understanding of the signification of numbers, as they are applied in the Word throughout, and particularly of the numbers fifty and fourscore, which are here applied in the parable. For that numbers have a spiritual signification is evident from the application of them in every part of the Sacred Scriptures. Thus it must be obvious to the most careless reader, that the numbers two, three, five, seven, ten, twelve, and twenty, are applied according to some spiritual idea, and can only be understood in reference to that idea. On the same ground, the numbers fifty and fourscore are here applied in the parable, because the number fifty, like the number a hundred, of which it is the half, denotes what is full and complete, and, therefore, is here used by our blessed Lord to denote a full and complete discharge of the debt; and the number fourscore, like the number forty, of which it is the double, denotes a state of trial and temptation, as is plain from our Lord’s temptation in the wilderness, the duration of which was forty days, and also from the sojourning of the children of Israel in the wilderness, the duration of which was forty years. The discharge of the debt, therefore, is described by these numbers, to denote, that when, by self-examination and serious exploration of the interiors of his own mind, man is fully convinced of the immense debt which he owes to his Merciful Creator, and is brought into the humble and grateful desire of paying it, the Almighty is pleased to accept this conviction and desire as a full discharge of the debt, but yet with the condition, that man shall pass through the several states of trial and purification necessary to wean him from his natural self-love, that so he may finally be brought into the humble, thankful acknowledgement, that all the gifts which he has received, both in his will and in his understanding; in other words, all the good things of love and charity, together with all the blessings of wisdom and knowledge, are the perpetual gifts of a gracious and indulgent Mercy, without which he would have no sense whatever either of goodness or of wisdom, consequently, no sense of true happiness either here or hereafter. It is written, that the Lord commended the unjust steward, because he had done wisely; for the children of this world, are in their generation wiser than the children of light. The action, in this case, is only apparently unjust, whilst viewed according to the sense of the letter; but in reality it was just, and must be deemed just, when viewed according to the spiritual sense of the parable; because in agreement with that sense it is the operation of the divine wisdom in man, leading him to the full acknowledgement of the immense debt which he owes to his merciful Creator, and to the adoption of such measures as were necessary for its discharge. The Lord, therefore, does not commend the steward for his injustice, because he had not really been guilty of any act of injustice, but he commends him, because he had done wisely; in other words, because he had done what heavenly wisdom dictated as proper to be done under his circumstances. Moreover, it can never be true, that the children of this world are in reality wiser than the children of light. The children of this world are such as are intent on securing the apparent goods of this world, in which attempt they exercise a prudence, in some respects apparently superior to the prudence exercised by the children of light in the attainment of their object. The Lord, therefore, would teach us, by the above words, to imitate the prudence and circumspection of the natural man in his concerns, on all occasions, relative to the concerns of the spiritual man. Thus the spiritual man should suffer himself to be instructed by the natural man, and to apply the prudential methods by which he secures his temporal interests, as a rule for the regulation of conduct in regard to the security of the higher interests of eternity. It is according to this view, that the dumb ass, speaking with man’s voice, reproves the madness of the prophet (Numb. 22:22-31; 2Pe 2:16), because the dumb ass is a figure of the scientific principle of the natural man, or of the wisdom of the children of this world; whilst the prophet is a figure equally striking of the wisdom of the spiritual man, who may be, and is intended to be, improved and perfected by an attention to the prudence and circumspection of the lower principles of scientific knowledge. The words, Make to yourselves friends of the mammon of unrighteousness; that when you fail, they may receive you, into everlasting habitations, cannot be understood until it be first known what is meant by the mammon of unrighteousness, and what by making friends of that mammon. Now the mammon of unrighteousness may be understood in two senses; first, as relating to worldly wealth, for by mammon is meant wealth, or riches; and, secondly, as relating to spiritual wealth, or the riches of the mind, or spirit; and in both these senses the precept, which inculcates the duty of making to ourselves friends of it, is most important. For, in regard to the natural sense of the term mammon, it is of the greatest concern to man to make natural wealth his friend, and not his enemy, and this blessed effect is produced whenever man applies his natural wealth to the beneficent purposes for which it is given him by his merciful Creator, such as the purposes of providing for the comforts, and promoting the happiness of all those with whom he is connected in civil society. But the duty is still more interesting, when regarded in its application to spiritual wealth, or to the riches of the mind, spirit, of man; which riches consist in the knowledges of what is good and of what is true, as communicated in the revelation of the Most High. For that such knowledges are to be regarded in the light of spiritual wealth, is evident from our Lord’s other parables, where he compares them, in one instance, with pounds, and, in another instance, with talents, that is to say, with money. It is remarkable, too, that there is the most exact agreement between this spiritual money, or riches, and natural wealth, since natural wealth, we know, is for the purpose of procuring the comforts and necessaries of natural life, and is of no use whatsoever unless it be so applied. This is exactly the case, too, with the knowledges of what is good and true, which are here spiritually understood by the mammon of unrighteousness, since, if those knowledges are not applied to the purpose of procuring the comforts and necessaries of spiritual life, they likewise are of no manner of use or service whatsoever. Here, therefore, it may be seen what is meant, in this latter sense, by making to ourselves friends of the mammon of unrighteousness. For if the knowledges of what is good and true are not applied to the blessed purposes for which they are given, namely, to promote our purification and regeneration, by replenishing us more and more with the love of God and of our neighbour, and by thus delivering us from the deadly evils of selfish and worldly love, they then become our greatest enemies, being the cause of all our condemnation and misery. On the other hand, if we are careful to apply those knowledges according to the above purposes for which they were given, they then become our best friends, because they are the mediums, under the Divine Providence, of opening to us the gates of heaven, and of introducing us into the societies of the ever blessed, by first purifying our hearts and lives from all our natural evils, and restoring in us the blessed, image of the divine love, wisdom, purity, and peace. It is an eternal law, therefore, stamped on the above knowledges, that they must become either man’s greatest friends, or greatest enemies; since if man forms his life in agreement with them, they promote his eternal salvation; whereas if he is careless in the application of them, they then as certainly increase his condemnation, according as it is written, He that knew his Lord’s will, and prepared not himself, neither did according to His will, shall be beaten with many blows. The meaning of the concluding words, That when you fail, they may receive you into everlasting habitations, is plain, from what has been already said of the mammon of unrighteousness, and of the duty off making to ourselves friends of that mammon. For in the application of this mammon, according to its natural sense, as relating to worldly wealth, it is evident that this wealth may be rendered instrumental, under the Divine Providence, in securing to man an everlasting habitation in the Kingdom of Heaven, provided that he applies it in agreement with the purposes and counsels of the Most High. The same is true, likewise, concerning the above mammon as understood according to its spiritual sense, since it has been already seen, that by the knowledges of what is good and true, if man be faithful in their application, he attains to purification from his natural evils, and also to a participation of the divine spirit of heavenly love and wisdom; consequently, he is received into an everlasting habitation, since every advancement in purification of life, through the admittance of heavenly and eternal principles of holy love and wisdom, is ever attended with the blessed effect of introducing man into heavenly societies, inasmuch as there is every reason to believe, that man’s progress in the regeneration is a progress also into the mansions of bliss and purity, and into association with the angelic inhabitants of those mansions, according as it is written, The angel of the Lord camps round about them that fear Him, and delivers them; and, again, He shall give, his angels charge over you, to keep you in all your ways. It is written, further, he that is faithful in that which is least, is faithful also in much; and he that is unjust in the least, is unjust also in much. To be faithful in that which is least, is to be faithful to the first manifestation of heavenly truth, or knowledge, in the mind, which is then called the least; because at that time, like the grain of mustard-seed, it is the least of all seeds, but presently, in proportion as man becomes faithful to it, by renouncing the evils which it makes manifest, it becomes much; in other words, it becomes a great tree, so that, as it is written in another parable, the birds of heaven lodge in the branches of it. To be unjust in the least, here means not to be faithful to the first manifestations of heavenly truth in the understanding; in other words, not to renounce and depart from those natural evils which the truth so manifested points out as mischievous and destructive. And he who is thus unjust in the least, must, of course, be unjust also in much, because he not only destroys in himself the first manifestation of heavenly truth, or knowledge, but, likewise, all the products, or fruits, intended by that manifestation, that is to say, all the graces and virtues of heavenly love and life, and thus all the blessings and comforts of the heavenly kingdom. It is added, If therefore you have not been faithful in the unrighteous mammon, who will commit to your trust the true riches? By the true riches is to be understood internal truth, or truth internally received, and thus in connection with its good, that is to say, with Jesus Christ, His life, His love, and His kingdom. Jesus Christ, therefore, would teach us by the above significant question, that this internal truth will never be communicated to us, only in the degree in which we are faithful to external truth, or to truth externally received, as all truth is in its first manifestation. Hence, Jesus Christ would lead us to consider the vast importance of being faithful to the first impressions of heavenly truth imparted through the senses, since without such faithfulness it is impossible ever to attain to the blessing of internal truth, and thus to conjunction of life and and love with our Heavenly Father. It is, lastly, added, If you have not been faithful in that which is another man’s, who shall give you that which is your own? All truth, at its first manifestation in the human mind, is said to be another man’s, because he to whom it is manifested has not as yet made it his own, by incorporating it into his life, or love, and thus admitting it, not on the authority of another only, but on its own authority, by being made sensible in his own mind of its divine origin, and of the divine blessing to which it conducts, and with which it is in connection. When Jesus Christ, therefore, proposes the question on this occasion, Who shall give you that which is your own? He meant to teach us this important lesson, that heavenly truth can never be fully incorporated into our lives, only so far as we love it, and delight in it, and thus make it our own. He would, therefore, teach us, further, that truth is not our own, merely because we assent to it with our understanding, and confirm its external evidences, since if it goes no further than our understanding it is in such case another man’s, and not properly our possession. But it becomes our own by living according to it, and thus seeing and holding it in connection with that Divine Being from whom it continually proceeds, and with all that host of beings and of blessings to which it was intended to conduct us. We learn from this parable the very interesting wisdom to know how to conduct ourselves when we are brought into trial or temptation, concerning our Heavenly Father’s goods which He has entrusted to our cave, but which we have wasted. We learn further the very important wisdom of being faithful to the first manifestations of truth in our own mind and conscience, by renouncing those natural evils which the truth was intended both to make manifest and to control. We are instructed yet further, that we can never hope to attain all the blessings proffered to our acceptance by the Eternal Truth, only so far as we make it our own, by incorporating it fully into our life and love. Let us resolve, therefore, in future, whenever we are called to account respecting our stewardship, to enter into a serious examination of ourselves, concerning the use we have made of that knowledge which has been imparted to us by our Heavenly Father, that so we may no longer be called a waster of His goods, but, by making friends of the mammon of unrighteousness, may finally be received into the everlasting habitations of rest and peace, reserved for all those who have been faithful in that which is least, and who have thus attained to the true riches; also for those who have been faithful in that which is another man’s, and thus have had imparted to them that which is their own. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 78: 02.36. LUK_16:19-31 -- RICH MAN AND LAZARUS ======================================================================== Luk 16:19-31 -- Rich Man and Lazarus There was a certain rich man, who was clothed in purple and fine linen, and fared sumptuously every day. And there was a certain beggar named Lazarus, which was laid at his gate, full of sores, and desiring to be fed with the crumbs which fell from the rich man’s table: moreover, the dogs came and licked his sores. And it came to pass, that the beggar died, and was carried by the angels into Abraham’s bosom: the rich man also died, and was buried; and in hell he lift up his eyes, being in torments, and sees Abraham afar off, and Lazarus in his bosom. And he cried and said, Father Abraham,, have mercy on me, and send Lazarus, that he may dip the tip of his finger in water, and cool my tongue; for I am tormented in this flame. But Abraham said, Son, remember that you in your lifetime received your good things, and likewise Lazarus evil things: but now he is comforted, and you are tormented. And beside all this, between us and you there is a great gulf fixed: so that they who would pass from here to you cannot; neither can they pass to us, that would come from there. Then he said, I pray you, therefore, father, that you would send him to my father’s house, for I have five brethren, that he may testify to them, lest they also come into this place of torment. Abraham says to him, They have Moses and the Prophets; let them hear them. And he said, Nay, father Abraham: but if one went to them from the dead, they will repent. And he said to him, If they hear not Moses and the Prophets, neither will they be persuaded if one rose from the dead. A certain rich man, in a restricted or historical sense, here designates the Jewish nation; but in a more extended or spiritual sense it means all who a re in possession of the knowledges of revealed truth, or the Word of God, and who are, therefore, said to be clothed in purple and fine linen; purple denoting more the good of that Word, and fine linen its truth; they are further described, as faring sumptuously every day, to denote that, on all occasions, they have the opportunity of incorporating into their lives those heavenly and eternal principles. The beggar named Lazarus, in a restricted or historical sense, denotes the Gentiles, who are called beggars, because they were not in possession of the Eternal Truth, like the Jews; but in a more extended or spiritual sense, by the beggar, here mentioned, are to be understood all who are without the knowledge of revealed truth, and yet are in the desire of that knowledge. All these are said to be laid at the rich man’s gate, because they are in the affection of truth, and desirous to enter into the possession of it: they are also described as being full of sores, inasmuch as being destitute of the Eternal Truth, they are infested with false principles and persuasions, which are in many cases contrary to the truth: they are again described as desiring to be fed with the crumbs which fell from the rich man’s table, since being in the affection or love of truth, they wish to be fed or nourished by it in all the virtues and graces of a pure and holy life. And, lastly, it is said of them, that the dogs came and licked their sores, to denote their association with those who, from a state of natural good, were desirous of preventing the perversion of truth, and thus of restoring them to the health and strength of divine life and order. It is said in the parable, that the beggar died, and was carried by the angels into Abraham’s bosom: the rich man also died, and was buried. Dying means removal from a natural state of life into a spiritual state of life; and being carried by the angels into Abraham’s bosom means, introduction to eternal happiness in that state, for, by Abraham is here manifestly meant the Lord, as in other passages of the Sacred Scriptures; and by his bosom is therefore meant the divine love, with all the blessedness which it communicates. The beloved disciple John was therefore said to lie in the Lord’s bosom, because he was principled in heavenly love and charity, and in all the good works to which they give birth. The rich man dying, denotes his removal also from a natural state of life into a spiritual state of life; but inasmuch as, from the history of this rich man, it is manifest that he was principled in knowledge, but not in the life of knowledge, which is love and charity, therefore, it is said that he was buried, to denote that all his knowledge perished with him, this being the case with all those who have their understandings enlightened by the Eternal Truth, whilst their wills remain unpurified through a criminal neglect of the application of that truth to the purposes for which it was given. In the same view, it is written of the unfaithful servant, who had neglected to improve his talent, take from him the talent, and give it to him that has ten talents. It is added, that in hell he lifted up his eyes, being in torments, and sees Abraham afar off, and Lazarus in his bosom. By hell is to be understood a state of separation from everything that is wise and good, thus from the divine presence of the Most High; and by his lifting up his eyes in this state, being in torments, is further to be understood the man’s thought or reflection about his state, in consequence of the misery and wretchedness in which he found himself. It is, therefore, added, that he saw Abraham afar off, and Lazarus in his bosom, to denote that he perceived his distance and separation from the Lord himself, signified by Abraham, and from all the consolations of his mercy and love, signified by Lazarus in his bosom. But it is further written, that he cried and said, Father Abraham, have mercy on me, and send Lazarus, that he may dip the tip of his finger in water, and cool my tongue, for I am tormented in this flame. It may be asked how the rich man’s prayer for divine mercy can be reconciled with the fact of his continuing in torment, since it is reasonable to suppose that his prayer would be heard by the Father of Mercies, and that relief from torment would be afforded accordingly. This difficulty can only be removed by supposing what seems to have been really the case, that the rich man’s prayer, on this occasion, did not proceed from any good desire grounded in a sense of the divine love and mercy, but from his present torment, and that consequently it was the prayer of compulsion, not of freedom, and therefore could not be granted, since the Almighty is affected by no prayers, and hears none, but what proceed from perfect freedom, which freedom is the result of the operation of divine mercy and love in the penitent and obedient bosom. The reason why the rich man petitions that Lazarus may dip the tip of his finger in water, and cool his tongue, can only be seen from the consideration of what is here to be understood by water, and by cooling the tongue; from which it will be manifest, that by water is meant truth, which the rich man, in his life time, had been accustomed to pervert and falsify, and that this was the ground of his present petition, that he might still be allowed the satisfaction in which he had before indulged, of perverting and falsifying the truth, and thus of cooling his tongue. For by the tongue of this rich man is to be understood the power or faculty of thus perverting and falsifying all the knowledges of truth which he had admitted into his understanding, and since he was no longer permitted to exercise this power or faculty, therefore he says, I am tormented in this flame. By the flame, however, here spoken of, is not literally to be understood the flame arising from a common fire, as in this world, but the flame of this rich man’s craving, which was nothing else but the infernal lust of continuing to pervert and falsify all heavenly truth, as he had been accustomed to do in the life of the body. It is written, further, that Abraham said, Son, remember that you in your lifetime received your good things, and likewise Lazarus evil things; but now he is comforted, and you are tormented. The good things which the rich man is here said to have received, are not real good things, but apparent good things, or such as appeared good at the time to the man himself, on which account they are called your good things. For such is the difference between real good things and apparent good things, that the former are what man receives, not from himself merely, but from the Giver of all good, with whom also the receiver connects them, acknowledging them with gratitude to be the gifts of his mercy; whereas apparent good things are those which man separates from the Divine Giver, and thus calls his own, independent of the mercy from which he received them. The like is true of the evil things which Lazarus is said to have received, inasmuch as evil things, like good things, are both real and apparent; real evils being such as man brings upon himself by separating his love and affection, consequently his thoughts and persuasions, from the Source of all good, whilst apparent evil things are of an external nature, being such as are permitted of the Divine Providence to afflict even those who are in the real desire of turning away from all evil, and who, consequently, in the end, obtain deliverance from all evil. It is therefore added, now he is comforted, and you are tormented, to instruct us, that all who have received apparent evil things in the present life are admitted in the life after death to a participation and enjoyment of real goods; whilst they, who in the life of the body have received only apparent good things, are deprived of those blessings after separation from the body, and are plunged into real evil things, in consequence of a separation from all real good of heavenly love and life. But Abraham adds, Beside all this, between us and you there is a great gulf fixed: so that they who would pass from here to you cannot; neither can they pass to us that would come from there. This great gulf describes the barrier of eternal separation between one kingdom and the other, which is of such a nature as to render it impossible for the inhabitants of the happy kingdom to become inhabitants of the miserable kingdom, and likewise for the inhabitants of the miserable kingdom to become inhabitants of the happy kingdom. This gulf, it is possible, may be passed by man during his abode in this world, and every man in reality does pass it according to the determination of his free-will, whether it incline to good or evil. But it is well to be considered and understood, that when man quits the terrestrial body and enters into the spiritual or eternal world, his lot is then irrevocably fixed, nor is it possible for him then to change the ruling love which he has acquired by the exercise of his freedom here below. It is, therefore, said, so that they who would pass from here to you cannot; neither can they pass to us that would come from there, to instruct all mankind in this important truth, that the present life is allowed them for the purpose of fixing their eternal destination, and that every one, therefore, has it now in his power either to become a blessed angel, to live for ever happy amongst kindred angels, or to become a miserable infernal, to take up his eternal abode amongst the spirits of darkness. It is further written of the rich man, that he said, I pray you, therefore, Father, that you would send him to my father’s house, for I have five brethren, that be may testify to them, lest they also come into this place of torment. By the father’s house and five brethren are to be understood, all those who are spiritually rich, or who abound in the knowledges of truth, but yet are in evil of life, in consequence of not applying those knowledges to the purifying purposes for which they were imparted. It appears at first sight that the rich man, in this instance, was principled in good-will and charity, since he was desirous of preventing others from being exposed to the same misery with himself. In reality, however, his petition was not grounded in charity, but in self-love, or a desire to prevent the increase of his own torment. For as in the kingdom of the blessed, every increase of its inhabitants is an addition to the bliss of each individual, so in the kingdom of the miserable there is reason to suppose that every increase of its inhabitants adds both to the general misery, and to that of every individual. On any other principle it is difficult to account for the anxiety here expressed by the rich man to prevent his brethren coming to the same place of torment with himself. It is written, in the conclusion, that Abraham said to him, they have Moses and the Prophets; let them hear them. And he said, Nay, father Abraham; but if one went to them from the dead, they would repent, And he said to him, if they hear not Moses and the Prophets, neither will they be persuaded if one rose from the dead. We learn from these words that the revelation of the eternal truth in the Word of God is the only source of genuine faith, or of a right belief in God and in the great realities of His kingdom; and that if men do not suffer themselves to be persuaded by the evidence of truth itself, they will not be persuaded by any other evidence or testimony whatsoever. We learn, therefore, further, that it is a groundless imagination to suppose that men may be converted to a right faith and a corresponding life by visions, by miracles, or by any other extraordinary interposition whatsoever, since if a right faith and a corresponding life could be effected by these means, there is every reason to suppose that the Divine Mercy would not fail to apply them for that salutary purpose. We learn, therefore, lastly, that in order to effect our conversion to God, and our full belief in the realities of his kingdom, we ought to study well the pages of the eternal truth, which contain all possible fullness of evidence and demonstration. This parable teaches us how great is the temptation to which we are exposed from the possession of riches, whether they be natural or spiritual, since, in either case, if they are not rightly applied, they may become injurious to our eternal happiness. Not that it is to be understood that a rich man, whether in a natural or spiritual view, is excluded from the kingdom of heaven, any more than a poor man, or that poverty is a surer introduction to heaven than riches. It is only to be understood that the abuse of riches, and especially of spiritual riches, which are the knowledges of truth, is in all cases, dangerous. We learn, therefore, especially from this parable, to be upon our guard in respect to the use of spiritual riches, that so we may always apply the knowledge of the eternal truth, which we have received, to the purposes of purification and real reformation of heart and life. Lastly, we are taught where to look for the proper evidence of things invisible, and that it is only to be found in the Word of God itself, or in the testimony ot the eternal truth. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on, no longer to abuse the knowledge which we have received, either by perversion or misapplication; and let us further resolve never to indulge the foolish imagination that our conversion may be worked either by visions, by signs, or even by miracles, but rather to look for that highest of all testimonies respecting the eternal world which God has vouchsafed to communicate in His Holy Word, and which, if rightly cherished in the understanding, in the will, and in the life, will not fail, finally, to produce an evidence amounting to demonstration. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 79: 02.37. LUK_17:7-10 -- SERVANT FEEDING CATTLE ======================================================================== Luk 17:7-10 -- Servant Feeding Cattle But which of you, having a servant ploughing or feeding cattle, will say to him by and by, when he is come from the field, Go and sit down to eat? and will not rather say to him. Make ready with what I may dine, and gird yourself, and serve me, till I have eaten and drunken; and afterward you shall eat and drink? Does he thank that servant because he did the things that were commanded him? I trust not. So likewise you, when you shall have done all those things which are commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants; we haw done that which was our duty to do. The two kinds of servants here distinguished by Jesus Christ include all the members of His church, who are, according to the spiritual idea, either ploughmen or shepherds; since the term ploughmen involves in it all those who are preparing themselves for the reception and growth of the seed of the Word of God, which is the eternal truth; whilst the term shepherds involves in it all those who cherish the good which this seed produces, that so it may come to its full maturity. A spiritual ploughman, therefore, is one who is more concerned about the cultivation of his understanding and its improvement in heavenly knowledge; whilst the spiritual shepherd is one who is more concerned about the cultivation of his will, and its consequent improvement in the graces of heavenly love and charity. Jesus Christ, therefore, distinguishes between these two characters, because it is of importance, and of the first importance, that they should be distinguished, to the intent that the members of His church may examine themselves accordingly, and may thus be enabled to discover their several characters, and in what state they stand in regard both to the insemination and fruitfulness of the eternal truth in their own minds and lives. The servant is described as coming from the field. By the field, here spoken of, is to be understood both the will and the understanding of man, because these two faculties were created to receive and to cherish the good and truth of the Word of God, and to be formed accordingly; and to come from this field is an expression to denote the cessation of spiritual labour, whether it relate to the will or the understanding, and thus to denote a state of entrance into that rest, to which all spiritual labour is intended to conduct, which rest is no other than the termination of all spiritual conflict, and an admission to that blessed peace which is always the result of spiritual victory, and of conjunction thus acquired with the supreme good and supreme truth. It is intimated in the parable, that this servant, when coming from the field, should not immediately go and sit down to eat, but should rather make ready with what his master may dine, and gird himself, and serve his master till he has eaten and drunken, and afterward he might eat and drink. This intimation is grounded in the greatest depths of the divine wisdom, which is continually inculcating the edifying lesson, that before man spiritually sits down to eat; in other words, before he can appropriate to himself heavenly good and truth, and thus enter into the rest of everlasting peace and bliss, he must first prepare himself for the communication and enjoyment of all these blessings; which preparation consists in doing what is here expressed in the parable, where it is said, Make ready with what I may dine, and gird yourself, and serve me, till I have eaten and drunken. The first injunction, Make ready with what I may dine, has reference spiritually to the implantation of truths, or the knowledges of heavenly things in the human mind, on which things the Lord is said to dine, agreeably to His own declaration in the Revelations, where He says, Behold, I stand at the door, and knock: if any man hear my voice and open the door, I will come in to him and will eat with him, and he with me (Rev 3:20). For such is the nature of man’s conjunction with the Lord, that it cannot be effected without the knowledges of truth, nor can it be effected by those knowledges alone, without the love and life of truth, which love and life is from the Lord. Thus man’s conjunction with the Lord is the result of the conjunction of the love and life of truth with the truth itself; in which case the Lord is said to dine with man, and man with the Lord, because the Lord’s love joins itself with the knowledges of truth in man’s understanding, whilst the knowledges of truth in man’s understanding reciprocally join themselves with the Lord’s love and life, and thus is effected at heavenly marriage, together with its feast, in which the Lord delights Himself with entering into His own in man; and man, in his turn, delights himself with entering mutually, by means of the knowledges of truth, into an everlasting conjunction with, and enjoyment of, all the good things of the Lord’s love and life. The first preparation, therefore, for man’s entrance into the rest of eternal blessedness, is to make ready with what the Lord may dine; in other words, to store up in his understanding the knowledges of heavenly truth from the Holy Word, with a view to their final conjunction with the Lord’s love and life. As the first injunction relates to the insemination of truth in the human understanding, so the second injunction, Gird yourself, relates to the effect of that insemination on the human will. For the girding, here spoken of, has respect to the love and its affections, being expressive of their separation from mere worldly, selfish, and sensual ends of life, and of their being gathered up and directed towards an eternal end, which end is nothing else but conjunction with the Supreme good and Supreme truth. Frequent mention is accordingly made of girdles and of girding in the Sacred Scriptures, both as applied to the Lord himself and to His children. Thus it is written of the Lord himself, that justice shall be the girdle of his loins, and faithfulness the girdle of his reins (Isa 11:5), to denote that His love and affections, as to His humanity, were always directed upwards, and under the influence of the Divine good, as His thoughts were always directed towards, and under the influence of, the Divine truth. And thus his children are enjoined by Him to have their loins girded about (Luk 12:35); or, as it is expressed by the Apostle, to have their loins girt about with truth (Ephes. 6:14), to denote that their love and affections should also be directed upwards, and gathered out of all folly and transgression to an eternal conjunction with the Divine Father and Fountain of all life and peace. As the two first injunctions relate, one to the insemination of truth, and the other to its operation on the love and affections, so the third, Serve me till I have eaten and drunken, relates to its operation on the conduct or conversation of man in his exchange with his fellow-creatures, or in the discharge of relative duties, and in the fulfillment of those uses and good services to which he is called of the Divine Providence in that station of life in which he is placed. For this is the end both of the insemination of truth, and of its effect on the love, that man should be brought into a state of entire submission to the Divine will and Providence, so as to become a willing subject or servant for the accomplishment of divine purposes, and more especially for the fixation of the principles of thought and affection in useful works, agreeably to those other words of Jesus Christ, where He says to His disciples, You have not chosen me, but I have chosen you, and ordained [or arranged] you, that you should bring forth fruit, and that your fruit should remain (John 15:16). For by bringing forth fruit, is here signified the production of heavenly love and charity in the human will; and by this fruit remaining, is further denoted the descent of those heavenly principles into the actions or operations of the external man, where they become fixed and permanent, and acquire a body, in the useful and profitable works of a well-regulated life. It is added, Till I have eaten and drunken, to denote that, when the principles of love and charity, in the internal man, are fixed and rendered permanent by good works in the external, the Lord, in such case, takes entire possession of the whole man, and partakes in all the joys derived from the perception of his own love and wisdom manifested and operative in the human will and understanding. It is added, and then you may eat and drink. These words are intended to instruct us, that man is not allowed to enter into the enjoyment of any celestial good, or into the delight of any spiritual truth, only so far as he first acknowledges, in heart and life, that every such good and truth is derived solely from the Lord, and is the gift of His bountiful and unmerited mercy, and in proportion as, by humility and submission, he allows the Divine Giver to enter first into the enjoyment and delight of all His gifts. For until this is the case man must of necessity separate those gifts from their Divine fountain, and, in so doing, must of course separate himself from that fountain, and, consequently, from all heavenly enjoyment, peace, and blessedness, which can only be tasted in their fullness, so far as man is wise to connect himself with his Maker, and with all the good things of His mercy and love. In the application of this parable, the Lord proposes the following interesting question, Does he thank that servant because he did the things that were commanded him? to which he gives the following answer, I trust not; and then delivers the following precept, So likewise you, when you have done all that is commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants: we have done that which was our duty to do, We learn from the above question and answer, and from the annexed precept, that no action of ours has any merit in it, only so far as it is done under the divine influence of our Heavenly Father, and thus under the humble, grateful acknowledgement, that He is the real doer of it, whilst all that we can do is to co-operate with His divine grace and mercy. We learn, further, that we ought always to consider ourselves merely as co-operators with our God and Saviour, in all our thoughts, words, and works, agreeably to His own declaration, where He says, Without me you can do nothing. Thus we ought to refer all our talents, with their operation, to the Divine bounty which bestows them, and tremble at the idea of ascribing any glory to ourselves when it is due solely to the Lord our Redeemer. This parable teaches us to regard ourselves as called to the infinite honour and happiness of being servants of the Most High, and that in this character we have to act in the double capacity of a ploughman and a shepherd; in other words, as we are gifted both with an understanding and a will, and that our understanding was given us for the insemination and cultivation of all heavenly truth, as our will was given us for the reception and fruit-fullness of all the heavenly good of love and charity. In the next place, we are taught, that in the fulfillment of these important duties, we are bound, first, to regard the divine will and pleasure of our Heavenly Father, by preparing in ourselves a suitable habitation for His Holy Spirit of love and wisdom, that so He may take delight in the abode of His own preparing, and in the heavenly principles with which He furnishes that abode. We are instructed, yet further, that it is the will of our Heavenly Father, that we ourselves may then enter into the full enjoyment of those principles, and of all the happiness to which they give birth, whenever we are wise, humbly, and gratefully to acknowledge them to be His gifts for our bliss and salvation. Lastly, we learn, that under every advancement in the reception of goodness and of truth from above, and in all their operation, we ought to ascribe all the praise and glory to Him to whom it properly belongs, and still account ourselves unprofitable servants, because we can never rise to any higher honour than to become a fellow-worker, or co-operator, with the Omnipotent in the important concerns of our salvation and bliss. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on to endeavour to discharge all our duties, whether those of a spiritual ploughman, or of a spiritual shepherd, with the greatest zeal and alacrity, as if everything depended on ourselves, but after all to acknowledge, in humility, that of ourselves we can do nothing, and that we owe everything, whether it relate to the knowledge of truth in the understanding, to the reception of good in the will, or to the operation of both in our words and works, to the free grace and mercy of the Divine Parent and Fountain of all truth, of all good, of all peace, and of all salvation, to whom be the kingdom, the power, and the glory, for ever. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 80: 02.38. LUK_18:1-8 -- UNJUST JUDGE ======================================================================== Luk 18:1-8 -- Unjust Judge And He spoke a parable to them to this end, that men ought always to pray and not to give up; saying, There was in a city a judge, who feared not God, neither regarded man. And there was a widow in that city; and she came to him, saying, Avenge me of mine adversary. And he would not for a while: but afterward he said within himself, Though I fear not God, nor regard man, yet because this widow troubles me, I will avenge her, lest by her continual coming she weary me. And the Lord said, Hear what the unjust judge says. And shall not God avenge His own elect, who cry day and night to Him, though he bear long with them? I tell you that He will avenge them speedily. Nevertheless, when the Son of Man comes, shall he find faith on the earth? In the sense of the letter, by the city is meant a city, by the judge a judge, and by the widow a widow, who applies to the judge to be avenged of her adversary, or of some one who had done her injury. But in the spiritual sense, by the city, here spoken of, is to be understood the doctrine of the church; and by the judge, the false principles and persuasions which prevailed in that doctrine, for it is said of him, that he feared not God, neither regarded man, intimating that he was void of all love and charity; and by the widow are to be understood those in the church who are in the desire of truth, from a principle of simple good, and from a conviction that without truth they can have no power against their spiritual enemies, the devil, the world, and the flesh. It is written of the judge, when he was applied to by the widow to avenge her of her adversary, that he would not for a while. In the sense of the letter this means, that either through carelessness or disinclination, the judge delayed to grant the widow’s request; but according to the spiritual idea, it denotes the delay and difficulty attending the subjugation of evil, and the powers of darkness, whilst man is under the influence of false principles and persuasions, and is thus in darkness respecting the eternal truth. But it is added, that afterward he said within himself, though I fear not God, nor regard man, yet because this widow troubles me, I will avenge her, lest by her continual coming she weary me. According to the sense of the letter, it would appear from these words, that the unjust judge granted the widow’s request merely for the purpose of saving himself the trouble of repeated solicitation. But under this literal sense of the above words is concealed a spiritual or internal sense, as in all other parts of the parable, which spiritual or internal sense teaches the certain prevalence of prayer, or holy desire, though it is not accompanied with the knowledge of heavenly truth, but, on the contrary, is immersed in the darkness of mistaken and false opinions. Jesus Christ, therefore, would instruct us, by this part of the payable, that every pure and upright desire of the humble and the penitent is sure, sooner or later, to obtain the redress of all its grievances, by being enlightened with that saving wisdom which has in it eternal life and salvation. He would teach us also a lesson of patience, and not to be discouraged, though our prayers are not immediately granted, nor our desires immediately gratified. The Lord makes the application of the parable in these words: Hear what the unjust judge says. And shall not God avenge His own elect, who cry day and night to Him, though He bear long with them? I tell you that he will avenge them speedily. He would thus teach us, in the first place, to attend well to what the unjust judge says; in other words, to reflect continually in our own minds on the blessed and certain effects of importunate prayer, arising out of penitent, humble, and converted hearts, though it be not enlightened by the bright light of the Eternal Truth. And in the second place, He would instruct us concerning the superior prevalence of such holy prayer when it is so enlightened. For by the term God is here to be understood the divine truth, as by the term Lord is to be understood the divine good from whence the divine truth proceeds. By the elect also are meant those of the Church who are principled in heavenly good and charity; and by avenging them, is denoted the redress of all their grievances, and the removal of all evil, through the illumination of that eternal truth to which they apply themselves, and their everlasting conjunction with all its brightness and its blessing. The expression day and night, includes every state of the mind, whether it be in light or in darkness, in consolation or in trouble; and therefore Jesus Christ would teach us by this expression, that our prayers to Him are of the same prevalence, and equally affect Him, whether they be attended with light and consolation to ourselves, or otherwise. Thus he would instruct us to pray alike, and not to give up, both in adversity and prosperity, in sorrow and in joy, when we are distressed through the want of heavenly light, and when we are gladdened which its abundance. By the term speedily, according to the internal sense of the expression, is to be understood certainly, because the internal sense has no relation to time, but to the state of the thing treated of. Jesus Christ, therefore, by these apparently contradictory words, would instruct us, that all our sincere prayers will certainly be heard, and all our pure desires will certainly be granted, notwithstanding the appearance of delay on the part of our Heavenly Father, who converts even that delay into the means of our purification, by leading us to a deeper sense of our own wants and unworthiness, and thus to a more grateful sense of His mercies, when our requests are granted. The parable concludes with these remarkable words, which seem to have no connection with it, Nevertheless, when the Son of Man comes, shall he find faith on the earth? The coming of the Son of Man means the revelation or manifestation of Divine Truth from God out of Heaven, for the instruction and salvation of His Church, or people, which revelation or manifestation, according to the testimony of the Sacred Scriptures, is to take place in the latter days, and is pointed at more especially by the descent of the Holy City, the New Jerusalem, here upon earth, to be the tabernacle of God with men. Jesus Christ, therefore, would instruct us, by the above significant question, to take heed to the state of our hearts and lives, that when the Son of Man shall appear, or, in other words, when Divine Truth shall be revealed or made manifest, we may be found in a suitable disposition to receive it, neither overlooking it through carelessness, nor rejecting it through the wickedness of our lives. Jesus Christ would teach us, then, in this parable, that He is present in every good desire of our hearts, and though this desire may not be attended with the light of truth at its first commencement, yet if we continue patiently to cherish it, and to keep it open to its Divine Source, it will assuredly, sooner or later, through the Divine Omnipotence, deliver us from all error of false doctrine and opinion, and conduct us to the bright light of the Eternal truth. He would teach us, yet further, that His apparent delay in granting our petitions is no ground of discouragement, but quite the contrary, since by that delay, if we are faithful to it, our purification is promoted, because our humiliation and dependence on God are rendered more absolute. Lastly, He would intimate to us, that this state of pure desire, and of devout humiliation and dependence, is the best possible state to prepare us for that promised Second Advent of the Son of Man, which the Scriptures announce to us, and which is to consist in a brighter display of heavenly truth to the Church, or people, of God, at a time when, through the influence of false doctrines, and more especially through the prevalence of evil love and corrupt affections, mankind shall have lost all just apprehension of the proper sense of the Sacred Scriptures, all true knowledge of God, and of the ways of salvation, and must thus perish everlastingly, unless the Word of God be again opened to their understandings in the power and brightness of that saving truth, of which it is the only proper source and fountain. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 81: 02.39. LUK_18:9-14 -- PHARISEE AND TAX COLLECTOR ======================================================================== Luk 18:9-14 -- Pharisee and Tax Collector And He spoke this parable to certain which trusted in themselves that they were righteous, and despised others. Two men went up into the temple to pray; the one a Pharisee, and the other a tax collector. The Pharisee stood and prayed thus with himself: God, I thank You, that I am not as other men are, extortioners, unjust, adulterers, or even as this tax collector. I fast twice in the week, I give tithes of all that I possess. And the tax collector, standing afar off, would not lift up so much as his eyes to heaven, but beat upon his breast, saying, God be merciful to me a sinner. I tell you, this man went down to his house justified rather than the other: for every one that exalts himself shall be abased; and he that humbles himself shall be exalted. According to the sense of the letter, by going up into the temple to pray, is meant the going up into a building of wood and stone consecrated to the service of God, to perform in it sacred worship, such as is acceptable to God; but according to the spiritual idea, by going up into the temple to pray, is meant the retiring within ourselves, or entering into the interior of our own minds, to open our hearts and understandings before the Great and Holy God, according to which sense of the words, man is called a temple, and sometimes a house or habitation of the Almighty. It is also to be noted, that prayer, properly considered, is nothing else but the opening of the interiors of the mind towards God and Heaven, by the exercise of devout affections and thoughts. For without devout affection and thought there can be no prayer, consequently, no opening of the mind towards God and Heaven. A Pharisee, according to the literal sense of the term, means a person who belongs to a Jewish sect of that name; but according to the spiritual sense of the term, a person who is very exact and correct about the externals of religion, but careless about its internals; in other words, who is scrupulously attentive to forms and ceremonies of piety and divine worship, but utterly regardless of what those forms and ceremonies were intended to represent; or, according to the description given of such a character by Jesus Christ, Who pays tithe of mint, anise, and cummin, and omits the weightier matters of the law, judgement, mercy, and faith. In short, a Pharisee is one who is holy without, but unholy within, or, as the Apostle expresses it, who has a form of godliness, but without the power. According to the literal sense, a tax collector was one who collected the public taxes; and as the character of such a person was very odious and despicable amongst the Jews, therefore a tax collector was one whom the Jews held in the utmost contempt and aversion. But according to the spiritual idea, by a tax collector is to be understood one who is not only despised by others, but also by himself; in other words, who thinks little and meanly of his own spiritual attainments, and on that ground is disposed to exalt others above himself. Thus the tax collector, in this parable, represents the Gentiles, as the Pharisee represents the Jews. Consequently, the tax collector is a figure of those who are not principled in truth and the external forms of worship, but yet are in the earnest desire of being so principled; whilst the Pharisee is a figure of those who are indeed principled in heavenly knowledge and the ceremonies of religious worship, but yet have no desire at all to form their lives according to such knowledge, and in agreement with the purport of such ceremonial observances. It is said that the Pharisee stood and prayed thus with himself: God, I thank You, that I am not as other men are, extortioners, unjust, adulterous, or even as this tax collector. We have seen that by prayer is to be understood interior thought and affection, when directed towards God and Heaven. In the case of the Pharisee it is evidently the thought and affection of self-love, by which this deluded man was led to suppose himself better than others, and thus to exalt himself in the superiority of his own fancied virtues, at the same time making a pretence of gratitude to the Almighty for this fancied superiority. His prayer, therefore, had nothing in it but defilement, because it was derived from himself, and not from God, and thus was full of himself more than of God. For the true ground of pure and acceptable prayer is, humility and self-abasement, under a due sense of our wants, our weaknesses, and our defilements before our Heavenly Father, in which case our prayer connects itself with God, and acknowledges Him as its Divine Origin, and is thus filled with the fullness of its origin; whereas a prayer grounded in the idea of superior virtues, separates us more and more from God, by immersing us more and more in the dangerous and defiled idolatry of self-complacency and self-esteem. The Pharisee makes this further boast concerning himself, I fast twice in the week, I give tithes of all that I possess. It appears from these expressions, that spiritual pride, which is here represented by the Pharisee, can mortify itself in a certain degree, or so far as relates to the external things of the body, and that it can also, in a certain degree, make sacrifices to God, but then with all its mortifications and sacrifices it still reserves to itself the vanity of its own self-love and self-esteem, and thus never makes the entire surrender of itself to the God of Heaven. Its mortifications, therefore, and its sacrifices, only tend to separate it further from heaven and eternal life, because they have a tendency to nourish a more dangerous self-love than could otherwise have prevailed. It is also said of the tax collector, that, standing afar off, he would not lift up so much as his eyes to heaven, but beat upon his breast, saying, God be merciful to me a sinner. From these words we learn that real humility is always attended with a sentiment of its infinite distance from the divine purity, and, therefore, is said to stand afar off. We learn, too, that it is deeply sensible of its own blindness and opposition to the truth of God, and, therefore, it would not lift up its eyes to heaven; in other words, it is afraid of high speculations on heavenly doctrines, from a sense of its own unworthiness, and from a fear, at the same time, lest practice should not keep pace with speculation. We learn, further, that it is always impressed with a consciousness of its natural defilements, signified by beating on the breast. And lastly, we learn, that true humility is always in the act of applying itself to the Divine Mercy to heal the disorders of its blinded understanding and depraved will, signified by the passionate supplication, God be merciful to me a sinner. We discover, therefore, in this character of the humble tax collector, the true temper and disposition of the real Christian, as distinguished from the formal and hypocritical professor of Christianity, and that the real Christian is always abasing himself that he may exalt his God, and that his religion, therefore, consists in a deep-rooted sense of his own ignorance, defilement, and infirmity, and a consequent devout and constant application to the Father of Mercies for wisdom, for purity, and for protection. Jesus Christ says, I tell you, this man went down to his house justified rather than the other. When man enters into the interiors of his own mind, which is the true temple where proper and acceptable worship is performed to the Almighty, he is then said to go up, or ascend, because he draws nearer to that Holy Being in himself, who is called the Highest, and is said to dwell in the Highest, for what is inmost, according to the spiritual idea, is called highest according to a natural idea. But when he quits this holy exchange of devout affection with his Maker, and descends again into the exteriors of his thoughts and affections, to exercise them in the discharge of the common duties and engagements of life, he is then said to go down to his house, because exterior thought and affection are properly the house of man, as interior thought and affection are properly the house of God, so that every man has, as it were, two houses; one designed for his communication with God and His angelic kingdom, and the other designed for his communication with men in the exercises of charity and mutual good-will. By being justified, is meant to be made just; and by his going; down to his house justified, is to be understood that he brought down a principle of justice into all the concerns of his external life, by thinking, speaking, and acting in agreement with such a principle, so that his external man was made just or justice, as well as his internal man. For this is the proper sense and meaning of the term justification, about which the Christian world has been so long and so unhappily divided; some insisting that man is justified by faith alone, some, that he is justified by charity, and some by good works; whereas, the truth is, that man is justified by the Divine Principle of Justice alone, so far as he admits this principle to pre-eminence in his inner man, and suffers it at the same time to control, direct, and govern all the thoughts, words, and works of his outer man. In the original language of the New Testament, therefore, the above passage is thus expressed, he went down justified to his house; in other words, he introduced into his house, or into all the concerns of his external man, a principle of justice, for continual guidance and government. The parable speaks of his being justified rather than the other. By the other, is here meant the proud Pharisee; and, therefore, by the tax collector being justified rather than the Pharisee, is intended to be expressed, according to the idea of justification, just now suggested, that the Pharisee did not suffer a principle of justice from the Almighty to enter into his mind, and to operate in his life. For such is the nature of spiritual pride, or, what amounts to the same, of a defiled internal man, whilst the external man is occupied in holy things, that in such case the deluded worshipper never thinks of introducing into his life any solid principle, either of justice or equity, from God, to guide and govern him, but is content to think that he is justified by his external acts of piety, such as prayer, attendance at the holy altar, almsgiving, etc., without any regard to the Divine law of justice, which is nothing else but the law of the Divine love and mercy, by the observance of which alone man is restored to the order of heaven, and rendered just in the sight of God and of His angels. Jesus Christ observes, at the conclusion of this parable, and as a maxim of truth resulting from it, that every one that exalts himself shall be abased; and he that humbles himself shall be exalted. By man exalting himself is to be understood, that he sets his own will, his own understanding, and his own prudence above the Divine Will, the Divine Understanding, and the Divine, Providence of the Most High; in other words, that he exalts his own reason above the Word of God, or if he acknowledges the Word of God with his understanding; to be a revelation from God, yet he does not acknowledge it in his life and love, and, consequently, is proud and high-minded, despising others in comparison with himself, and serving God for no other end than to gain the favour of men. And by such a one being abased is to be understood, that in thus exalting himself, he departs from the order of God, and makes himself the vilest and lowest of all creatures, by separating himself from all living communication with the mercy, the truth, the greatness and omnipotence of God. He that humbles himself denotes one who submits his own will, his own understanding, and his own prudence, to the Divine Will, the Divine Understanding, and the Divine Providence of his Heavenly Father, confessing; thus from his heart, that all goodness, all truth, all power, all protection, are from God, and nothing at all from man, only so far as he receives it from God. And by such a one being exalted is to be understood, that in consequence of thus submitting himself to the Divine government and guidance, he rises out of all his sins, his infirmities, his ignorances, and his miseries, to a blessed and eternal conjunction with the Supreme Goodness and the Supreme Truth. Thus he is exalted above himself, above the world, above false joys, and above real sorrows, to a communication with God and heaven, and eternal life and salvation, and all this in proportion to the measure and degree of his humiliation. We learn from this parable that spiritual pride is most odious in the sight of God, being a symptom of the most defiled and dangerous self-love, and that we ought, therefore, to be particularly on our guard against this infectious evil, especially in contemplating any good actions which we may have performed, or any distinguished excellencies which we may appear to possess. We learn, further, that humility is the best state of the heart of man, and the state most pleasing in the sight of God, because it consists in renouncing our own will and our own wisdom, that we may exalt in ourselves, at all times, and on all occasions, the Divine Will and Divine Wisdom of the Most High. Lastly, we learn, that our justification in the sight of God will depend entirely on our advancement in the grace of humility, or in a due sense of our natural defilements, ignorances, imperfections, and weaknesses, since justification consists in the implantation of a principle of justice and equity from God, in all the thoughts, words, and works of the external man, who principle of justice can never be admitted into our minds until the opposite principle of injustice, which is the inordinate love of ourselves, and of the world, more than of God, and of our neighbour, be removed. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on, through the Divine Grace and Mercy, to hate and abominate all spiritual pride, as a thing most infernal, and to tremble at, and detest the sight of whatever may be called our own excellence, or our own virtue, if it has a tendency at any time to prevent our praying, from the bottom of a broken and a contrite heart, God be merciful to me a sinner. Let us resolve, at the same time, through the Divine grace and mercy, to cherish in our minds the temper of humility, as a temper most heavenly, because most pleasing in the sight of God, and with this blessed view, to renounce, at all times, our own will, wisdom, and prudence, that the will, the wisdom, and providence of our Heavenly Father, may ever be exalted in our minds and lives. Thus may we hope always to be like the man who went down to his house justified, because we shall always carry down along with us the principle of Divine justice into every transaction of life, until we become ourselves heavenly forms of the same justice, both in the inner and outer man, that is to say, in our words and works, as well as in our inmost intentions and thoughts. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 82: 02.40. JOH_10:1-5 -- GOOD SHEPHERD ======================================================================== John 10:1-5 -- Good Shepherd Verily, verily, I say to you, he that enters not by the door into the sheepfold, but climbs up some other way, the same is a thief and a robber. But he that enters in by the door is the shepherd of the sheep. To him the watchman opens; and the sheep hear his voice: and he calls his own sheep by name, and leads them out. And when he brings out his own sheep, he goes before them, and the sheep follow him: for they know his voice. And a stranger will they not follow, but will flee from him: for they know not the voice of strangers. The repetition of the term verily is intended to denote the great importance of the subject to which it is annexed, and thus to excite the reader’s attention accordingly. For the single term verily is expressive of the truth of what is asserted, and, therefore, when it is repeated, it is for the purpose of giving double force to such truth. Under the term sheepfold Jesus Christ intended to figure and to describe His heavenly kingdom and its blessedness, and since this kingdom and its blessedness are derived solely from the conjunction of the divine love and wisdom in the minds of those angelic beings who compose that kingdom, therefore, the conjunction of those heavenly principles was intended here to be expressed by the term sheepfold. Not to enter in, then, by the door into the sheepfold, but to climb up some other way, manifestly implies an attempt to attain to the above conjunction of heavenly principles, without paying any regard to the means necessary for introduction to it, which introductory means are here expressed by the term door. The person making this attempt is described as a thief and a robber, because, if the necessary means of introduction to the heavenly sheepfold are overlooked and disregarded, it must of necessity follow that the person who overlooks and disregards them will appropriate to himself the divine things of the Lord, which are His divine love and divine wisdom, as if they were his own, independent of the divine bounty, and thus will incur the censure annexed to the double character of a thief and a robber; for one of these titles was intended to express the enormous criminality, on the part of man, of supposing that he can understand any truth, when left merely to himself without divine influence, whilst the other term was intended to express the equal enormity of supposing that he can be affected by any good separate from that influence. The two terms, indeed, thief and robber, according to their common interpretation, have no distinct meaning, and are, therefore, generally understood as expressing the same idea; but in the language of Jesus Christ, which is the language of God Himself, we are constrained to acknowledge, that each term must necessarily be applied to a distinct idea, otherwise the two terms would be mere tautology. Jesus Christ, therefore, applied both terms according to the distinct idea above-mentioned, because He saw it to be a matter of the first importance, to guard mankind against the distinct crimes which they involve, and thus to lead them to the grateful acknowledgement, that all pure love and pure wisdom are the continual gifts of the divine unmerited bounty of the Most Merciful God. It has already been shown what is meant by the sheepfold, and by not entering in by the door; and, therefore, it is plain, from what was said on the occasion, that to enter in by the door implies the use and application of the means necessary to introduce to the conjunction of heavenly love and heavenly wisdom in the human mind, and thus of the means necessary for man’s conjunction with the Supreme Good and the Supreme Truth. The person, therefore, who so enters in, is called the shepherd of the sheep, because the term sheep involves in it all the recipients of the above heavenly principles; and, of course, the term shepherd involves in it all those who cherish those principles by incorporating them into their lives. Jesus Christ, accordingly, afterwards calls Himself the Good Shepherd, to denote that in His Humanity He was ever cherishing the principles of the divine love and wisdom, until He fully incorporated them into His mind and life, and by so doing made His Humanity Divine, or One with the Eternal Father. It is said, to him the watchman opens. By the watchman is here to be understood the Divine Good of the Divine Love of the Most High, which is called the watchman, because it stands continually at the door which leads to the conjunction of the divine love and wisdom in human minds; and he is said to open, because through the divine good of the divine love, and through that alone, communication is effected between man and his Maker, by virtue of which communication man is finally introduced to an eternal conjunction of the heavenly principles of love and wisdom in his own mind, and thus to an eternal conjunction also with the Divine Father and Fountain of those principles. The sheep denote, as was observed above, all those who be come receptive of the divine love and wisdom; and their hearing his voice, or the voice of the watchman, means that they are ever attentive and obedient to the Eternal Truth, which is here signified by his voice. For the term his, in this place, has manifest relation to the watchman above-mentioned, by whom is signified, as was before shown, the Divine Good of the Divine Love of the Most High, the voice of which good can, therefore, mean nothing else but the Divine Truth, because nothing else properly proceeds from the Divine Good but the Divine Truth. It next follows, that He calls His own sheep by name, and leads them out. The sheep are here called His own sheep, to denote not only that they are principled in heavenly love and wisdom, but also that they acknowledge such love and wisdom to be from their Heavenly Father, thus not their own, only so far as they derive the heavenly gift from Him. It is further said of these sheep, that He calls them by name, and leads them out; because to call them by name, denotes that He is acquainted with all their qualities, thus with the distinct manner and degree in which each is receptive of His Divine Love and Wisdom; and because by leading them out is intended to be described His fatherly care over them, in conducting them to the knowledge of Himself, by instructing them in all truth relating to Himself, and to His heavenly kingdom. It is afterwards added, that He brings out His own sheep, and goes before them, and the sheep follow Him. The several distinctions here made are grounded in the double operation which the Almighty exercises on human minds, by leading them, first, to the knowledge of Himself and of His eternal kingdom, through the manifestation of heavenly truth in their understandings; and, next, by influencing them to act according to that truth, from the love of it, as operative in their wills. Thus the two expressions, leading them out, and putting them forth, were intended to mark the divine leading and government exercised by Jesus Christ over man in both principles of his constitution, namely, his understanding and his will, or his thoughts and his affections, and so to denote the entire guidance and rule which the Father of Mercies continually claims to Himself, over all His intelligent creatures, for their happiness and salvation. It is, therefore, added, He goes before them, to denote that when man becomes submissive and obedient to the divine rule and government of the Most High, he then lives perpetually in the Divine presence, and beholds the divine countenance ever before his eyes conducting him to the regions of bliss, by introducing him daily to a closer conjunction with all that is good, and wise, and happy. In this case it is further said, that the sheep follow Him, because to follow Him is an expression to denote an entire submission to His heavenly rule and government, and especially the imitation of His example that as He glorified His humanity by combats against the powers of darkness, and by continual obedience to the guidance and government of the divine love in Himself, so His sheep labour to attain conjunction of life with Him, by opposing the same powers of darkness, in submission to the guidance and government of heavenly love and wisdom ever flowing from that Glorified or Divine Humanity. It is first said that the sheep hear His voice; and afterwards, that they know His voice, to point out a distinction which is of the utmost importance to be attended to, because to hear the watchman’s voice is an expression intended to denote an obedient will; whereas to know His voice, is an expression intended to denote an enlightened understanding, as resulting from an obedient will. Thus the two expressions combined were designed to mark the full reception and operation of heavenly truth, both in the will and in the understanding, until it takes entire possession of the whole man, by rendering him receptive of its purifying and enlightening influences in those two grand faculties of his life, and thereby forming him entirely after its own image and likeness. It is, therefore, added, A stranger will they not follow, but will flee from him: for they know not the voice of strangers, to denote that they will no longer suffer themselves to be led by evil principles and false persuasions, originating in the powers of darkness, which are here called strangers, but will rather turn their backs upon them, and for this eternal reason, because they know not their voice; in other words, because they have no fellowship or communion with the false and erroneous doctrines signified by that voice. We learn from this parable all the instruction which Jesus Christ sums up in the following words, as its application, where he says, Verily, verily, I say to you, I am the Door of the sheep; all that ever came before me are thieves and robbers, but the sheep did not hear them. I am the Door; by me if any man enter in, he shall be saved, and shall go in and out, and find pasture. The thief comes not but for to steal, and to kill, and to destroy: I am come that they might have life, and that they might have it more abundantly (Verses 7-11). This application teaches us that Jesus Christ, as to His Divine Humanity, is the only door of introduction to the heavenly sheepfold, and that, consequently, we can never hope for any communication or conjunction with the Supreme Good, called the Father, only so far as we seek it in that Humanity. We learn, further, that all who set aside that Divine Humanity, and seek conjunction with the Eternal Father separate from it, are thieves and robbers; in other words, that they appropriate to themselves the Divine things of God, by claiming and holding them independently of the Divine Giver. We are instructed, yet further, that if we are wise to enter in at the above door; in other words, if we draw near to Jesus Christ in His Divine Humanity, and approach Him with a sincere heart, we shall be sure to find deliverance from all evil, and a communication of every heavenly good, both internal and external. Lastly, we learn, that they who do not approach Jesus Christ in His Divine Humanity, and who consequently appropriate to themselves the Divine things of His holy love and wisdom, independently of Him, deprive themselves of all heavenly communication of love, of wisdom, and of life, whilst they who are wise to draw near to Jesus Christ as the only God, because the only Giver of every good gift, not only open in their own minds a communication with His life of love and wisdom, but also receive that life in a greater fullness than was ever before received by the children of men, agreeably to the prophetic declaration, where it is written concerning the appearing of the Incarnate God, Moreover the light of the moon shall be as the light of the sun, and the light of the sun shall be seven-fold, as the light of seven days (Isa 30:26). Let us resolve, therefore, from now on, to believe in and approach Jesus Christ, in His Divine Humanity, as our only God and Saviour, and no longer to attempt to climb up into the sheepfold any other way. Thus let us resolve to acknowledge all that we are, or have, to be the merciful gifts of that Great God and Saviour, that so we may no longer separate ourselves from the communications of His mercy, by calling anything our own independent of His bounty, but may rather experience a more abundant increase of His heavenly love and wisdom in ourselves, whilst we approach Him, as He wills to be approached, in that Glorified Humanity which He was pleased to assume for the gracious purpose of giving man more free access to Himself, and thus of securing to Himself a fuller and more free access to man. Amen. ======================================================================== CHAPTER 83: 02.41. JOH_15:1-7 -- VINE AND BRANCHES ======================================================================== John 15:1-7 -- Vine and Branches I am the true vine, and my Father is the gardener. Every branch in me that bears not fruit he takes away: and every branch that bears fruit, he purges it, that it may bring forth more fruit. Now you are clean through the word which I have spoken to you. Abide in me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it abide in the vine; no more can you, except you abide in me. I am the vine, you are the branches: he that abides in me, and I in him, the same brings forth much fruit: for without me you can do nothing. If a man abide not in me, he is cast forth as a branch, and is withered; and men gather them, and cast them into the fire, and they are burned. If you abide in me, and my words abide in you, you shall ask what you will, and it shall be done to you. Jesus Christ here calls Himself the true vine in agreement with the language of correspondence, or the relation subsisting, because established at creation, between things natural and things spiritual, agreeably to which relation the vine is a representative figure of spiritual truth, and is, accordingly, so applied in the Book of Revelation, which is the Word of God. Thus, in the blessing which Jacob pronounces on his sons, it is said concerning Judah, Binding his foal to the vine, and his ass’s colt to the choice vine (Gen 49:11), in which words it is evident that the vine is spoken of according to its above spiritual signification. To the same purpose it is written in the book of Psalms, You have brought a vine out of Egypt; you have cast out the heathen and planted it, etc (Psa 80:8), where it must be evident to every considerate person, that by a vine is not meant a vine, but a spiritual principle, or what is the same thing, a spiritual people, represented by a vine. It is for the same reason, that the Church, or people of God, are called a vineyard, because a vineyard implies a portion of earth allotted to the cultivation of vines, and since the Church, or people of God, are a Church and people by virtue of the reception of spiritual truth, they are accordingly called a vineyard, as it is written, The vineyard of the Lord of Hosts is the house of Israel, and the men of Judah his pleasant plant (Isa 5:7). Agreeably to the same idea, in the prophetic writings throughout, evangelical graces and virtues are constantly figured and described by different kinds of trees or plants answering to those graces and virtues. Thus it is written, I will plant in the wilderness the cedar, the shittah tree, and the myrtle, and the oil tree; I will set in the desert the fig tree, and the pine, and the box tree together (Isa 41:19), where it must again be evident to every reflecting mind, that some spiritual principles are signified, which are in agreement with the above trees, since it is written in the verse which immediately follows, That they may see, and know, and consider, and understand together, that the hand of the Lord has done this, and the Holy One of Israel has created it. Again, it is written, Instead of the thorn shall come up the fir tree, and instead of the briar shall come up the myrtle tree; and then it is added, it shall be to the Lord for a name, and for an everlasting sign that there shall be no cutting off (Isa 55:13); from which words it is again manifest, that, in the language of Revelation, spiritual graces and blessings are figured and represented by different kinds of trees. Jesus Christ accordingly calls Himself the true vine, as being the Source and All of Spiritual Truth, by virtue of which His Church or people, are enabled to attain conjunction of life with Himself. Jesus Christ further says of this vine, My Father is the gardener. Whenever Jesus Christ speaks of His Father, He speaks of the Essential Divine Principle which was in Himself, as His inmost soul and life, and which was distinct from Himself before His full glorification, and distinct in this, that the Father was the Divine Good in Himself, whereas He Himself, as to His Humanity, before it was fully united with the Divinity, was the Divine Truth. The Father, therefore, is called the gardener, or, as the original term might be better expressed, the vine dresser, inasmuch as the cultivation of the vine, or the growth and fruitfulness of heavenly truth, is always from the Divine Good of heavenly love and charity. It is not, then, to be supposed that Jesus Christ and His Father are separate beings, as they would appear to be from the above description in the letter, but that they are one and the same being, only with this distinction, that the Father is the inmost principle of that being, being its very Essential Life, whereas Jesus Christ, previous to the full glorification of His Humanity, was the external principle, here called the true vine, which is to be supposed as advancing gradually to a full union with its internal life or soul, until at length they were no longer two but one, on which occasion the Humanity became Divine, being fully incorporated with its Essential Divinity. It is written, Every branch in me that bears not fruit He takes away; and every branch that bears fruit, He purges it, that it may bring forth more fruit. Every one who receives the Eternal Truth in his understanding is called a branch in the true vine Jesus Christ: the reason is, because by virtue of such reception he has communication with Jesus Christ in his understanding, and in consequence of such communication receives a degree of life from Him, in the same manner that a branch derives life from its parent stock. The fruit, here spoken of, is charity, or an operative good-will towards men, producing all kinds of good and useful works; and not to bear this fruit is to have knowledge, but not a life corresponding to knowledge; in other words, it is to have truth in the understanding, but not the good of truth in the will, in which case the branch is entirely useless, and does not answer the purpose for which it was created, since the end of all knowledge is to conduct to the life of knowledge, and the end of all truth is to lead to the good of truth, which is the love and the life of good works. Concerning this branch, it is said, that He (the Father) takes it away; but this is to be understood as spoken merely according to the appearance, since to those who are thus taken away, it appears to be the act and deed of the Almighty, whereas in truth and reality they take themselves away. For such is the case with every one who receives the knowledge of the Eternal Truth, and does not suffer himself to be conducted by that knowledge to its heavenly and blessed life, and thus to a living conjunction with its Divine Source, that he takes himself away from that Source, notwithstanding every effort of the Source itself to preserve him from separation. Thus every sinner brings his own destruction upon himself, although it appears to him that his destruction comes from God. It is declared of the branch that bears fruit, that He purges it that it may bring forth more fruit. By this is to be understood the purification effected by the Supreme Good with all those who have attained to any state of conjunction of heavenly good and heavenly truth in their own minds and lives, by abiding in Jesus Christ the true vine. In regard to such purification, the case is this, that no good or truth received by man or angel can be absolutely pure, so as to be incapable of receiving any higher degree of purity. Nevertheless, every good and truth, whether received by man or angel, is capable of an indefinite advancement in purification, which advancement is effected successively in the progress of regeneration, both during man’s abode in this world, and afterwards in the eternal world. It is further to be noted, that this purification is generally accomplished under some state of trial or temptation, it being the end and tendency of every such trial and temptation, to lead man into humiliation, and by humiliation into closer conjunction with his Heavenly Father, or the Supreme Good, and of course into a higher state of purification from the inordinate love of himself and the world, which love is the grand source of all defilement. From what has been said concerning the progress of man’s purification, it is evident, that as he advances in it, he attains at the same time to some new state of heavenly good and truth, which is the more fruit spoken of, when it is said That it may bring forth more fruit. It is, therefore, an eternal law of the divine order, in regard to man’s regeneration, that he should never stand still in any present attainments, let them in themselves be ever so excellent, but should always be pressing forward to the possession of some new and higher good, and to the illumination of some new and higher order of truth. Every present attainment, therefore, is only to be considered as preparatory to some new attainment, and thus it is that man enters into a career of gradual approach towards the Eternal, ever bringing forth more fruit to the glory of the Divine Vine-dresser, and to his own eternal happiness and comfort. It is added, Now you are clean through the word which I have spoken to you. To judge from appearance, these words seem to be quite unconnected with what goes before. The want of connection, however, is only apparent, and not real, for in the preceding words mention had been made of the purification of the branch which bears fruit, that it may bring forth more fruit, and Jesus Christ now explains the manner in which that purification is effected, as well as the principle by which it is effected. For He now teaches that this purification is accomplished by and through His Word, as it is received in the hearts and understandings of those to whom it is addressed, and, further, as it is seen to be in connection with Himself, the only Divine Source of all truth. For such is the nature of man’s purification from his natural evils and errors, that it cannot be worked without the reception of truth, and that truth cannot be received unless it be received conjointly in the will, the understanding, and the works of the true penitent; neither can it still be purifying, unless it be seen and acknowledged in its continual connection with its Divine Source, and that Source be seen and acknowledged to be Jesus Christ in His Divine Humanity, and Him alone. When Jesus Christ, therefore, said, Now you are clean through the word which I have spoken to you, He meant to explain more particularly the purification of which He had been before speaking, and to show that it was effected by and through the Eternal Truth in its everlasting union with Himself. Jesus Christ continues his discourse in these words, Abide in Me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it abide in the vine; no more can you, except you abide in Me. He is here speaking of the conjunction between Himself and His Church, thus between Himself and every individual member of the Church; and He would teach, that this conjunction cannot be effected unless it be mutual or reciprocal, thus unless there be an uniting love in both the parties. For the case with this conjunction is like that of all other spiritual conjunctions whatsoever, it being very well known that the spiritual conjunction subsisting between two friends cannot take place unless it be mutual; in other words, unless each friend be attracted to the other by mutual love and interest. This is especially the case in regard to that highest and most important of all spiritual conjunctions which is here spoken of, namely, the conjunction between Jesus Christ and His Church, in effecting which it is not sufficient that Jesus Christ, on His part, loves His Church, but His Church, on her part, must also love Him in return, by accounting Him as her greatest and sovereign good. It is however to be understood that the Church cannot thus mutually love her Divine Lord by any love properly her own, or which she derives from herself alone, but a love which she receives continually from her Lord, and which she humbly and gratefully acknowledges to be so received. In this respect, therefore, Jesus Christ is to be regarded as the alone active principle of love, whilst the Church exercises only a passive principle; but then it is to be considered, that this passive principle is intended to become, in its place, an active one, in submission to, and continual dependence on, the Supreme Activity of her Divine Lord. Jesus Christ says, As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it abide in the vine; no more can you, except you abide in Me. He teaches by this plainest and most significant of all figures, that His Church, or the individuals who compose it, cannot attain to any state of heavenly life and love, with its consequent operation, unless by faith and love they attach themselves to their Divine Lord, and to His essential mercy and truth. For it is obvious to every one, that the branch of a tree cannot bear fruit of itself, except it abide in the parent stock; and since the connection between Jesus Christ and His Church, as has been already shown, is like that which subsists between the vine and its branches, therefore it follows, of necessity, that no member of the Lord’s Church can possibly bear the fruit of saving-life, which is the life of love and charity, unless they have perpetual conjunction with the parent stock of love and charity, that is to say, with Jesus Christ. When Jesus Christ said to His disciples, I am the vine, you are the branches, He meant to declare to them, and through them to all future disciples, the sacred and distinguishing relationship which subsisted between Himself and them. He meant, therefore, to announce to them the important truth, that they received life continually from Him, even the ever-blessed life of love, of wisdom, of charity, of faith, and of every other heavenly grace and blessing. He meant, further, to instruct them, that if they were wise, to regard Him with mutual affection, by acknowledging gratefully the all of their life to be derived from Him, they would then bring forth much fruit; in other words, there would be a continual multiplication and increase of all heavenly graces and virtues, and this successively, one state of grace and virtue ever giving birth to a new one, and this new one to another and another in endless generations. Lastly, He meant to warn them of the great danger to which they were exposed of separating their life from His life, or, what is the same thing, their love from His love, by informing them, that without Him, or apart from Him, they can do nothing; in other words, they can produce no grace or virtue; they can bring forth no fruit either of love towards God, or of charity towards men; and, of course, they must remain barren and unprofitable branches. It is afterwards written, If a man abide not in Me, he is cast forth as a branch, and is withered; and men gather them, and cast them into the fire, and they are burned. It has already been shown what is meant by abiding in Jesus Christ, and consequently by not abiding in Him. Jesus Christ, therefore, teaches in these words the several effects of not abiding in Him; first, that he who does not abide in Him, is cast forth as a branch, by which is signified, that he has no longer any fellowship, communion, or conjunction of life with Jesus Christ; secondly, that he is withered, by which is to be understood, that he is deprived of all spiritual love and spiritual wisdom, thus of all spiritual life; thirdly, that men gather them, to denote, that when they are thus cast forth and withered, they are brought into association with those in the spiritual world who are in a similar disposition with themselves; fourthly, that they are cast into the fire, by which is represented, that they are delivered up to the fire of their own cravings, which are nothing else but the inordinate love of themselves and of the world; fifthly, that they are burned, by which is further represented, that they are left to perish in those cravings. It is, however, well to be understood, that all these effects are the necessary results of not abiding in Jesus Christ, and thus that they are not to be regarded as punishments inflicted by what is commonly called the wrath and vengeance of the Almighty, but rather as the natural consequences of the sinner’s rejection of all heavenly love and wisdom for government and for guidance. Jesus Christ adds, further, If you abide in Me, and my words abide in you, you shall ask what you will, and it shall be done to you. By the words of Jesus Christ, abiding in man, is to be understood, that man endeavours to form his whole life, both of will, of understanding, and of work, in agreement with the life and spirit of the precepts of Jesus Christ, the result of which abiding is here declared to be, that he shall ask what he will, and it shall be done to him, for in this case it will be impossible for him to ask or desire anything but what is agreeable to the will of God his Saviour, and, therefore, he is sure to have whatsoever he asks or desires, since it is connected with Omnipotence, and inspired by that Divine Being of whom it is written, He shall fulfil the desire of them that fear Him. Thus man comes into possession of all that he can will or wish, since the whole of his will and wish is, that the designs of the Almighty may be accomplished, and His will be done on earth as it is in heaven. We learn, first, from this parable, the near and holy connection subsisting between Jesus Christ, ourselves, and all His creatures, by virtue of the reception of the Eternal Truth, of which He is the Divine Source and Only Fountain. We learn, further, that this connection includes two very different descriptions of people; first, of those in whom it produces its proper fruits; and, secondly, of those in whom it produces no fruits. Under the first class are included all those who to the knowledge of the Eternal Truth join the love and the practice of it, and thus attain conjunction of life with Jesus Christ in His own ever blessed spirit of love and charity. Under the second class are included all those who receive the knowledge of truth in their understanding, but do not suffer that knowledge to influence their wills, their love, and their operation, consequently, who never attain any conjunction of life with their God and Saviour, but only what may be called connection with Him by virtue of the knowledge which they have admitted into their understandings. We learn, further, that with all those who are wise to unite knowledge with the life of knowledge, a continual purification takes place in all the principles of their lives, by virtue of their conjunction with the Supreme Good, so that a continual separation is effected of all the powers of evil, of error, and of misery, and they are gradually elevated to nearer and nearer communication with all that is good and wise in the Kingdom of Heaven. Lastly, we learn the terrible effects of disjoining knowledge from the life of knowledge, as also the happy effects of uniting them together, since, in the first case, man is left to perish in the fire of his own cravings, being cast out and separated from all communication with heaven and its God; whereas, in the latter case, he obtains the full gratification of all his desires, since, being submitted in all things to the divine will and wisdom, he has nothing to wish or ask but that that will and wisdom may in all things be accomplished. Let us resolve, therefore, from now on to take heed to ourselves, that we may always be found abiding in Jesus Christ, and having His Word abiding in us, and that thus escaping all the mischief’s arising from the knowledge of truth unpractised and unobeyed, we may finally attain to all that infinite happiness resulting from the conjunction of knowledge with the life of knowledge, or, what is the same thing, of truth with its good, or, what is still the same thing, of faith with charity, or, what is still the same, of ourselves with our Heavenly Father. Amen. ======================================================================== Source: https://sermonindex.net/books/writings-of-john-clowes/ ========================================================================